BASQUE PEOPLE

 

BILBAO HAS RECENTLY WON THE EUROPEAN CITY OF THE YEAR AT 2018 URBANISM AWARD. BIZKAIA ARENA (BEC) IN BARACALDO HAS BEEN CHOSEN AS THE HOST CITY FOR THE 25TH ANNIVERSARY OF THE ANNUAL MTV EMAS. IT WILL TAKE PLACE ON NOVEMBER 4TH 2018 AT THE BILBAO EXHIBITION CENTRE, AND IT WILL BE BROADCASTED ALL OVER THE WORLD. WE CAN SAY THOSE TWO AWARDS FOR THE BASQUE COUNTRY ARE THE RESULT OF MANY YEARS OF HARD WORK, SOLIDARITY, GOOD RULING AND HONESTY.

G.L. STEER, RELEVANT ENGLISH JOURNALIST, LIVED IN SPAIN FOR SOME TIME AND WAS IN GERNIKA DURING THE 1937 BOMBINGS. G.L. STEER WROTE THE FOLLOWING SELF-EXPLANATORY QUOTES AS TO BASQUE PEOPLE IN EL ARBOL DE GUERNICA:

 1. “ THE OLD PAUL FRESSE, A WHITE-HAIRED GERMAN MAN WITH A NICE PERSONALITY, WHO LIVED IN ZARAUZ (GIPUZKOA) FOR MANY YEARS, AND HAVING RECEIVED THE “STÜTZPUNKTLEITER” DEGREE IN THE FOREIGN NAZISM ORGANIZATION, WITH THE IDI NUMBER 774, WAS NAMED INTERPRETER OF THE FIGHTER PLANE SQUADRON “1-J88“ AND OF HIS GERMAN CREW. THE OLD FREESSE, WITH HIS SILKY HAIR, DESCRIBED THEM THE TERRAINS, THE MAPS, PREPARING THEM FOR THE MORNING OF THE 31ST. HE TOLD THEM THAT AFTER MANY YEARS LIVING IN ZARAUZ HE HAD NOTICED BASQUE PEOPLE WERE THE BEST PEOPLE IN SPAIN, HARD-WORKING, HONEST, NATURAL AND FREE”.

2. “APRIL 20, 1937, I WAS IN BERMEO AND ENTERED THE BATZOKI (THE HOUSE OF THE BASQUE NATIONALISTIC PARTY), A WONDERFUL BUILDING WITH A LIBRARY, READING ROOMS, RESTING ROOMS AND DINING ROOMS. IT WAS A HOLIDAY. UP IN THE MAIN DINING ROOM WE SAW BATALLION SASETA, WHO LOST TWO THIRDS OF THEIR MEN IN OTXANDIANO, CELEBRATING THEIR RESURRECTION. NOW THEY WERE ON THE COAST DEFENSES. THE HOLES HAD BEEN REPLACED BY NEW RECRUITS. THEY WERE CELEBRATING A MEAL, ALREADY ORDERED BEFOREHAND. … PRIZES WERE GIVEN, BETWEEN SONGS, TO THE WINNERS OF THE DIFFERENT BASQUE COMPETITIONS… THEY SANG AND DANCED THE WHOLE EVENING IN THE  BATZOKI.   … MY FRIEND MENTIONED THIS:  “ BASQUE PEOPLE ARE VERY JOYFUL .”

3. “BASQUE PEOPLE, DEMOCRATS TO THE BONES, WERE ESSENTIALLY HUMANITARIAN AND COMPASSIONATE, AND THEREFORE FELT THE SUFFERING OF EVERY INDIVIDUAL… AS DEMOCRATS AS WELL THEY DETESTED PROPAGANDA AND MIND CONTROL.”

4. “THE 10 NEW “SCHNEIDER” BATTERIES CAME. BUT THE ONE WHO COVERED MOST PART OF THE OPENED GAPS IN OUR HOPES WAS THE NATURAL TENACITY OF THE BASQUE PEOPLE. AUTOMATICALLY ONCE THEY SETTLED DOWN THERE THEIR TRADITIONAL ORGANIZATION POWER ROSE AGAIN. IMMEDIATELY THEY REFORMED THEIR LINES.”

5. “FINALLY, URRIMENDI, SOUTH OF ZUGASTIETA, WAS THE SCENARIO OF A BLOODY BATTLE: THE MOORS, WHO POSSESSED MOUNT OIZ, ATTACKED IT THREE TIMES. BASQUE PEOPLE RESISTED TOUGHLY THE TERRIBLE PUNISHMENT OF THE FASCIST ARTILLERY, WHILE THE CONSCIOUS POLITICIANS FROM SANTANDER ABANDONED THEIR POSITIONS OF MICHAEL´S ERMIT. THAT CHANGE COULD HAVE BEEN THE CONSEQUENCE OF THE REORGANIZATION OF THE BASQUE ARMY IN DIVISIONS AND BRIGADES. THE SINKING OF THE ARMORED “ESPAÑA” BOOSTED THE TROOPS´ MORALE. BUT I THINK WHAT WAS KEY THERE WAS THE VERY SPIRIT OF THE BASQUE PEOPLE: AS SOON AS THEY BREATHED A LITTLE THEY BECAME STRONG ONCE AGAIN.” 

6. “AND AS WE AREN´T SPANISH BUT PEOPLE WHO HAVE AN EYE OPENED ON THE WORLD, THE WAR FUMES AND THE FALSE HEROISM OF SPAIN DO NOT INTOXICATE US. WE DON´T FIGHT EACH OTHER. WE REACH AGREEMENTS AND END UP LOWERING THE VOICE. THERE LIES THE DIFFERENCES BETWEEN US AND SPAIN, MY ENGLISH FRIEND, SAID LEIZAOLA.”

7. “AFTER ALL, THE BASQUE COUNTRY WAS A SMALL PLACE AND DIDN´T HAVE MANY CANNONS NOR ANY OTHER DEVICES. THEY DIDN´T RECEIVE HELP FROM ABROAD, AND BASQUE PEOPLE WERE REALLY NATURAL, SINCERE AND NOT VERY SKILLED ON THE ART OF WAR. DURING MOST OF THE TERRIBLE CIRCUNSTANCES THEY WENT THROUGH THEY KEPT THE TORCH OF HUMANITY AND CIVILIZATION.  THEY DID NOT KILL ANYONE, NEITHER DID THEY  TORTURE  NOR VENT THEIR ANGER ON THEIR PRISONERS. THEY RESPECTED THE FREEDOM OF SPEECH AND OF CREDO, CAREFULLY AND PASSIONATELY OBSERVING ALL THE WRITTEN AND NON-WRITTEN LAWS, WHICH PROTECT THE RESPECT OF MEN BETWEEN EQUALS. THEY NEVER HOLD ANYONE HOSTAGE. THEY ANSWERED INHUMANE METHODS OF THOSE WHO HATED THEM WITH PROTEST ONLY. THEY ALWAYS TOLD THE TRUTH, AS LONG AS WAR ALLOWED THEM TO AND THEY KEPT THEIR PROMISES.”

8. “THE MOMENT WE LEFT RETUERTO, COVERED IN DUST, LEAVING BEHIND TRAINS LOADED WITH ARTILLERY AND SMALL AND CREAKY TANKS WHICH SLIDED ON THE BURNING ASPHALT DURING MIDDAY IN BIZKAIA, TWO COMPANIES OF THE BASQUE BATTALION MADE THEIR ENTRANCE, COMMANDED BY THREE AWSOME YOUNG MEN WITH EXCELLENT FIGURES. THEY WERE SPECIALIZED TROOPS. WHAT JAUREGHY AND I MOST ADMIRED THEM FOR WAS THAT THEY MARCHED IN PERFECT ORDER, ACCORDING TO THE MILITARY DISCIPLINE CANONSTHOSE MEN ADVANCING IN ROWS, THEIR COMPOSURE, THEIR OBEDIENCE AND FIRMNESS MADE US FEEL SAD. ON THEIR FACES AND THEIR STEPS WE COULD READ A GREAT ENERGY WHICH DENOTED THEY WEREN´T SIMPLY CANNON FODDER. THEY WERE OVERWHELMED WITH A DEEP EMOTION. THEIR EYES WERE FLASHING IN ANGER AND INDOMITABLE HARMONY EVERY TIME THEY ANSWERED US. THEY SUMMED UP THE DESTINY OF BILBAO FOR US, THE LAST BASTION OF PURE DEMOCRACY IN SPAIN. WHAT A STAMINA THEY HAD! AND NOW HERE THEY WERE DEFEATED BY THE COMBINATION FORCES OF GERMANY, ITALY AND CASTILE, WHILE OTHERS, WHO HAD DECLARED THEMSELVES THEIR ALLIES, WERE SITTING ON THEIR HANDS IN ORDER TO OBSERVE. THEIR ARTILLERY DID NOT HAVE ANY GRANADES AND THEIR AIR FORCE DID NOT ARRIVE… THEY WERE THE LAST DEFENDERS OF BILBAO STILL IN ORDER, FURIOUS WITH THEIR BOSSES FOR NOT HAVING LET THEM KEEP IN TOUCH. WE ARRIVED IN SANTANDER. WHAT A DIFFERENCE BETWEEN IT AND BILBAO! DESPITE WHAT THE MEDIA SAID ABOUT IT AT THAT TIME SANTANDER WAS NEVER A BASQUE CITY. IT WAS THE CAPITAL OF THE NORTHEST PROVINCE IN THE OLD CASTILE. BASQUE TERRITORY ENDED IN CASTRO URDIALES. SANTANDER WAS SPAIN. SANTANDER AND ITS PROVINCE WERE RIGHT WING, NOT LEFT ONE. IN THE ELECTIONS OF FEBRUARY 1936 WHICH ESTABLISHED A LEFT WING GOVERNMENT IN SPAIN, IN SANTANDER AND ITS PROVINCE, 60% OF THE VOTES WERE RIGHT WING. AND YET, THE CIVIL WAR TRIGGERED BY THE UPRISE OF THE ARMY OFFICIALS AND THE RIGHT WING PARTIES FOUND SANTANDER BACKING UP THE  GOVERNMENT.   THAT´S WHY RIGHT WING ONES DIDN´T DARE MOVE, AND THE ACCUSTOMED DEFENSE BOARD OF ALL THE LEFT WING PARTIES TOOK CONTROL OF THE SITUATION LIKE THEY DID IN BILBAO. HOWEVER, THEY DIDN´T THINK OF THE MODERATE INFLUENCE OF SUCH AN ORGANIZATION AS THAT OF THE BASQUE NATIONALISTS.”

9. “JUAN DE AJURIAGUERRA, PRESIDENT OF THE EXECUTIVE COMMITTEE OF THE BASQUE NATIONALISTIC PARTY, DECIDED TO REACH PEACE AGREEMENTS SEPARATELY. WITH GENERAL MANCINI, CAPTAIN OF BLACK ARROWS ITALIAN DIVISION. AN ANCESTRAL BASQUE TRADITION, ONE OF THE KEY PRINCIPLES OF A DEMOCRATIC PACIFISM, STARTED TO TAKE CONTROL OF THE THOUGHTS OF THE BASQUE ARMIES. BASQUE PEOPLE ARE AMONG THE ONES WHO TRAVEL MORE AROUND THE WORLD. THEY BUILT SHIPS WHERE LATER ON THEY TRAVELLED IN ORDER TO DISCOVER THE EAST HEMISPHERE. MUCH OF THE TREASURE IN AMERICA WERE FORGED BY BASQUE PEOPLE. THE GREAT CITIES IN THE SOUTH AMERICA WERE BUILT WITH BASQUE MONEY. HOWEVER, TOGETHER WITH THEIR LOVE FOR ADVENTURE IS THEIR PASSIONATE LOVE FOR THEIR HOME. THEIR IDEAL IS COMING BACK TO BIZKAIA.”

10. “IN THE GREEN MOUNTAINS, BASQUE MEN WERE GREAT WARRIORS AGAINST MOORS, GOTHS AND CASTILIANS. THEY KEPT THEIR OLD CULTURE, AND THEIR FREEDOM FREE FROM FEUDALISM. THAT CULTURE AND THAT FREEDOM MADE BASQUE PEOPLE PACIFIST AT HEART. BASQUE MEN WERE READY TO FIGHT FOR THE FREEDOM OF THEIR SEAS AND FOR THE FREEDOM OF THEIR OWN COUNTRY, BUT IT WAS NOT POSSIBLE FOR THEM TO TURN INTO AGGRESSORS IN THE TWENTIETH CENTURY”.

11. “CENTURIES OF FIGHTS, ADVENTURES IN FIVE CONTINENTS HAVE MADE BASQUE PEOPLE REALLY RESILIENT AND QUIET. THEY CONTINUE TO BE FREE FROM ANY REGIMES. THEIR NON-CLASSIST MORALE STATE CAN´T BE FOUND ON WRITTEN CONSTITUTIONS, BUT IN THE HISTORY AND THE PREHISTORY, AND IT HAS NOT BEEN DEFENDED BY WEAPONS, BUT BY THE UNSHAKEABLE CONSCIENCE OF ITS ADVANTAGES OVER ANYTHING ELSE. BECAUSE BASQUE PEOPLE HAVE NEVER BEEN SLAVES NOR VILLAINS THEY ARE AHEAD OF THEIR NEIGHBOURS AND THEY KNOW IT. THEY ARE PROUD OF HAVING GOVERNED THEMSELVES, OF KEEPING THE ORDER, AND THE TRUE PEACE OF THE CHURCH. THEY GAVE FREEDOM TO ALL CONSCIENCES, FED THE HUNGRY ONES, HEALED THE SICK ONES, THEY RULED ALL THE SERVICES OF THE GOVERNMENT WITHOUT HAVING ANY DISPUTES BETWEEN THE EXECUTIVE  POWER AND THE PEOPLE, NOR EVEN BETWEEN THE THEORETICAL DIVERGENTS ON THEIR EXECUTIVE CHAMBER. IN THE WHOLE OF SPAIN THEY WERE THE ONLY ONES WHO PROVED TO BE READY TO RULE. WHILE OTHERS KILLED, MASSACRED, TERRORIZED THE WORKING CLASSES AND SOLD THEIR HOME COUNTRY TO THE ENEMY, BASQUE PEOPLE JOINED THEIR LITTLE NATION WITH THE STRONG BONDS OF THE HUMAN SOLIDARITY. THEIR ROOTS ARE VERY DEEP AND THEIR LINAGE VERY OLD, BUT THEIR PROGRESS IS FULL OF FRESHNESS AND VIRTUE AND THEY GET RENEWED EVERY YEAR. THEY ACCUMULATE CONTINUAL  ENERGY AND HEALTH, WHICH EMANATES FROM A SOCIETY WITHOUT CLASSES, AND THEY REMAIN STILL UNDER FIRE AND EXPLOSIONS, TO PROVIDE SHELTER TO FUTURE LEGISLATORS WHOM THEIR BASQUE PEOPLE CHOOSE. THEIR SYMBOL AND HISTORY IS THE TREE OF GERNIKA.”

IN TERMS OF SYMBOLS THE KEY ONE OF THE BASQUE COUNTRY AUTONOMOUS COMMUNITY IS THE IKURRIÑA. IT CONSISTS OF A RED GROUND SYMBOLIZING “ THE BISCAYAN PEOPLE (THE RACE), A GREEN SALTIRE REPRESENTING THE OAK OF GUERNICA, A SYMBOL OF THE OLD LAWS OF BIZCAY OR FUEROS; AND OVER THEM, THE  WHITE  CROSS OF GOD´S SYMBOL OF BASQUE CATHOLIC DEVOTION. IT WAS DESIGNED IN 1894 BY SABINO ARANA, AND ADOPTED AS THE FLAG OF THE BASQUE COUNTRY IN 1936. IN 1938, AFTER THE MILITARY DEFEAT OF THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT THE REGIME OF THE GENERAL FRANCO PROHIBITED THIS FLAG – ALTHOUGH IT CONTINUED TO BE USED IN THE BASQUE DEPARTMENTS OF FRANCE. IN THE FOLLOWING DECADES IT BECAME A SYMBOL OF DEFIANCE AND THE FIRST ACTIONS OF THE CLANDESTINE GROUP OF ETA INVOLVED PLACING FLAGS IN PUBLIC PLACES. THE BASQUE FLAG WAS LEGALISED AGAIN IN 1977 DURING THE SPANISH TRANSITION TO DEMOCRACY. TWO YEARS LATER, THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT ADOPTED IT AS THE FLAG OF THE BASQUE AUTONOMOUS COMMUNITY” (IKURRIÑA – WIKIPEDIA).

KEEPING IN MIND THE WHITE CROSS OF THE IKURRIÑA REPRESENTS GOD WE CAN SAY IN THE PAST BASQUE PEOPLE USED TO HAVE A STRONG FAITH IN GOD. THAT STRONG FAITH COULD BE SEEN IN 1937 IN THE NURSING HOME OF LA CARIDAD IN GERNIKA. BACK THEM 33 PEOPLE DIED THERE DUE TO THE BOMB DROPPED IN. AMONG THOSE 33 PEOPLE TWO NUNS. THERE WAS A RED CROSS FLAG HANGING FROM THE CEILING AND OTHER TWO IN THE WINDOWS.

IF WE THINK THOSE RED FLAGS COULD BE CLEARLY SEEN BY ANYONE, AND IF WE ADD TO THIS THE BOMBS FALLING DOWN NEAR THE CONVENT OF THE MERCENARY MOTHERS OF RENTERIA (APRIL 26, 1937), AND THE INTENSE BOMBARDMENT IN THREE CHURCHES WHILE MANY PEOPLE WERE CELEBRATING MASS, KILLING 14 NUNS AND 2 PRIESTS IT CAN BE SAID THAT STRONG BASQUE FAITH WAS SOMETHING CMTGS BACK THEM DID NOT LIKE ABOUT BASQUE PEOPLE, AND THEY WERE WILLING TO DO ANYTHING TO COUNTERATTACK IT. NOWADAYS THE BASQUE COUNTRY IS STILL SUFFERING THE CONSEQUENCES OF THOSE ACTIONS AGAINST ITS STRONG FAITH AND THEIR FREEDOM FOR JUSTICE AND TRUTH.

 

 

 

 

SPAIN AND WORLD TERROR TODAY

SOMETIMES WHEN LOOKING INTO THINGS AND EVENTS WHICH SEEM COMPLETELY UNRELATED WE REALIZE THEY ACTUALLY SHARE A LOT IN COMMON. THIS IS THE CASE OF THE ISLAND OF THE BAHAMAS AND AFRICA, WHICH NOONE WOULD TELL THEY ARE RELATED, BUT THEY ARE REALLY SINCE THE BAHAMAS´ SAND UNBELIVABLY COMES ALL THE WAY FROM AFRICA, AND IT´S THE WIND WHICH POSITIONS IT ON IT GIVING IT THAT AWSOME PARADISE LOOK.

ANOTHER EXAMPLE WHICH SHOWS US THINGS ARE NOT THE WAY THEY SEEM IS THE ONE OF VULTURES. THE POPULAR IMAGE WE´VE GOT OF THEM ISN´T BEAUTIFUL, BUT THE TRUTH IS THAT WHEN THEY FLY THEY LOOK ELEGANT. BESIDES THAT THEY´RE QUITE SHY AND THEY WAIT FOR 1-2 HOURS TO CHECK WHETHER THE ANIMAL THEY FIND IS ALREADY DEAD BEFORE THEY START EATING IT.

WE, HUMAN BEINGS, OFTEN FORGET ABOUT THE RELATION BETWEEN RELEVANT HISTORICAL EVENTS AND TODAY, SINCE SUCH EVENTS ARE KEY TO UNDERSTAND WHAT´S GOING ON TODAY; AND THE GOAL OF THIS ARTICLE IS TO REMIND US ALL OF THE TRUTH BEHIND SO MANY LIES TOLD ABOUT GERNIKA, DURANGO AND THE BASQUE COUNTRY TO DISCREDIT IT AND MAKE PEOPLE CONFUSE ABOUT A HORRIBLE CONSPIRATION BY CMTGS AGAINST THE BASQUE COUNTRY. WHY REVIEW IT AGAIN NOW? BECAUSE THE CONSPIRATION AGAINST THE BASQUE COUNTRY IS STILL GOING ON TODAY, THOUGH CMTGS´ WAYS ARE SO SUBTLE AND HIDDEN THAT GO UNNOTICED.

TIME GOES BY AND YET BLOODSHEDS LIKE THE ONE IN GERNIKA IN 1937 REMIND US WE´VE GOT TO REMEMBER WHAT REALLY HAPPENED THERE SINCE WE, BASQUE PEOPLE, DESERVE TRUTH. LIES AND MANIPULATION OF WHAT REALLY HAPPENED IN GERNIKA, LIKE IN OTHER BELIC EPISODES, SPREAD OUT IN MANY DIFFERENT BOOKS THROUGHOUT HISTORY, MUST NOT STOP US FROM BACKING UP THE TRUTH, THAT IS, THE BARBARISM AGAINST OUR MOST BASQUE NATURE, THAT IS, OUR NOBLE SPIRIT, OUR POWER.

LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS WERE BEHIND GERNIKA´S AND DURANGO´S BOMBARDMENTS, AND LET´S ALSO IMAGINE WHAT WAS GOING ON IN CATALONIA AS FOR THE DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE IN NOVEMBER 2017 WAS NO COINCIDENCE. LET´S IMAGINE THE TIMING THERE WAS NOT DECIDED BY CATALONIANS BUT BY CMTGS, WHO DID INFILTRATE CATALONIA TO DO THAT KIND OF BRAINWASHING JOB, IN ORDER TO CARRY OUT A SLOWING DOWN IN THE SPANISH ECONOMY AND ALSO TO DISTRACT ATTENTION FROM WORLD TERROR ATTACKS AMONG SOME OTHER THINGS. THE FOLLOWING QUOTES MAY HELP US UNDERSTAND SOME OF THE CONFUSING EVENTS GOING ON TODAY:

1. “…IF BASQUE PEOPLE HAD HAD BOMBING AIR FORCE THEY WOULD HAVE DESTROYED THE ITALIAN DIVISION BLACK ARROWS MAY 1-3, 1937, AND THE ATTACK TO BILBAO WOULD HAVE BEEN PREVENTED. NOW WE´LL SEE HOW THE WORLD CONSPIRED TO AVOID FASCISM PLANS FROM SUFFERING SUCH HUGE DEFEAT. THE REPUBLIC HAD PROMISED TO SEND AIR FORCE TO BILBAO IN ORDER TO DEFEND IT, DESPITE THE MANY DIFFICULTIES BIZKAIA HAD. THE PROBLEM WAS HOW TO MAKE THOSE PLANES GO FROM LEVANTE TO THE NORTH. CISNEROS DIDN´T WANT TO SEND AIR FORCE IN DIRECT FLIGHT. HE THOUGHT OF SENDING THE AIR FORCE THROUGH FRANCE WHERE THEY COULD GET FUEL AND ARRIVE FAST IN BILBAO, FLYING OVER THE GULF OF BIZKAIA. THE EXECUTION OF THIS PLAN WAS POSTPONED DURING THE CRITICAL PERIOD OF THE BATTLE OF BERMEO, DUE TO THE CIVIL SUPERWAR OF THE SINDICATES OF BARCELONA; THE CATALONIA AIR FORCE HAD PROMISED TO COOPERATE DEFENDING BIZKAIA. ONE MORE TIME, THE EXTREME LEFT  COMBINED THINGS WITH ASTURIAS AND SANTANDER, IN ORDER TO MAKE BASQUE PEOPLE SUFFER A SLOW TORTURE” (ARBOL DE GUERNICA. G.L. STEER).

2. “THE BOMBING OF GUERNICA (26 APRIL 1937) WAS AN AERIAL BOMBING OF THE BASQUE TOWN OF GUERNICA DURING THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR. IT WAS CARRIED OUT AT THE BEHEST OF FRANCISCO FRANCO´S NATIONALIST GOVERNMENT BY ITS ALLIES” (BOMBING OF GUERNICA. WIKIPEDIA).

3. “THE FRENCH NEWSPAPER L´HUMANITÉ POINTED OUT WITH THE BOMBARDMENT OF GERNIKA ALL CRUEL RECORDS HAD BEEN BROKEN, AND WARNED ALL WORLD CATHOLICS TO TAKE NOTE OF IT, AND SO “WHEN THEY HEAR SOMEOME SAY SPANISH FASCISM FIGHTS FOR THE DEFENSE OF RELIGION THEY SHOULD ANSWER ONLY ONE WORD: GERNIKA” (GERNIKA, EL BOMBARDEO. IMANOL VILLA).

THE THING IS THAT CMTGS ARE FACTS DISTORTION SPECIALISTS . CMTGS BOMBARDED GERNIKA AND THEN ACCUSED THE INNOCENT ONES OF WHAT THEY DID. THERE´S ENOUGH EVIDENCE TO STATE THERE WAS GERMAN AND ITALIAN AIR FORCE IN THE REBEL ARMY DESPITE THE LIES FROM RADIO SALAMANCA AND GENERAL QUEIPO DE LLANO DENYING ALL THAT.

4. “…APRIL 27, 1937 THE BOMBERS DIDN´T FLY THE WAY THE MISSION REPORTS SHOWED. BESIDES, AS THE LEGION CONDOR REPORT DIDN´T SAY ANYTHING ABOUT FIRE, NOBODY IN THE REBEL BAND SUSPECTED THE RESPONSIBILITY WAS THEIRS. THIS BLUNDER MADE THE NEWS ABOUT GERNIKA, THE TRUTH ABOUT THE BOMBING,  SPREAD RAPIDLY ALL OVER EUROPE” (GERNIKA, EL BOMBARDEO. IMANOL VILLA).

LET´S IMAGINE THAT WAS NOT A MISTAKE, THAT IS, THE FACT THAT IN THE GERMAN AND ITALIAN REPORTS THERE WEREN´T ANY REFERENCES TO GERNIKA DOES NOT MEAN CMTGS DIDN´T PLAN TO FIRE GERNIKA. LET´S IMAGINE MOLA WAS THE BRAIN OF THIS SADISM AND LET´S IMAGINE MOLA KNEW SOMEONE WHO SPOKE GERMAN AND BRIBED HIM TO TELL GOERING TO CARRY OUT MOLA´S CRUEL PLAN. LET´S IMAGINE MOLA´S CRUEL PLAN WAS TO ASK FOR HELP FROM GERMAN AND ITALIAN AIR FORCES NOT TO HAVE ANY REFERENCES TO THE DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA, NOT TO BE UNCOVERED JUST IN CASE THE WHOLE TRUTH WAS KNOWN SOMEDAY,  LIKE IT FINALLY DID. THIS WAY CMTGS COULD ALWAYS ARGUE THAT SINCE GERNIKA WASN´T MENTIONED IN ANY GERMAN OR ITALIAN MISSION REPORTS ONLY RED ONES, RUSSIAN AND FRENCH ONES, WERE RESPONSIBLE OF THEM. 

THE SAME AS ALL THAT PREMEDITATED CONFUSION AS TO WHAT REALLY HAPPENED IN GERNIKA AT THE TIME HAPPENS IN THE WORLD TODAY. NOONE WOULD THINK THAT SPAIN AND WORLD TERROR TODAY WOULD BE RELATED, AND YET PIECES OF NEWS SUCH AS THE ONE OF OCTOBER 25, 2017 ABOUT A 52-YEAR-OLD SPANISH MAN DETAINED, SINCE HE WAS A MEMBER OF DAESCH, WHO HAD BEEN IN PRISON UNTIL 2011, ONLY ADDS MORE EVIDENCE FOR THE EXISTENCE OF A SPANISH MAFIA. THAT SPANISH MAFIA IS TRYING TO BLOCK EUROPE BY MEANS OF TERROR ATTACKS, BLOCK THE U.S. WITH A BUNCH OF TERROR ATTACKS LIKE THE LAST ONE ON SUNDAY NOVEMBER 5, 2017 IN A BAPTIST CHURCH IN TEXAS, KILLING 26 PEOPLE, BLOCK SPAIN ITSELF BY MEANS OF CATALONIA´S INTENT OF THE DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE, AND NOW TRYING TO BLOCK THE WHOLE WORLD BY MEANS OF UNCOVERING THE PAPERS OF PARADISE.

ALL RIGHT, LET´S BE CLEAR HERE ABOUT THE PAPERS OF PARADISE. THIS HAS BEEN GOING ON FOR MANY DECADES AND EVERYONE OF US KNEW OF IT, AND NOONE SAID ANYTHING BECAUSE MOST OF THE PEOPLE INVOLVED HAD BEEN ADVISED BY PROFESSIONALS TO DO SO. WE KNOW THAT IS NOTHING COMPARED TO THE CRIMES THEY SHOULD BE AFTER. IT´S JUST ONE MORE EXCUSE TO DISTRACT ATTENTION FROM MORE SERIOUS ISSUES, LIKE FOR EXAMPLE THE CASE OF THE 29-YEAR-OLD TERRORIST, SAIPOV, WHO KILLED 8 PEOPLE AND HURT 11 NOVEMBER 2, 2017 IN MANHATTAN, U.S.

BESIDES DISTRACTION CMTGS MAKE USE OF THEIR QUAKERY ABILITY TO SPREAD CONFUSION, AS THEY´VE RECENTLY DONE WITH PUTIN´S THREE COUNSELLORS. LET´S IMAGINE THE AMERICAN ATTORNEYS AGAINST THOSE 3 RUSSIAN COUSELLORS WERE BRIBED TO SAY SUCH THING, BEING A TOTAL LIE ITSELF. OF COURSE, MR. PUTIN DENIED SUCH ACCUSATIONS AGAINST HIS COUNSELLORS NOVEMBER 11, 2017, SINCE THEY DID THEIR JOB RIGHT.

ALL THAT QUAKERY ABILITY AND CONFUSION ARE PART OF THE SINISTER GAMES CMTGS PLAY. ONE OF THE MOST SINISTER GAMES THEY PLAYED WAS BACK TO THE TIME WHEN THE BOMBARDMENT OF GERNIKA TOOK PLACE. THE FOLLOWING QUOTES GIVE US RELEVANT CLUES AS TO WHAT WE´RE TALKING ABOUT:

1. IMANOL VILLA IS RIGHT WHEN HE TALKS OF A SYNISTER GAME ON GERNIKA:

“ GENERAL FRANCO NEEDED A PLANE, THE DRAGON RAPIDE, TO FLY FROM THE CANARY ISLANDS TO TETUÁN IN ORDER TO TAKE CHARGE OF THE QUALIFIED TROOPS TO CROSS THE STRAIT TO THE PENINSULA. IT´S PARADIGMATIC AND RELEVANT THAT BOTH SANJURJO – MILITARY COUP LEADER – AND MOLA – TRUE BRAIN OF THE OPERATION – DIED IN AIR ACCIDENTS”.

2. “HISTORIAN MANUEL MONTERO SAID THIS:

“ WHAT HAPPENED JULY 18 1936 IS A COUP D´ETATE WHICH DIDN´T GO AS THEY PLANNED IT, SINCE IT WENT WRONG. ON THE OTHER HAND IT´S THE ARMY, FOLLOWED UP BY THE CATHOLIC RIGHT WING, THE TRADITIONAL RIGHT WING, WHO ARE GOING TO BACK UP THE POLITICAL UPHEAVAL, AND IN FRONT OF THEM THE FRENTE POPULAR, THE DEMOCRATIC FORCES, THE LEFT WING FORCES WHO ARE GOING TO DEFEND THE CURRENT GOVERNMENT. AND IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY SOMETHING VERY SIMILAR HAPPENS. THERE ARE GROUPS WHICH SUPPORT THE MILITAR UPRISING, ABOVE ALL IN NABARRA, PARTS OF GIPUZKOA, AND IN ALABA THE TRADITIONALISTS, THE CARLISTS ARE GOING TO MOVILIZE EXCLUSIVELY IN FAVOR OF THE REBELS. THE FORCES OF THE FRENTE POPULAR, TOGETHER WITH THE ANARQUISTS, SOCIALISTS, REPUBLICANS, COMMUNISTS ARE GOING TO BACK UP – LIKE IN THE REST OF SPAIN – THE REPUBLIC, THE LEGITIMATE GOVERNMENT AND THE ESTABLISHED LEGALITY. THE BASQUE NATIONALISM, PNV AND ANV, IS GOING TO STAND BY THE REPUBLIC, AND SO IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY THERE´S GOING TO TAKE PLACE THE SAME KIND OF BREAKING APART WITH THE REST OF SPAIN.”

3. “ GREAT BRITAIN FELT HORRIFIED BY THE MECHANISMS WHICH CAUSED THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR” – EXPLAINS ANTHONY BEEVOR. FOR THE CONSERVATIVE EDEN, FOREIGN AFFAIRS MINISTER WHO HAD SEEN IN 1ST PERSON THE HORRORS OF THE WWI, THE SPANISH CASE COULD DERIVE INTO A SORT OF SARAJEVO, WHICH WOULD IMPLY A FAST EXTENSION OF THE CONFLICT ALL OVER EUROPE.”

“EVERYTHING STARTED TO CHANGE BEFORE JULY 1936 SINCE THE REPUBLIC EXCITED BASQUE PEOPLE´S SPIRITS IN FAVOR OF AN AUTONOMY STATUS. PEOPLE FROM LA ARBOLEDA AND GALLARTA STARTED COMING TO GERNIKA ASKING FOR VOLUNTEERS AND MANY VOLUNTEERS WENT WITH THE VOLUNTEERS REPUBLICAN GOVERNMENT, AND SOME WITH THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT TOO. AND THIS WAY, GERNIKA UNAWARE OF IT BECOME INVOLVED IN THE WAR.”

 “IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY THERE WERE 6 POLITICAL PARTIES: PNV, ANV,THE SOCIALIST PARTY, REPUBLICAN PARTIES AND THE COMMUNIST PARTY. OCTOBER 7, JOSE ANTONIO AGUIRRE, PRESIDENT OF THE 1ST BASQUE GOVERNMENT TOOK POSSESSION OF ITS POST DURING THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR. IN THE REST OF SPAIN EVENTS SPEEDED UP IN FAVOR OF THE FASCIST PARTY WHICH WAS GAINING GROUND. IN SEPTEMBER 1936, FRANCO TOGETHER WITH MOLA WERE ALMOST CERTAIN THEY WOULD WIN THE WAR, HOWEVER WITH THE HELP OF THE RUSSIAN AIR FORCE AND THE INTERNATIONAL BRIGADES HELPING THE REPUBLIC IN MADRID, FRANCO´S  ARMIES ADVANCE  WAS STOPPED.”

“ON THE OTHER HAND,THE GERMAN CONSULTANTS ADVISED FRANCO TO CHANGE PLANS AND MOVE THE ARMIES TO THE NORTH, AND SO THE BOMBS REACHED GERNIKA. THE REPUBLICAN AREA IN THE NORTH WAS NOT HOMOGENEOUS – EXPLAINS ANTHONY BEEVOR -. ASTURIAS AND SANTANDER WERE CONTROLLED BY SOCIALISTS AND COMMUNISTS AND THERE WAS ALSO A SIGNIFICANT ANARCHIST PRESENCE. HOWEVER, THE BASQUE COUNTRY WAS VERY DIFFERENT. BASQUE PEOPLE WERE MORE CONSERVATIVE AND CATHOLIC. THEIR PRESIDENT WAS DEMOCRAT AND CHRISTIAN. THE ONLY REASON WHY THEY DECIDED TO BACK UP REPUBLICANISM WAS BECAUSE THEY HAD PROMISED THEM THE AUTONOMY. EVEN FOR THE BRITISH ONES BASQUE PEOPLE WERE VERY DIFFERENT FROM THE REST OF THE REPUBLICAN SPAIN. GREAT BRITAIN HAD HAD IMPORTANT CONTACTS WITH BASQUE PEOPLE FOR A LONG TIME. BESIDES, DURING THE EUROPEAN CONFLICT BASQUE PEOPLE HAD LEANED TOWARDS THE ENGLISH, THE ALLIES, WHILE IN CASTILE THEY WERE INCLINED TOWARDS THE GERMANS.”

4. KLAUS MAIER: “GENERAL MOLA, MAJOR OF THE NORTH ARMY, DEMANDED  RICHTHOFEN  TO DESTROY TOTALLY THE INDUSTRY IN THE NORTH OF SPAIN, SINCE IN HIS OPINION SPAIN WAS SUFFERING DUE TO  THE FACT THAT THERE WERE SO MANY WORKERS IN THOSE NORTHERN FACTORIES. “

5. “GEORGE LOWTHER STEER  WAS BORN IN SOUTH AFRICA IN 1909. AFTER FINISHING HIS STUDIES IN OXFORD HE STARTED WORKING AS A JOURNALIST. IN APRIL 1937 G. STEER  ARRIVED IN BILBAO,AND ON THE MORNING OF APRIL 1937 HE SAW HOW THE GERMAN AIR FORCE THREW DOWN BOMBS IN THE CROSSROADS OF ARBAZEGI-GERRIKAIZ:

6. “NICHOLAS RANKIN: 

“THE TIMES SENT G. STEER  TO SPAIN TO COVER THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR AND HE STARTED IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY.

 

THEN HE WENT TO BURGOS AND TOLEDO AND SAW HOW THE WHOLE OF SPAIN WAS OCCUPIED BY FRANCO, AND HE FOUND OUT IT QUITE UNPLEASANTG. STEER WITNESSED HOW GENERAL MOLA OCCUPIED GIPUZKOA FROM THE FRENCH BORDER. G. STEER  WAS CLOSELY WATCHED AND CENSORED, AND AFTER SOME TIME HE LEFT SPAIN. HE ARRIVED IN BIZKAIA IN JANUARY 1937 AND A FEW DAYS LATER THEY TOLD HIM HIS WIFE HAD DIED WHILE GIVING BIRTH IN LONDON, AND THAT WAS A TURNING POINT OF HIS LIFE. THEREFORE, HE DECIDED TO STAY IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY DURING THE CAMPAIGN IN THE NORTH FRONT. HE SHOWED A TOTAL COMMITMENT TO HIS JOB AND TO THE GROUP HE THOUGHT WAS THE RIGHT ONE TO BE HELPED AND BE BACKED UP.”

“IN HIS CHRONICLES HE EXPRESSED THE SUFFERING AND THE IMPACT OF THE BRUTAL WAR, AND OF DEATH ITSELF.

G. STEER GOT ALONG REALLY WELL WITH THE BASQUE ARMY AND BECAME ONE OF PRESIDENT AGUIRRE´S CLOSEST COLLABORATORS:

DURING HIS LIFE G. STEER WORKED AS A JOURNALIST, WRITER AND ARMY OBSERVER. AFTER MARRYING A 2ND TIME TO ESME´ BARTON , THE WW2 TOOK HIM TO INDIA WHERE HE DIED IN A CAR ACCIDENT. THE WATCH HE WAS WEARING AT THAT MOMENT HAD BEEN PRESIDENT AGUIRRE´S  PRESENT, AND IT HAD THE FOLLOWING INSCRIPTION:

“TO G. STEER  FROM THE BASQUE COUNTRY”.”

“IN THE ARTICLE THE TRAGEDY OF GUERNICA G. STEER  WROTE THIS:

“IN THE FORM OF ITS EXECUTION AND THE SCALE OF THE DESTRUCTION IT WROUGHT, NO LESS THAN IN THE SELECTION OF ITS OBJECTIVE, THE RAID ON GUERNICA IS UNPARALLELED IN MILITARY HISTORY. A FACTORY PRODUCING WAR MATERIAL LAY OUTSIDE THE TOWN AND WAS UNTOUCHEDSO WERE TWO BARRACKS SOME SOME DISTANCE FROM THE TOWN. THE TOWN LAY FAR BEHIND THE LINES. THE OBJECT OF THE BOMBARDMENT WAS SEEMINGLY THE DEMORALIZATION OF THE CIVIL POPULATION AND THE DESTRUCTION OF THE CRADLE OF THE BASQUE RACE. EVERY FACT BEARS OUT THIS APPRECIATION, BEGINNING WITH THE DAY WHEN THE DEED WAS DONE. THE EFFECT OF THE BOMBARDMENT OF GUERNICA, THE BASQUES´HOLY CITY, HAS BEEN PROFOUND AND HAS LED PRESIDENT AGUIRRE  TO ISSUE THE FOLLOWING  STATEMENT  IN  THIS  MORNING´S BASQUE PRESS:

THE GERMAN AIRMEN IN THE SERVICE OF THE SPANISH REBELS HAVE BOMBARDED GUERNICA, BURNING THE HISTORIC TOWN WHICH IS HELD IS SUCH VENERATION BY ALL BASQUES. THEY HAVE SOUGHT TO WOUND US IN THE MOST SENSITIVE OF OUR PATRIOTIC SENTIMENTS, ONCE MORE MAKING IT ENTIRELY CLEAR WHAT EUZKADI MAY EXPECT OF THOSE WHO DO NOT HESITATE TO DESTROY US DOWN TO THE VERY SANCTUARY WHICH RECORDS THE CENTURIES OF OUR LIBERTY AND OUR DEMOCRACY. BEFORE THIS OUTRAGE ALL WE BASQUES MUST REACT WITH VIOLENCE, SWEARING FROM THE BOTTOM OF OUR HEARTS TO DEFEND THE PRINCIPLES OF OUR PEOPLE WITH UNHEARD OF STUBBORNNESS AND HEROISM IF THE CASE REQUIRES IT”.

NICHOLAS RANKIN: ” AT THAT TIME THE TIMES WAS AN IMPORTANT NEWSPAPER. ALL PARLAMENTARY MEMBERS READ IT AND WHAT WAS RELEVANT WAS IN THERE. AND SO THE PARLAMENTARY MEMBERS, THE CHURCH, LABOR UNIONS AND EVERYONE SUPPORTING THE REPUBLIC, ALL REJECTED THE SADISM CARRIED OUT IN A PEACEFUL CITY SUCH AS GUERNICA.”

ANTHONY BEEVOR: ” G. STEER´S ARTICLE WAS PUBLISHED IN LONDON AND NEW YORK AND HAD AN IMMEDIATE EFFECT IN THE WHOLE WORLD. FOR MANY POLITICIANS, EDEN  AMONG THEM, GERNIKA WAS THE BEGINNING OF THE HORROR REPRESENTED BY THE NAZI REGIME. ” “REGARDING THIS POINT KLAUS MAIER SAID THIS: “ALL THIS REINFORCED THE  LATENT FEAR FOR THE AIR ATTACK, ESPECIALLY IN GREAT BRITAIN. IT´S REGISTERED IN THE ACTS THAT FOR EXAMPLE CHAMBERLAIN WAS WARNED BY HIS OWN SECRET MILITARY SERVICE, THE MI-5, IN THE NEGOTIATION OF SEPTEMBER 1938, DURING  THE SUDETEN CRISIS, ABOUT NOT TAKING PART IN THE WAR, SINCE GREAT BRITAIN WOULDN´T BE PREPARED TO FIGHT BACK AGAINST THE GERMAN AIRMEN WHICH WOULD BE SOON EXPECTED.”  

7. JESUS SALAS : “THE APRIL 28 OFFICIAL REPORT STATED GERNIKA WAS NOT A MILITARY OBJECTIVE FOR THE SPANISH AIRMEN…”

LET´S IMAGINE WHAT WAS WRITTEN IN THAT REPORT WAS A LIE. LET´S IMAGINE GERNIKA WAS A MILITARY OBJECTIVE BUT IT WAS CMTGS ALONE WHO  PLANNED IT WITHOUT TELLING ANYONE. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS´S PLAN WAS THE FOLLOWING: CONTACT GERMAN AND ITALIAN AIR FORCE IN ORDER TO HELP THEM DESTROY REPUBLICANS AND NEVER TELL  THEM THAT THEIR REAL OBJECTIVE OF THE SADIST BOMBARDMENTS WOULD BE THE DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA AS THIS HISTORIC CITY WAS THE EMBLEMATIC SYMBOL OF FREEDOM AND DEMOCRACY TO HARM THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT INSTITUTION. LET´S IMAGINE THE 3 SPANISH CMTGS FOOLED THE GERMAN AND ITALIAN AIR FORCE TELLING THEM THEIR OBJECTIVE WERE THE REPUBLICANS, AND THAT OF COURSE AVOIDING THE NAME OF GERNIKA FROM BEING WRITTEN IN ANY DOCUMENTS.  IT WAS AN AWFUL LOT OF CYNICAL MANEUVERS CARRIED OUT BY CMTGS.

JUST LIKE  GERNIKA PLANNED MASSACRE IN 1937 THE WORLD TODAY  IS ALSO THE VICTIM OF CMTGS´S MODERN MANEUVERS. G. STEER  SAID THAT IN THE FUTURE  EACH CITIZEN WOULD BE CONSIDERED A MILITARY OBJECTIVE AND I FULLY AGREE WITH HIM. G. STEER  HIMSELF SUFFERED IT, AND NICHOLAS RANKIN  BACKED THAT UP WHEN HE STATED G. STEER  HAD BEEN CLOSELY WATCHED AND CENSORED. LET´S IMAGINE THE CRASH OF THE HEAVILY LOADED ARMY JEEP  DRIVEN BY G. STEER ON 25 DECEMBER 1944 ON THE WAY TO A CHRISTMAS PARTY IN BURMA WAS NOT AN ACCIDENT BUT A PLANNED ONE AGAINST A MILITARY OBJECTIVE, THAT IS, AGAINST THE SMART MIND OF THE ONLY JOURNALIST  WHO  REALIZED  GERNIKA´S MASSACRE HAD BEEN SUCH A PLANNED ONE IT HAD  TRANSCENDED THE PUNCTUAL REPORTING ACT.

THE THING IS THAT TODAY´S CMTGS, THE ONES BEHIND LONDON´S ATTACKS, U.S. ATTACKS, BRUSSELS´ ATTACKS, GERMANY´S, FRANCE´S AND MANY MORE COUNTRIES´ ARE THE DESCENDANTS OF THOSE CMTGS WHO WERE BEHIND GERNIKA´S ATTACKS. AND ALL THOSE ATTACKS ONLY CONFIRM THE TRUE HORRORS OF THE MODERN WAR G. STEER WARNES US ALL ABOUT. IF CMTGS HAD BEEN MASSACRED BY US, BASQUE PEOPLE, CMTGS WOULD HAVE KILLED  ALL BASQUE PEOPLE ALREADY, SINCE CMTGS ARE REALLY WICKED AND NEVER FORGET NOR FORGIVE. THEY WERE TAUGHT FROM AN EARLY AGE HOW TO BE REALLY CRUEL, AND SO IT´S ONLY NATURAL TO THEM TO KEEP BEING CRUEL TIME AFTER TIME, NO MATTER HOW MUCH WE HELPED THEM OR HOW MUCH WE MAY HAVE DONE FOR THEM IN THE PAST. AS THE  SAYING GOES : “GRATITUDE IS THE SIGN OF THE NOBLE SOULS”, AND SO CMTGS DON´T KNOW WHATSOEVER WHAT GRATITUDE NOR WHAT A NOBLE SOUL REALLY IMPLIES, MEANS OR FEELS LIKE.

 

 

ELABORATED CONSPIRACIES

 

CMTGS LOVE VICE AND LICENTIOUSNESS, AND IN ORDER TO GET THOSE THEY ACCESS POLITICS FIRST, THEN EDUCATION AND LATER ON ALL THE REST OF FIELDS. ALMOST 30 YEARS AGO WE SAW HOW RELEVANT HISTORY EPISODES WERE REMOVED FROM TEXTBOOKS AND HOW PHILOSOPHY WAS ALSO DRIVEN OUT OF THE WAY. WHY SUCH IMPORTANT SUBJECTS WERE ELIMINATED FROM SECONDARY TEXTBOOKS? LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON WHY THEY GOT RID OF SO MANY IMPORTANT HISTORY EPISODES  IN SECONDARY TEXTBOOKS WAS BECAUSE CMTGS ( WHO BECAME POLITICIANS, TEACHERS, ELECTRICIANS, SOUND TECHNICIANS, MAYORS,  DOCTORS, LAWYERS, NOTARIES AND MOLES AT THE SAME TIME AS WELL) WANTED TO HIDE WHAT THE CMTGS´ ANCESTORS HAD DONE IN THE PAST, THAT IS THEIR CRUEL KILLINGS, AND WHAT´S MORE FOR NO REASON AT ALL. LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON WHY CMTGS DECIDED TO REMOVE PHILOSOPHY FROM SECONDARY SCHOOLS WAS ALSO TO DEPRIVE YOUNG PEOPLE FROM THINKING AND THEREFORE FROM TURNING INTO COMPETENCE TO THEM IN POLITICS.

MOST TIMES THE REASONS BEHIND EVENTS ARE QUITE HIDDEN. THIS IS THE CASE OF THE SUN WHEN IT´S AT ITS ZENITH IN THE SAHARA DESERT PROPELLING TROPICAL STORMS AND HURRICANES IN THE CARIBBEAN. THE SAME HAPPENS TODAY WHEN THE KEY WORLD FACT OF IGNORING GOD FUELS THE EXPANSION OF CMTGS TRYING TO INFECT PEOPLE WITH THEIR EVIL BY MEANS OF VIOLENT PRACTICES AND JOINING OTHER TERRORIST GROUPS LIKE DAESH FOR EXAMPLE.

HYPOCRSY RUNS THE WORLD. THE FOLLOWING ARE JUST THREE EXAMPLES OF THE TONS OF THEM ANYWHERE WE LOOK AT TODAY.

THE FIRST ONE HAS TO DO WITH THE PRACTICE OF TYING BURNING TORCHES TO THE HORNS OF BULLS IN FRONT OF  CHEERING CROWDS IN WHAT IS CALLED  SPANISH “BURNING BULL FESTIVALS”. SEEING AN INNOCENT BEING TERRIFIED THE MOMENT THEY ATTACH THE BURNING TORCHES TO THE TOP OF THEIR HEADS, AND DYING SOON AFTER IN A COLLISION IS A REAL DISGRACE. IF SUCH PAIN AND HORROR BRINGS SUCH “JOY” TO PEOPLE SOMETHING IS GOING WRONG, AND HYPOCRYSY HAS TO DO WITH IT.

WE CAN FIND THE SECOND EXAMPLE IN THE NAME OF “LAND OF A MILLION ELEPHANTS” WHEN TALKING ABOUT LAOS, SINCE THEIR ELEPHANT POPULATION HAS FALLEN BY MORE THAN 75% SINCE THE 1980S DUE TO ILLEGAL ELEPHANT TRADE, SELLING THEM TO ZOOS AND OTHERS. THEREFORE WHAT WAS SUPPOSED TO BE LAOS NATIONAL SYMBOL IS ILLEGALLY TRADED COMMERCIALLY. ANOTHER REAL DISGRACE!

THIRD, ABOUT 50,000 GREYHOUNDS ARE KILLED EVERY YEAR SIMPLY BECAUSE THEY STOP WINNING. WE DON´T WANT GREYHOUND RACES, WE DON´T WANT TO SEE THEM IN TINY CAGES AND THEN BEING ABUSED. ALL THE COUNTRIES WHO SUPPORT SUCH BARBARISM SHOULD END IT AS SOON AS POSSIBLE TO PUT AN END TO THIS UNBEARABLE HYPOCRISY WE ARE ALL SURROUNDED BY.

CMTGS DO ALL THEY CAN TO MAKE MONEY, SPECIALLY STEALING IT, STEALING DRUGS CONFISCATED ( THAT´S WHY DRUGS WILL ALWAYS BE OUT THERE ), GETTING INTO BUSINESSES AND GIVING THE WORST OF ADVICE ONCE INSIDE, SO THAT THOSE BUSINESSES GO BANKRUPT AND THEN THEY ARE FINALLY ABLE TO GET BARGAIN PRICES , AND THROUGH TRAFFICKING, SPECIALLY HUMAN TRAFFICKING. THEIR WAY IS BASICALLY LYING 24/7. AS THEY ALSO WORK ON TV THEIR SET UPS ARE EASILY BROADCASTED AND MOST PEOPLE BELIEVE “THE NEWS” THEY WANT US TO SEE AND HEAR ABOUT. FOR INSTANCE WHEN A PROVINCE IS BEING WATCHED FOR CERTAIN REASONS AND CMTGS KNOW THEY ARE BEING CAUGHT THAT´S WHEN THEIR MALICE COMES UP AND THEY COME OUT WITH THE STRANGEST STORIES ONE CAN IMAGINE TO MAKE PEOPLE THINK THEY´RE HUMAN, AND THAT SOMETHING GOOD IS AT LEAST TOLD ABOUT THEM. THERE ARE MANY NEWS WE NEVER HEAR ABOUT OR WE HEAR MONTHS AFTER THEY REALLY TOOK PLACE, SIMPLY BECAUSE CMTGS BRIBE  THE MEDIA NOT TO BROADCAST THEM SINCE THOSE PIECES OF NEWS HAVE TO DO WITH THEIR PROVINCES AND WITH THEIR CRIMES. 

AS FOR TODAY, CMTGS ARE REALLY DESPERATE BECAUSE THEY ARE BEING UNCOVERED. HOW IS THIS HAPPENING? HERE WE GO:

1. IN PARIS ATTACKS IN 2015  MORE THAN 140 PEOPLE  WERE KILLED.

2. SAN BERNARDINO TERROR ATTACK IN CALIFORNIA ON DECEMBER 2, 2015 LEFT 14 PEOPLE DEAD AND 22 SERIOUSLY INJURED. SUCH ATTACK CONSISTED OF “ A MASS SHOOTING AND AN ATTEMPTED BOMBING AT THE INLAND REGIONAL CENTER IN SAN BERNARDINO. THE PERPETRATORS, SYED RIZWAN FAROOK ( A U.S. -BORN CITIZEN OF PAKISTANI DESCENT, WHO WORKED AS A HEALTH DEPARTMENT EMPLOYEE ) AND TASHFEEN MALIK ( A PAKISTANI-BORN LAWFUL PERMANENT RESIDENT OF THE UNITED STATES ), WERE A MARRIED COUPLE. AFTER THE SHOOTING, THE COUPLE FLED IN A RENTED SPORT UTILITY VEHICLE (SUV). 4 HOURS LATER,POLICE PURSUED THEIR VEHICLE AND KILLED THEM IN A SHOOTOUT. ACCORDING TO THE FBI´S INVESTIGATION, THE  PERPETRATORS WERE “HOMEGROWN VIOLENT EXTREMISTS” INSPIRED BY FOREIGN TERRORIST GROUPS” (WIKIPEDIA). LET´S IMAGINE FAROOK AND MALIK WERE DIRECTED BY OTHER FOREIGN TERRORIST GROUPS AND WERE RECENTLY ( ABOUT ONLY 1 MONTH BEFORE THE ATTACK) PART OF A TERRORIST MAFIA.

3. MARCH 22, 2016 BRUSSELS BOMBINGS “KILLED 32 CIVILIANS AND 3 PERPETRATORS, AND MORE THAN 300 PEOPLE WERE INJURED. THE PERPETRATORS BELONGED TO A TERRORIST CELL WHICH HAD BEEN INVOLVED IN THE NOVEMBER 2015 PARIS ATTACKS. THE BRUSSELS BOMBINGS HAPPENED SHORTLY AFTER A SERIES OF POLICE RAIDS TARGETING THE GROUP” (WIKIPEDIA).

4. ORLANDO NIGHTCLUB SHOOTING ON JUNE 12, 2016: “OMAR MATEEN, A 29-YEAR-OLD SECURITY GUARD KILLED 49 PEOPLE AND WOUNDED 58 OTHERS IN ORLANDO, FLORIDA. HE WAS SHOT AND KILLED BY ORLANDO POLICE DEPARTMENT OFFICERS AFTER A THREE-HOUR STANDOFF. IN A 9-1-1 CALL SHORTLY AFTER THE SHOOTING BEGAN, MATEEN SWORE ALLEGIANCE TO THE LEADER OF THE ISLAMIC STATE OF IRAQ AND THE LEVANT (ISIL), ABU BAKR AL-BAGHDADI, AND SAID THE SHOOTING WAS “TRIGGERED” BY THE U.S. KILLING OF ABU WAHEEB IN IRAQ THE PREVIOUS MONTH. HE LATER TOLD A NEGOTIATOR HE WAS “OUT HERE RIGHT NOW” BECAUSE OF THE AMERICAN-LED INTERVENTIONS IN IRAQ AND IN SYRIA, AND THAT THE NEGOTIATOR SHOULD TELL THE UNITED STATES TO STOP BOMBING” (WIKIPEDIA).

5. IN NICE ATTAKS IN 2016 A TERRORIST KILLED 84 PEOPLE

6. BERLIN ONES IN 2016 ENDED UP WITH 12 PEOPLE DEAD.

7. ON 22 MAY 2017   MANCHESTER ARENA BOMBINGS  KILLED 22 PEOPLE. 

8. THURSDAY NIGHT JULY 13 2017, 2 TEENAGERS, A 15-YEAR-OLD AND A 16-YEAR-OLD, WERE ARRESTED FOR THROWING CORROSIVE SUBSTANCES TO PEOPLE´S FACES, IN A SERIES OF 5 ACID ATTACKS IN LESS THAN 90 MIN. IN LONDON TO SPREAD TERROR. THOSE ACID ATTACKS INVOLVED THE THEFT OF 2 MOPEDS. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS PAID OFF THOSE 2 MALE TEENAGERS TO COMMIT SUCH CRIMES. SOME OF THE PEOPLE´S INJURIES WERE “LIFE-CHANGING” ONES. THAT ACID ATTACK SHOULD BE TREATED AS TERROR RELATED. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS PAID OFF THOSE 2 TEENAGERS TO THROW ACID TO PEOPLE IN LONDON IN ORDER TO SPREAD TERROR, SINCE THAT´S EXACTLY WHAT CMTGS WANT.

9. “30 JULY 2017 TERRORISTS PLOTTED TO BLOW UP AUSTRALIAN AEROPLANE, SAYS PM MALCOLM TURNBULL. 4 PEOPLE IN CUSTODY AS AIRPORT SECURITY BEEFED UP. AUSTRALIAN SECURITY SERVICES HAVE DISRUPTED A PLOT TO BLOW  UP AN AEROPLANE, PRIME MINISTER MALCOLM TURNBULL HAS ANNOUNCED. POLICE ARRESTED 4 PEOPLE IN CONNECTION WITH THE ALLEGED PLAN. COUNTER-TERRORISM RAIDS TOOK PLACE IN SYDNEY ON SATURDAY AFTERNOON.  MR. TURNBULL SAID THEY WERE “DESIGNED TO DISRUPT AND PREVENT PLANS TO UNDERTAKE TERRORIST ATTACKS IN AUSTRALIA. IT´S BELIEVED AN IMPROVISED EXPLOSIVE DEVICE (IED) WAS THE INTENDED WEAPON. THESE EVENTS OVERNIGHT REMIND US THERE´S STILL THE ABILITY FOR PEOPLE TO HAVE SOPHISTICATED PLOTS AND SOPHISTICATED ATTACKS STILL REMAIN A REAL THREAT” ( INDEPENDENT .CO.UK.NEWS SUNDAY 30 JULY 2017).

10. “STRATFORD ACID ATTACK: 6 PEOPLE INJURED AT LONDON SHOPPING CENTRE ON SATURDAY 23 SEPTEMBER 2017, 10:42 PM. MULTIPLE VICTIMS HAVING BEEN SPRAYED WITH ACID AT LOCATIONS AROUND THAT BUSY SHOPPING CENTRE AT STRATFORD STATION IN EAST LONDON” (THE TELEGRAPH NEWS). THAT ACID ATTACK SHOULD BE TREATED AS TERROR RELATED.

11. JULY 23 2017, AIXERROTA PAELLAS DAY IN GETXO (BIZKAIA), SOMEONE THREW KEROSENE OVER A BONFIRE CAUSING AN EXPLOSION AND 5 WOMEN WERE HURT.  LET´S IMAGINE THAT PERSON WAS PAID OFF BY CMTGS.

 12. THURSDAY AUGUST 3 2017 IN SANTUTXU (BIZKAIA) 4 CARS WERE BURNT. IT ALL STARTED WITH ONE CAR ON FIRE AND ITS FLAMES DID THE REST, BURNING THE 3 CARS NEXT TO IT.

13. THURSDAY AUGUST 3 2017  SEVERAL WRITINGS ON DONOSTI STREETS (GIPUZKOA) SAYING “TOURISTS GO HOME” CAME OUT. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS HAD THAT TERRIBLE IDEA, PASSED IT ON  AND SOME BASQUE PEOPLE TOOK THE BAIT THINKING IT WAS A GOOD THING TO GO AFTER.

14. AUGUST 18 2017 BARCELONA´S  TERROR ATTACK ON LA RAMBLA LEFT 14 PEOPLE AND 50 INJURED. AUGUST 22 2017 WE HEARD ON THE NEWS THE YOUNGSTERS INVOLVED IN SUCH ATTACK WERE RECRUITED BY IMAM, ABDELBAKI ES SATTY. “HE´S BELIEVED TO HAVE BEEN THE RINGLEADER OF THE BARCELONA ATTACK. HE LIVED AT A FLAT IN RIPOLL, AND HIS HOUSEMATE, NOURDENI ELHJI, 45, SAID ABDELBAKI DISAPPEARED JUST HOURS BEFORE A DEVASTATING EXPLOSION RIPPED THROUGH A SUSPECTED BOMB FACTORY IN A HOUSE IN ALCANAR 180 MILES AWAY. POLICE BELIEVE ES SATTY AND FELLOW PLOTTER YOUSSEF AALLAA DIED IN THE EXPLOSION IN ALCANAR. … BUT THE SURVIVING MEMBERS OF THE CELL WERE FORCED TO MOVE THEIR PLANS FORWARD WHEN THE BOMB FACTORY EXPLODED KILLING THEIR RINGLEADER” (THE TELEGRAPH NEWS). WE WERE ALSO TOLD ABDELBAKI, BESIDES BEING AN “AMAM” HE WAS ALSO A GAS BOTTLE DELIVERY MAN WHO REGULARLY TRAVELLED TO BELGIUM, AND 120 GAS CANISTERS WERE FOUND IN A HOUSE IN ALCANAR. INSIDE THE REMAINS OF THAT EXPLODED HOUSE IN ALCANAR 500 ACETONE (PEROXIDE) LITERS WERE FOUND. IT´S IMPORTANT TO REMEMBER ACETONE  IS USED IN DRUG TRAFFICKING LABORATORIES.   LET´S IMAGINE SPANISH CMTGS HAVE DRUG TRAFFICKING LABORATOR IES AND THEY ARE THE LEADERS PROVIDING THE DESPERATE ONES THEY FIND ANY COUNTRY THEY GO TO. THE DARK AUDI HE DROVE WAS ALSO IN PARIS SINCE A RADAR CAUGHT HIM FOR SPEEDING. AND NOW THE QUESTION IS: WHO GAVE ABDELBAKI,  THE GAS BOTTLE DELIVERY MAN, NEW CLOTHES AND A FAKE EXPLOSIVES BELT? LET´S IMAGINE SPANISH CMTGS ARE BEHIND IT AND EVERYTHING. 

 15. TUESDAY SEPTEMBER 5 2017, A YIHAD LEADERSHIP WAS UNCOVERED IN MOROCCO. THEIR BOSS WAS A SPANISH MAN AGED 38, WHO WAS A CHILDREN PHYSICAL EDUCATION ASSISTANT, BUT THAT JOB WAS A COVER UP FOR HIS REAL JOB WAS RECRUITING YOUNG MEN FOR DAESH. MEDIA LET US KNOW OF THAT PIECE OF NEWS WEDNESDAY SEPTEMBER 6.

16. THURSDAY SEPTEMBER 7 2017 IN PARIS 2 PEOPLE FROM DAESH WERE CARRYING EXPLOSIVES WHICH WERE THE SAME KIND OF EXPLOSIVES USED IN ALCANAR (TARRAGONA). THEREFORE WE KNOW SOMETHING IMPORTANT. WHAT´S THAT? WELL, LET´S IMAGINE THERE´S A SPANISH MAFIA, AND THAT MAFIA IS BEHIND DAESH AND BEHIND ALMOST ALL THE WORLD TERROR TODAY.

17. FRIDAY SEPTEMBER 16 7:00 AM NORTH KOREA THREW NUCLEAR MISSILES DOWN TO JAPAN, AND LATER ON THAT SAME DAY IN ONE OF LONDON´S UNDERGROUNDS 18 PEOPLE WERE HURT DUE TO A RUDIMENTARY EXPLOSIVE ( A BUCKET BOMB INSIDE A PLASTIC BAG) LEFT IN A TRAIN. 

CMTGS CAN´T STAND THE IDEA OF THE BRAVE WOMAN REPORTING UNRESPECTFUL BEHAVIOURS, ABUSE OF POWER AND OTHER KIND OF CRIMES, AND IN ORDER TO COUNTERATTACK THIS WOMAN THEY CREATED AN ELABORATED CONSPIRACY WHICH STARTED IN 2004. CMTGS ARE FOLLOWING MAO TSE TUNG´S EXAMPLE. WHY? BECAUSE MAO TSE TUNG DID NOT STAND ANYONE DISAGREEING WITH HIM, AND ONCE A CLOSE COLLEAGUE OF HIM DID DISAGREE WITH HIM REGARDING THE KILLING OF MILLIONS OF SPARROWS MAO TSE TUNG CARRIED IT OUT IN 1958. MAO TSE TUNG DID SUCH HORRIBLE THING BECAUSE HE SAID SPARROWS  ATE 5-7 GRAIN SEEDS EACH. THAT YEAR MAO INITIATED THE GREAT LEAP FORWARD, A MASSIVE CAMPAIGN BANNING PRIVATE FARMING AND THINKING THEY COULD DO WITHOUT SPARROWS. WHAT MAO IGNORED WAS SPARROWS HAD THE ABILITY OF GETTING  RID OF INSECTS WHO ATE THEIR  GRAIN SEEDS. IGNORING SUCH KEY FACTOR TRIGGERED AN INCREASE ON THE INSECT POPULATIONS,  AND THAT EXACTLY  WAS THE REASON BEHIND THE FAMINE WHICH FORCED PARENTS TO EAT THEIR KIDS AND THEIR KIDS TO EAT THEIR PARENTS AS WELL. SUCH FAMINE LASTED 3 YEARS AND DURING THOSE 45 MILLION PEOPLE DIED. UNBELIEVABLY THAT DISAGREEMENT WAS THE REASON OF THE START OF AN ELABORATED CONSPIRACY AGAINST MAO´S COLLEAGUE FOR 12 YEARS.

ON THE OTHER HAND, ELABORATED CONSPIRACIES ARE NOT SOMETHING NEW. THEY STARTED A LONG TIME AGO. ONE REALLY CLEAR EXAMPLE OF SUCH IS THE MASSACRE OF GERNIKA DURING THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR, WITNESSED BY ONE OF THE MOST FAMOUS EUROPEAN WAR CORRESPONDENTS, G. L. STEER. G. L. STEER WAS SURROUNDED BY CMTGS. HERE ARE SOME OF HIS QUOTES WHICH EXPOSE THE PRESENCE OF SUCH CMTGS WITH ELABORATED CONSPIRACIES:

 1. I HAD THE OPPORTUNITY TO OBSERVE BASQUE PEOPLE IN WAR FOR 4 PERIODS OF TIME:

1) AUGUST-SEPTEMBER 1936, FROM THE FRENCH-SPANISH BORDER.

2) JANUARY 1937, IN BILBAO.

3) DURING THE LAST FEROCIOUS OFFENSIVE BY MOLA IN APRIL, MAY AND JUNE, TO WHICH I MOSTLY REFER TO IN THIS BOOK.

4) AND FINALLY, AUGUST 1937, JUST BEFORE BASQUE PEOPLE WERE FOOLED AND HAD TO SURRENDER  AFTERWARDS.

THOSE WERE THE MONTHS DURING WHICH THE STRANGE DOCTRINES AND THEIR RESOURCES PUT BASQUE PEOPLE UNDER A LOT OF PRESSURE WINDING UP DESTROYED.”

 2. “SOME DESERTERS EXPLAINED IN  DETAIL THE DIVERSE FORCE, THE LEFT-WING OF THE BEORLEGI ARMY, WHICH ATTACKED THE MOUNTAINOUS ANGLE OF SAN MARCIAL: 550 LEGIONARIES, 450 CARLISTS, 440 CIVIL GUARDS, 400 FALANGISTS (FASCISTS). SOMEWHAT 2000 MEN, INCLUDING OFFICIALS, THAT IS, FIRST FRANCO´S ARMY, SECOND “THE NAVARROS”, THEN THE CIVIL GUARD, AND FINALLY THE NEW FASCISTS, STRANGE ORGANIZATION IN THE CLASS FIGHT, EMBEDDED ARTIFICIALLY IN THE SPANISH LIFE, WHICH HAD THOUSANDS OF FOLLOWERS, FROM WHICH VERY FEW WERE CAPABLE OF FIGHTING. THE HEADS OF THE SPANISH FALANGE RECRUITED THE SCUM OF HUMANITY: THE BEST-FOR-NOTHING ONES WERE FORCED TO PARADE WITH THEIR BLUE SHIRTS, WHILE THE STRONGEST ONES WERE TAKEN TO THE TRENCHES.” 

3. “BASQUE PEOPLE HAVE ALWAYS HAD A GREAT SENSE OF MORAL AND A DEEP RESPECT FOR LAW. THEIR WORD IS A COMPROMISE AND DON´T EVER THINK OF INTERPRETING IT. MEN AND WOMEN ARE DEVOTED CATHOLIC AND PRACTICE IT. UP UNTIL 1936 BASQUE PEOPLE WERE IN CHARGE OF GETTING THINGS LOCALLY BETTER. WITH LOCAL MONEY THE BEST ROADS IN SPAIN, THE MOST MODERN TOURIST COAST PLACES, THE BEST HOSPITALS AND  SCHOOLS  FOR CHILDREN WERE BUILT. BASQUE PEOPLE WERE EXPECTED TO ACCOMPLISH THEIR PROMISES. AND ALTHOUGH IN THIS WAR MANY OF THE THINGS THE ALLIES DID AGAINST THEM, LIKE FOR EXAMPLE, THE RELIGIOUS PERSECUTION, BASQUE PEOPLE WERE FAITHFUL UNTIL THE END. THEY PREFERRED TO LOSE ALL THAT WAS DEAR TO THEM, LIKE THEIR HOME, LAND, PROPERTY AND THEIR MATES. GENERAL FRANCO WAS BLAMED FOR NOT HAVING MANAGED TO DRAW THEIR ATTENTION IN HIM AND MAKE THEM PUT ASIDE THEIR LOYALTY”. 

4. “IN 1936 BILBAO WAS A PROSPEROUS TOWN. THE SHIPPING COMPANIES HAD BEEN REBUILT AND THERE WAS A GREAT DEMAND OF IRON FOR THE RE-ARMING PROGRAMS IN EUROPE. EVERYONE WAS TOO BUSY AND DID NOT PAY ATTENTION TO THE HUGE WEAPONS SMUGGLING WHICH PASSED THROUGH THE PYRENEES (BETWEEN FRANCE AND NAVARRA) WHERE THE REQUETES (CARLIST MILITIA) WERE PLOTTING AGAINST THE STATE. THE PROCLAMATION OF THE WAR IN THE INCITED PLACES AROUND SPAIN FOUND BILBAO DISARMED AND OFF-GUARD”.

5. ” A BELL  RANG IN THE CIVIL GOVERNMENT. ALDASORO,  (MEMBER OF THE LEFT REPUBLIC. HE HELPED ESTABLISHING THE REPUBLIC AND WAS GOVERNOR OF GIPUZKOA) POWERFUL AND DOMINATING, WAS WITH ECHEVARRIA, (CIVIL GOVERNOR) AN AGEING POLITICIAN READY TO COMPROMISE, UNWILLING TO TAKE OR TO SUFFER GREAT PAINS, NERVOUS, SHREWISHLY PROTECTIVE OF HIS OWN PEACE. THE TELEPHONE WAS A NUISANCE, HE TOOK IT UP.”

– ” GENERAL MOLA  SPEAKING,”  WAS THE BALD INTRODUCTION,  ” YOU HAVE GOT TO REBEL! “

– ” HOW? ”  ASKED THE INCREDULOUS, THE DISTURBED AND TREMBLING ECHEVARRIA.

– ” WHO IS IT? ” ASKED ALDASORO IMPATIENTLY, STANDING OVER THIS SHAKY MONUMENT  OF IRRESOLUTION.

– “IT IS GENERAL MOLA IN PAMPLONA, ”  EXPLAINED ECHEVARRIA WITH HIS HAND PRESSING WET OVER THE MOUTHPIECE, WHILE THE ELECTRICAL DISCHARGES OF THE INSURGENT CHIEF GRATED INTO AIR OUT OF THE OTHER END, ” AND HE SAYS THAT WE HAVE GOT TO REVOLT”.

– ” AND YOU ASKED HIM HOW? ”  SHOUTED ALDASORO; WHO THEN BROKE DOWN AND LAUGHED GUTTURALLY, FOR HE HAS A SPANISH SENSE OF HUMOUR. ” WHY, MAN, SHOUT VIVA LA REPUBLICA! 

– ” I DON´T UNDERSTAND, GENERAL, ” ECHEVARRIA CONTINUED, TRYING TO SPIN THE MATTER OUT AND RECOVER THE SLENDER STRUCTURE OF HIS SELF-CONFIDENCE. ” WHAT DO YOU WANT ME TO DO?  WHAT IS THIS ALL ABOUT?  REBEL AGAINST WHOM? “

-” THEN TWO VOICES SPOKE AT ONCE, ONE IN PAMPLONA AND THE OTHER IN BILBAO, AND BOTH IN TONES THAT SHOWED THEY KNEW THAT THEY WERE DEALING WITH AN IDIOT. GENERAL MOLA SAID, PRONOUNCING EACH SYLLABLE CLEARLY, ” YOU HAVE GOT TO DECLARE A STATE OF WAR!” “

” ALDASORO SEIZED ECHEVARRIA BY HIS TELEPHONE SHOULDER AND SAID MUCH LOUDER, ” CRY VIVA LA REPUBLICA! “.  AND THEN HE HAD AN IDEA. HE TOOK THE RECEIVER OUT OF THE FINGERS OF ECHEVARRIA; IT WAS VERY DAMP, AND HE ROARED DOWN IT ” VIVA LA REPUBLICA! “. “NOW YOU TRY”, HE SAID, SMILING IN A FATHERLY WAY, HANDING THE MACHINE BACK.”

“” VIVA LA REPUBLICA ” CAME VERY FEEBLY FROM THE LIPS OF ECHEVARRIA. ” THAT´S QUITE ENOUGH, ”  SAID ALDASORO, AND TOOK THE RECEIVER FROM ECHEVARRIA  A SECOND TIME, AND HUNG IT QUIETLY  UPON THE STAND. “

” THE DIE WAS CAST. THE CIVIL GOVERNOR LOOKED MORESELY OUT OF THE WINDOW, AND HE PULLED OUT HIS POCKET HANDKERCHIEF. ADIEU TO COMFORT. ” THE TREE OF GERNIKA: A FIELD OF STUDY OF MODERN WARG.L. STEER. FABER FINDS )

6. “…IN BILBAO THERE WERE NO PERSONAL CRIMES WITHOUT A PRELIMINARY TRIAL DUE TO POLITICAL IDEAS…

…FLEEING SANTANDER TONS OF REFUGEES ARRIVED IN BILBAO. THEY WERE RUN AFTER BY A BAND OF SIX MEMBERS OF SANTANDER POLICE, WHOSE JOB CONSISTED OF HARASSING THEIR ENEMIES IN THEIR HIDING PLACES, DETAINING AND KILLING THEM. BASQUE PEOPLE REPUDIATED THAT WAY OF TREATING THE ENEMY. ONE DAY JUSTICE WAS DONE ON THREE OF THOSE SANTANDER POLICEMEN; THEY WERE EXECUTED IN A BASQUE VILLAGE ON THE COAST ON THE WAY TO SANTANDER. BASQUE PEOPLE DECLARED COLDLY BASQUE PEOPLE THEMSELVES HAD DONE IT. THE POLICE FROM SANTANDER DID NOT SNEAK IN INTERFERING AGAIN IN BIZKAIA TERRITORY. ORDER WAS REESTABLISHED ONCE AGAIN SOON. SURVEILLANCE PATROLS WERE CLEARED FROM THE STREETS AND THE SANCTIONED LOCAL POLICE WENT BACK TO WORK. “

7. “… THE SADLY RESTRICTED REPUBLICAN PARLIAMENT HOSTED IN VALENCIA DECIDED TO KEEP THEIR WORD IN THE AGREEMENT WITH THE BASQUE COUNTRY: OCTOBER 1, 1936 THE STATUTE OF AUTONOMY WAS BROUGHT UP BEFORE THE DEPUTIES. AGUIRRE,  A YOUNG MAN IN THE NATIONAL BASQUE PARTY, GAVE A SPEECH THANKING THE PARLIAMENT FOR SATISFYING THE YEARNING FOR FREEDOM SO MUCH OPPRESSED IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY FOR SO LONG:

“…WE, WHO CONDEMN WITH ALL OUR MIGHT THE BURNING OF CHURCHES, WHENEVER THAT TAKES PLACE, SINCE OUR FAITH HAS ENDLESS HORIZONS; WE, WHO CONDEMN THE KILLING OF HUMAN BEINGS FOR THE ONLY REASON OF HOLDING PARTICULAR POSITIONS, HONESTLY TELL YOU THIS: UP TO THE DAY FASCISM IS DEFEATED, THE BASQUE NATIONALISM WILL REMAIN FIRM IN ITS POSITION”.

AFTER MAKING THAT THORNY SPEECH, ADDRESSED TO BOTH BLOCS IN THE FIGHT, AS SINCERE AS GIVEN BY A BASQUE MAN, AGUIRRE FLEW TO BILBAO WITH THE AUTONOMY IN HIS POCKET. IT BECAME LAW OCTOBER 5, 1936, AND YET IN BILBAO THE KILLING OF HUMAN BEINGS BY SPANIARDS HAPPENED ONCE AGAIN FOR THE ONLY REASON OF HOLDING SPECIFIC POSITIONS AND FOR THEIR WELL-KNOWN POLITICAL TENDENCIES ON THE FOLLOWING DAY OF THE SPEECH. THE ” RED FLOTILLA”, LIKE THE PEOPLE FROM BILBAO CALLED IT, SHOT THE GULF OF BIZKAY MAKING IT SHED BLOOD. IT WAS A REVENGE ACT DUE TO THE SINKING OF THE REPUBLICAN DESTROYER “ALMIRANTE JUAN FERRÁNDIZ” AT THE END OF SEPTEMBER”.

8. “…BASQUE PEOPLE WERE NOT ONLY FREE BUT ALSO PEOPLE WHO RULED. THESE PAGES ARE A REPORT ON HOW THEIR WELL-DISCIPLINED DEMOCRACY BORE THE WEIGHT OF MODERN WAR, PROBABLY THE CRUELEST EVER KNOWN IN EUROPE. IT´S TRUE THEY WERE NOT SLY WHATSOEVER AND THEY DID NOT KNOW HOW TO CONTROL THE CIVIL SOCIETY BY MEANS OF PROPAGANDA: THEY WERE TOO SINCERE. ALTHOUGH FROM THE PHYSICAL POINT OF VIEW THEY WERE WELL-BUILT THEY WERE ANTIMILITARIST AND WERE NOT INTERESTED ENOUGH IN THE TURN OF THE WAR TO SEE HOW, WHY AND HOW URGENT IT WAS TO GET RID OF THE INEFFICIENT AND COWARDLY SPANISH THE JOINT CHIEFS OF STAFF. THAT IS HOW THEY LOST THEIR FREEDOM. BUT THEY FOUGHT WITH GROWING TENACITY AGAINST SUPERIOR WEAPONS NOT ONLY IN QUANTITY BUT ALSO IN QUALITY. THEY WERE DEFEATED BY FOREIGNERS, NOT BY SPAIN.  

REGARDING HUMANITARIANISM AND PUBLIC HONESTY THEY WERE MODERATE MEN WHO KNEW HOW TO CONTROL A REVOLUTIONARY SITUATION. THAT TOGETHER WITH THEIR NATURAL CHARM AND THEIR HUGE FRIENDLINESS, WHICH ONLY WE WHO LIVED IN BILBAO IN THEIR MOST TRAGIC DAYS HAD THE PRIVILEGE OF CONTEMPLATING, ARE MEMORIES TO LIVE WITH US STILL. THEY SANG AND THEY WERE EXCELLENT COLLEAGUES. ONE COULD EXPRESS HIMSELF WITH FULL FREEDOM”.

9. ” THE NEXT THING BASQUE PEOPLE SUGGESTED WAS THE EXCHANGE OF ALL THEIR POLITICAL PRISONERS, WHO WERE ABOUT 2.500 FOR ALL THE BASQUE ONES DETAINED BY THE OTHER SIDE. THE BASQUE PRISONERS WERE ABOUT 1.000 SINCE  THE REBELS ( THE FACCIOSOS) HAD ALREADY KILLED MANY OF THEM. AND SUDDENLY JANUARY 6 THE FACCIOSO GOVERNMENT OF SALAMANCA, WHOSE POLITICAL REPRESENTATIVE HAD COME TO AN AGREEMENT WITH THE BASQUE PEOPLE BROKE UP NEGOTIATIONS: HE REFUSED TO CARRY OUT ANY EXCHANGES OF PRISONERS “BECAUSE THAT WOULD MEAN TO PRIVILEGE   BASQUE PEOPLE OVER THE OTHERS …”.

 

ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF ELABORATED CONSPIRACIES IS THE MASSACRE OF DURANGO:

 1. “DURANGO WAS ONE OF THE MOST BEAUTIFUL PLACES IN BIZKAIA AND WAS CHOSEN AS WELL BY THE GERMANS TO BOOST TERROR ALL AROUND IT. AT 7.20 AM IN 3 CHURCHES THERE WERE MANY PEOPLE ATTENDING MASS…WHEN  PLANES STARTED GOING DOWN REALLY FAST TO 350 METRES FROM THE GROUND AND STARTED TROWING BOMBS… A BIG ONE CROSSED THE ROOF OF THE CHAPEL OF SAINT SUSAN AND 14 NUNS HAPPENED TO BE MAIMED DUE TO THE EXPLOSION AND DIED RIGHT IN THERE.

ANOTHER POWERFUL BOMB CROSSED THE ROOF OF ST. MARY BUT ITS STRONG TOWER HIT FOR THE FOURTH TIME BY A BOMB REMAINED FIRM”.

 “SALAMANCA WAS READY TO DENY THE ATTACK AGAINST DURANGO, THE SAME AS APRIL 27 WHEN IT WAS READY AS WELL TO DENY THE TOTAL DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA. THE PRINCIPLE OF LYING REPETEADLY OVER A LONG PERIOD OF TIME, OUTLINED BY HERE HITLER IN MEIN KAMPF, WAS USED THIS WAY FOR THE FIRST TIME IN WAR, LIKE THE REST OF METHODS OF THE GERMAN AIR MACHINERY, AND IT WAS INDEED AN IMPORTANT PART OF IT”.

“THIS WAY RADIO CLUB PORTUGAL ANNOUNCED THIS:

“THE SOCIALISTS, ANARQUISTS AND COMMUNISTS FROM DURANGO, BOTHERED BY THE RESUMPTION OF THE RELIGIOUS WORSHIP, TOOK ADVANTAGE OF THE FACT THAT THE NATIONAL AIR FORCE HAD BOMBARDED CERTAIN MILITARY CONCENTRATIONS IN ORDER TO GET BACK AT THEM, NOT ALLOWING THE BELIEVERS TO GET OUT OF THE DIFFERENT CHURCHES. THOSE SOCIALISTS, ANARQUISTS AND COMMUNISTS LEFT 200 PEOPLE DEAD AND THE CHURCHES WERE BURNT”.

 

THE EMPIRE OF TRUTH

 

CMTGS LOVE THE SPANISH SAYING “REPEAT LIES AND SOMETHING WILL STAY”, AND ONE OF THOSE LIES THEY CONSTANTLY REPEAT IS THAT CONSPIRACIES DO NOT EXIST. HOWEVER, THE TRUTH OF THE MATTER IS THERE ARE EXAMPLES OF REAL PEOPLE WHO HAVE GONE THROUGH CONSPIRACIES. OF COURSE THE ONES WHO ARE RESPONSIBLE FOR THOSE TRY AS MUCH AS THEY CAN TO DENY ITS EXISTENCE. ANOTHER LIE WORTH MENTIONING IS THE RELATIVISM OF THE HARM DONE IN GERNIKA (THE BASQUE COUNTRY) BY FRANCO TROOPS ON 26 APRIL 1937, SINCE IT´S A FACT IT WAS SADISM WHAT WAS EXECUTED IN GERNIKA AT THAT TIME. EVEN DON AURELIO ORTIZ, NOTARY IN GERNIKA ON 27 APRIL 1937, WHO WAS IMPARTIAL, WAS ANGRY AND FULLY CONDEMNED ALL THAT BARBARISM.

CMTGS DATE BACK TO THE TIMES BEFORE JESUS CHRIST WAS BORN. CMTGS´ MODUS OPERANDI IN THE TWENTIETH CENTURY WAS THE SAME AS THOSE WHO LIVED BEFORE JESUS CHRIST´S TIME AND THE SAME AS THE ONES AROUND US TODAY. 20TH CENTURY CMTGS KILLED PEOPLE, AND USED INSULTS IN ORDER TO TELL LIES ABOUT THE ONES WHO WERE HONEST AND HAD A STRONG FAITH IN GOD. THE SAME HAPPENED WITH JESUS CHRIST. MANY JEWS INSULTED JESUS CHRIST SAYING MANY LIES ABOUT HIM. FOR EXAMPLE, “THE NEWSPAPER EUZKADI ON APRIL 28, 1937 SHOWED HOW RADIO SALAMANCA SAID THE FOLLOWING LIES OF THE PRESIDENT OF EUZKADI JOSE ANTONIO DE AGUIRRE: “IT´S NOT THE 1ST TIME AGUIRRE LIES… AGUIRRE DECLARED TODAY FOREIGN AIR FORCES SERVING IN   FRANCO´S TROOPS, BOMBED GERNIKA BECAUSE THEY WANTED TO HURT BASQUE PEOPLE DEEPLY. AGUIRRE LIES. HE LIES AND HE KNOWS IT WELL. FIRST, THERE´S NEITHER GERMAN AIR FORCE  NOR FOREIGN ONE IN SPAIN. SECOND, GERNIKA WAS NOT BURNT BY US. FRANCO´S SPAIN DOES NOT BURN ANYTHING. WE´RE TALKING ABOUT A  MONOPOLY OF THE ONES WHO BURNT IRUN AND EIBAR. WE KNOW AGUIRRE KNOWS HE LIES, LIKE WHAT HE IS, A COMMON CROOK. NOT ONLY DID WE RESPECT GERNIKA FOR WHAT IT IS, WE RESPECTED IT, YOU  HONEST BASQUE PEOPLE, AS WE RESPECT ALL THAT IS SPAIN. FRANCO´S ARMY DOESN´T BURN ANYTHING. THE BASQUE COUNTRY KNOWS WE RESPECT THEM AND THEIR TRADITIONS. FRANCO´S SPAIN DOES NOT BURN ANYTHING” (BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA).

THE WRITER CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA RIGHTFULLY STATED ALL THOSE SENTENCES ABOVE SAID ON RADIO SALAMANCA ABOUT THE PRESIDENT OF EUZKADI AND GERNIKA WERE TOTALLY FALSE AND A SERIOUS INSULT TO ANYONE. THEREFORE, RADIO SALAMANCA, APRIL 28, 1937, SAID LIES ABOUT JOSE ANTONIO DE AGUIRRE, AND ALSO LIED WHEN THEY SAID THERE WASN´T NEITHER GERMAN AIR FORCE NOR FOREIGN ONE IN SPAIN WHEN THERE´S PLENTY OF EVIDENCE WHEN WE SIMPLY MENTION GOERING  AND SPERRIE (CHIEF OF THE LEGION CONDOR), BOTH NAZIS EXECUTED AT NUREMBERG.

SINCE CMTGS ARE LOSERS AND COWARDS THEY ARE CONSTANTLY TRYING TO CONTACT PEOPLE SO THAT THEY CAN FEEL STRONGER. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS WERE THE ONES BEHIND GERNIKA´S APRIL 1937 BOMBING, AND LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS CONTACTED MOORS TO BE PART OF FRANCO´S ARMY. THOSE MOORS AFFRONTED THE PORCH OF ST. MARY OF GERNIKA, GETTING  DIRTY THE HOLY WATER FONTS AND LATER ON ASKING BASQUE WOMEN TO CLEAN SUCH BLESSED WATER RECEPTACLES.

“THE NIGHT OF 26 APRIL  1937 BOMBS WERE DROPPED ON DIFFERENT PLACES IN GERNIKA. IT WAS THE 1ST WAR REHEARSAL BUT IN ORDER TO ADD INSULT TO INJURY THEY WENT ON SHOOTING PEOPLE THERE WHO WERE REALLY FRIGHTENED AND WERE FLEEING GERNIKA BY THE RAILROAD TRACKS. THIS WAY THEY KILLED PEDRO DE ZABALAURTENA´S GIRLFRIEND AND HIS SISTER WHEN THEY WERE FLEEING GERNIKA BY THE  RAILROAD TRACK, IN FRONT OF ST. AUGUSTINE SCHOOL. THEY ALSO KILLED A YOUNG MAN BY THE SURNAME OF ARRILLAGA FROM ELGOIBAR, WHEN HE WAS TALKING TO SOME PEASANTS IN THE MEADOW, IN FRONT OF THE CHURCH OF GAUTEGUIZ IN ARTEAGA (4 KMS FROM GERNIKA). THAT SADISM WAS ALL EXECUTED BY HITLER PILOTS” (BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA).

WHY DID HITLER PILOTS KILL THOSE PEOPLE FLEEING ELGOIBAR AND OTHER PLACES? LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS BRIBED HITLER TO HARM THE BASQUE COUNTRY. WHY? LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS COULD NOT BEAR THE FACT BASQUE PEOPLE, BASQUE POLITICIANS HAD THE POWER OF A REALLY STRONG FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, AND THAT TOGETHER WITH THEIR GOOD ACTS GRANTED THEM THE BASQUE ESTATUTE, SOMETHING CMTGS DID NOT HAVE, SINCE THEY WERE FROM A DIFFERENT PROVINCE. WHY DIDN´T HITLER PILOTS BOMBARD THE MORTAR, GRENADE AND  HANDGUN FACTORIES  IN GERNIKA? WAS IT BECAUSE HITLER PILOTS WANTED TO USE ALL THOSE THEMSELVES?

HERE ARE SOME FACTS BACKING UP THE IDEA OF SOME  ENVIOUS PEOPLE WHO ASKED THE GERMANS TO DO SOME DIRTY JOB AGAINST GERNIKA. LET´S IMAGINE THE ONES BEHIND GERNIKA´S DESTRUCTION WERE CMTGS.

1. “THE SOCIETY OF GERNIKA, WHICH LATER ON BECAME THE SECONDARY HIGH SCHOOL “CARMELO ECHEGARAY”, WAS DESTROYED TOGETHER WITH OTHER POLITICAL AND LEISURE CIRCLES IN THE VILLAGE.

2.THE OLD FRONTON OF GERNIKA WAS ALSO DESTROYED.

3.SOME FOUL-MOUTHED ONES STARTED TO TELL LIES ABOUT THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT FROM THE VERY BEGINNING OF THE SWEARING UNDER OATH OF JOSE ANTONIO DE AGUIRRE, BEFORE THE TREE OF GERNIKA. THEY WERE IMPRISONED BUT SOON WERE FREED AGAIN ONCE FRANCO´S TROOPS CAME NEAR GERNIKA(BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA).

“THE FOLLOWING DATA IS TAKEN FROM THE BROCHURE LA CASA DE JUNTAS DE GERNIKA BY CARMELO DE ECHEGARAY AND FROM ENSAYO HISTORICO AND APUNTES PARA LA HISTORIA DE GERNIKA BY LUCAS DE ALTUBE Y ALBIZ :

“IN THE 1826 GENERAL COMMITTEE THE DEMOLITION OF THE HERMITAGE WAS AGREED UPON, AND ALSO THE DESTRUCTION OF THE SACRISTY WHICH SERVED AS FILE, RECONSTRUCTED IN 1668 WITH THE GOAL OF PUTTING UP A NEW BUILDING IN THE SAME PLACE AS A LOVE TESTIMONY FROM THE PEOPLE WHO LOOKED BACK AT MEMORIES THAT PLACE BROUGHT BACK. THAT PLACE HAD BEEN THE LOCATION FOR SOLVING SO MANY DIFFICULT BUSINESSES WHICH POSED A THREAT TO THE FREEDOM AND PROSPERITY OF THE ESTATE. THE PROJECT WHICH WAS BACKED AND THEN PASSED WAS CREATED BY THE ARQUITECT ANTONIO DE ECHEBARRIA AND ITS WORK STARTED IN 1826. THEY BEGAN TO BUILD THE LOUNGE OR CHAPEL WHERE THE COMMITTEES WERE SUPPOSED TO TAKE PLACE IN 1828. IN 1833 THE COMMITTEES WERE FINISHED BUT THE CIVIL WAR SUDDENLY CAME UP. THIS CIVIL WAR BLOODED BIZKAIA´S FIELDS FROM 1833 TO 1839, AND  BE  THAT BECAUSE OF THIS REASON OR BECAUSE WITH WHAT THEY HAD ALREADY BUILT THERE WAS MORE THAN ENOUGH TO TAKE CARE OF THEIR NEEDS AT THAT POINT, THE FACT IS THE HOUSE ENDED UP INCOMPLETE AND WITHOUT THE LATERAL NORTH BODY, UNLIKE ANTONIO DE ECHEVARRIA HAD CONCEIVED IT. THE HOUSE´S FACADE LOOKS THE SYMBOLIC TREE´S WAY, SINCE THAT TREE SYMBOLIZES BIZKAIA´S INSTITUTIONS AND BIZKAIA´S FREEDOM. IT´S A NEOCLASSIC BUILDING, AND AT THAT TIME THAT NEOCLASSIC STYLE WAS MAINLY SEEN ON RELEVANT CIVIL BUILDINGS. ON ITS CENTRAL BODY THERE IS A DORIC COLUMN THROUGH WHICH PEOPLE ENTERED THE LOUNGE WHERE THE COMMITTEES OF THE “FUEROS”  GOT TOGETHER. THE ARMS OF THE ESTATE CAN BE SEEN ON THE FRONT, … AND ON THE WALLS SURROUNDING THE LOUNGE THERE WERE PORTRAITS OF THE SIRS OF BIZKAIA, FROM THE VERY BEGINNING ACCORDING TO WHOM HISTORY PROVIDES US WITH, TO 1379, TO THE INFANTE JUAN WHO WAS ALREADY SIR OF BIZKAIA AND INHERITED THE CROWN, AND SO FROM THEN ON BOTH TITLES COINCIDED IN THE SAME PERSON. OVER THOSE PORTRAITS AND BETWEEN THESE HALL WINDOWS THERE ARE SOME INSCRIPTIONS WHICH REMIND US OF THE DATES WHEN 4 MONARCHS FROM CASTILE CAME TO BIZKAIA TO SWEAR UNDER OATH THE “FUEROS”. BESIDE THE 6 STAINED GLASS WINDOWS THERE IS ONE MORE LOCATED ON THE ALTAR, WHERE THE DIFFERENT ELEMENTS WHICH FINALLY CAME TO BUILD THE BIZKAIA COAT OF ARMS, AND ON THE OPPOSITE SIDE OVER THE ENTRANCE DOOR OF THE LOUNGE THERE´S A BAD CANVAS COPY OF FRANCISCO MENDIETA, WHICH REPRESENTS THE OATH OF THE “FUEROS” OF BIZKAIA BY FERNANDO THE CATHOLIC. THE ORIGINAL ONE IS IN ONE OF THE HALLS OF THE PALACE OF ITS EXCELLENCY THE COUNCIL OF BIZKAIA. SUCH OATH TOOK PLACE 30 JULY  1476, CONFIRMING THE “FUEROS”, PRIVILEGES, FRANCHISES AND FREEDOMS OF THE KNIGHTS OF THE ESTATE OF BIZKAIA. OVER THE PICTURE WHICH REPRESENTS THAT OATH OF FERDINAND THE CATHOLIC THERE´S A BIGGER ONE OF THE OATH OF THE “FUEROS” BY JUAN ZURIA, BY THE PAINTER ANSELMO DE GUINEA”. 

THE FOLLOWING FACTS HAPPENED IN GERNIKA BETWEEN 18 JULY  1936 AND 26 APRIL  1937:

 1. “ONE IMPORTANT EVENT TOOK PLACE DURING THIS PERIOD OF TIME AND WAS THE APPROVAL OF THE REPUBLIC IN MADRID BY THE SPANISH PARLIAMENT 1 OCTOBER  1936, OF THE BASQUE STATUTE, IN A HISTORIC SESSION, WITH AN AWSOME SPEECH OF THE BASQUE DEPUTY JOSE ANTONIO AGUIRRE, EMBRACED WITH VIVID SIGNS OF RESPECT AND AFFECTION BY ALL THE MEMBERS OF PARLIAMENT, AS IT WAS POINTED OUT BACK THEN IN THE NEWSPAPER EUZKADI, WHERE THEY SAID HE CONFIRMED CHRISTIANISM, THE SPIRIT OF FREEDOM AND THE HIGHLY SOCIAL SENSE OF THE PATRIOTIC BASQUE ORGANIZATION. SUCH BASQUE STATUTE HAD 14 ARTICLES AND 4 TRANSITORY DISPOSITIONS.

2. JOSE ANTONIO DE AGUIRRE´S SPEECH INCLUDED SOME OF THE FOLLOWING KEY IDEAS:

2.1. “GENTLEMEN, DEPUTIES: GIVEN THE SITUATION OUR POSITION IS CLEAR: FIGHTING FASCISM BY MEANS OF DEMOCRACY AS WE WERE NATIONALISM PLACED ITSELF NEXT TO DEMOCRACY AND OUR FREEDOM”.

2.2. “WE´RE FACING IMPERIALISM AND FASCISM THANKS TO OUR CHRISTIAN SPIRIT, OUR CHRISTIAN PRINCIPLES…WHY DID JESUS CHRIST COME TO THIS WORLD?, WAS IT BECAUSE JESUS CHRIST WANTED TO HELP THE RICH OR RATHER TO HELP THE POOR? BETWEEN THE RICH AND THE POOR WE CHOOSE THE HUMBLE ONE, THE DOWNTOWN PEOPLE. SINCE WE ALL COME FROM THERE WE FIGHT FOR THEM. THIS IS OUR WAY OF THINKING, THIS IS OUR FAITH AND BASQUE NATIONALISM WILL BE ALIVE UP TO THE POINT FASCISM IS OVER”.

“A PROLONGED OVATION OF THE DEPUTIES ALL STANDING UP FOLLOWED UP JOSE ANTONIO DE AGUIRRE´S SPEECH AND THIS OVATION WAS REPEATED TWICE. BRAVELY, AGUIRRE CONFESSED THE FERVENT CATHOLICISM OF THE BASQUE PEOPLE IN FRONT OF THAT PACK OF FURIOUS HOUNDS, ENEMIES OF ALL KINDS OF RELIGIOUS FEELINGS, AND CENSORED THE BURNING OF CONVENTS AND THE PERSECUTION OF CERTAIN PEOPLE… FINALLY, THERE WAS A PARADE OF ABOUT TWO THOUSAND SOLDIERS OF THE EUSKO GUDAROSTEA, CARRYING THE BASQUE FLAG AND THE FLAGS OF BIZKAIA, NABARRA, ARABA AND GIPUZKOA.

3.GERNIKA KNEW OF THE HORRORS PERPETRATED BY FRANCO AND GENERAL MOLA DUE TO THE GIPUZKOA REFUGEES´ TESTIMONIES FROM GIPUZKOA WHO WERE HOUSED IN MANY HOUSES IN THE VILLA, AND ALSO FROM THE HORRORS WHICH TOOK PLACE IN NABARRA, EARLIER THAN IN GIPUZKOA”.

“IN THE NEWSPAPER EUZKADI ON 30 APRIL  1937 THE FOLLOWING DECLARATION APPEARED:

TO THE CIVILIZED WORLD. DECLARATIONS OF THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT. GIVEN THE CYNICISM OF THE FOREIGN FASCIST CRIMINALS WHO ARE SPREADING THEIR VANDALISM WITHOUT PRECEDENTS, THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT FULLY RATIFIES THE NOTE GIVEN YESTERDAY BY HIS EXCELLENCY THE PRESIDENT ON THE DESTRUCTION OF BASQUE CITIES BY AIRCRAFTS SERVING FRANCO AND ALSO GIVEN THE INCONCEIVABLE FACT THAT REBELLIOUS SPANIARDS INSIST ON THEIR YESTERDAY´S OFFICIAL REPORT, NOTIFIED BY THE GENERAL HEADQUARTERS IN SALAMANCA, TELLING ABOUT THE DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA AND OTHER VILLAGES AS IF IT HAD BEEN CARRIED OUT BY EXTREMIST ELEMENTS WHICH EXISTED IN THIS GOVERNMENT´S TERRITORY, INFORMATION AND OPINION WHICH WAS MAINTAINED AND RATIFIED BY RADIO BERLIN IN TODAY´S BROADCAST AT 10:00 A.M., WE APPEAL TO THE CIVILIZED WORLD IN GENERAL, AND TO ALL THOSE INTERESTED IN THE EMPIRE OF TRUTH AND JUSTICE SO THAT THEY GO AHEAD AND CHECK THESE FACTS… OUR DOORS ARE OPEN TO ANYONE SO THAT THESE ACTS OF TRUE BARBARISM WHICH THE BASQUE COUNTRY WAS SUBJECTED TO WITH THE DESTRUCTION OF ITS CITIES AND WITH THE ACTIVE AND DIRECT INTERVENTION OF SOME FOREIGN NATIONS IN IT ARE INVESTIGATED AS JUSTICE RULES(BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA). 

NO MATTER THE MANY BOMBINGS DROPPED BY THE GERMAN AND ITALIANS OVER GERNIKA THE FOLLOWING PLACES REMAINED INTACT. GIVEN THE FACT GERMANS WANTED TO GET A DATA BASE ON THE TESTING OF SUCH BOMBS WHY DID THEY CHOOSE GERNIKA? WAS THE GERMAN EAGERNESS FOR SUCH TESTING THE PERFECT EXCUSE FOR CMTGS (THE ONES WHO GAVE THE WORST OF ADVICE TO FRANCO) TO HARM THE BASQUE COUNTRY? THE BASQUE ESTATUTE MEANT FAITH PLUS POWER, AND LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS COULDN´T STOMACH FAITH. WHY? CMTGS IGNORE FAITH, MOCK FAITH AND CAN´T STAND THE ONES WHO HAVE IT. LET´S IMAGINE BASQUE FAITH WAS THE KEY BEHIND THE BOMBINGS IN GERNIKA. THE POWER OF FAITH IN GOD WAS SUCH THAT IT BROUGHT PROTECTION OVER THE FOLLOWING PLACES:

1. THE HOUSE OF THE COMMITTEES.

2. THE TREE OF FREEDOM.

3. THE CHURCH OF ST. MARY OF GERNIKA, WHICH WAS SAVED OF THE BURNING THANK TO THE HEROISM OF THE FIREFIGHTERS OF BILBO.

4. THEY BOMBARDED THE WAR MATERIAL FACTORY IN ZAMUDIO. HOWEVER, THEY COULD NOT DESTROY IT SINCE THE FACTORY WAS PROTECTED BY SEVERAL LAYERS OF ARMED CONCRETE ON THE TOP FLOORS.

EVERYTHING AROUND THESE 4 PLACES WAS COMPLETELY DESTROYED. AS COINCIDENCES DON´T EXIST WE CAN SAY THE STRONG BASQUE FAITH IN GOD WON GOD OVER GRANTING GERNIKA WITH THE PROTECTION OF THOSE 3 BASQUE HISTORIC MONUMENTS.

CMTGS ARE EXPERTS ON MANIPULATION. THEY ALWAYS TRY TO TURN A VICTIM INTO AN EXECUTIONER, AND THEY THEMSELVES, AFTER PERPETRATING THE MOST HORRIBLE ACTS, MAKE EFFORTS TO PRETEND THEY´RE GOOD AND RELIABLE SO THAT NOONE CAN EVEN THINK OF THEM AS A POSSIBLE CANDIDATE FOR SUCH EVIL DEEDS. THE FOLLOWING FACTS ARE ONLY SOME OF WHICH DEPICT PRECISELY THE TOUGH MANIPULATION GERNIKA SUFFERED IN 1937:

1. THE NEWSPAPER EUZKADI MAY 5, 1937, MENTIONED THESE LINES BY THE MAJOR OF GERNIKA:

NO, A THOUSAND TIMES, NO! GERNIKA WAS NOT BURNT BY OUR BRAVE AND SELF-SACRIFICING BASQUE SOLDIERS. IF THE OATH I´M ABOUT TO SWEAR UNDER AS MAJOR AND AS A CHRISTIAN CAN BE OF SOME VALUE I SWEAR  IN FRONT OF GOD AND OF EVERYONE THE DESTRUCTION OF SUCH PLACES IN GERNIKA WAS EXCLUSIVELY DONE BY  FOREIGN AIR FORCE” 

2. ON JUNE 11, 1937 THE FOLLOWING DECLARATION WAS ISSUED IN THE NEWSPAPER EUZKADI:

“THE BASQUE CLERGY REPRESENTED BY THE EPISCOPAL DELEGATE, BILBAO PRIESTS AND THE PRIESTS OF ALL THOSE VILLAGES BOMBARDED BY THE FACTIOUS ONES…REESTABLISHES THE TRUTH ON THE INHUMANE BOMBARDINGS…OF DURANGO AND GERNIKA: “HOLY POPE: THE BASQUE CLERGY OF VITORIA DIOCESE, SUBJECTED TO THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT, FELL TO THEIR KNEES BEFORE YOUR HOLINESS, AND REPRESENTED BY THE PRIESTS WHO APPROVE OF IT, SOME OF THEM EYEWITNESSES AND ALL OF THEM WITH FULL AND ABSOLUTE CERTAINTY OF THE NOTORIOUS FACTS WHICH ARE ABOUT TO BE DESCRIBED TO THE POPE IN THE HIGHEST  OBSERVANCE, SAY:

1. “ SINCE THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT EXERCISES ITS AUTHORITY (OCTOBER 7, 1936) OUR RIGHTS HAVE BEEN RESPECTED. BEFORE THIS GOVERNMENT CAME TO POWER SOME TERRORIST ATTACKS AGAINST PRIESTS AND SACRED PLACES TOOK PLACE, AND SOON ALSO SOME OTHER TERROR ATTACKS, AFTER OCTOBER 7, EVADING THE VIGILANCE OF THE AUTHORITHY”.

2. ”…MARCH 31, THE MOST IMPORTANT VILLA OF DURANGO WAS BOMBARDED AND HALF OF IT DESTROYED. THEY DESTROYED THE CHURCH OF ST. MARY, THE MODERN CHURCH OF THE JESUITS, THEY KILLED 2 PRIESTS AND MANY BELIEVERS WHO WERE CELEBRATING MASS, THEY DESTROYED THE CONVENT OF THE AUGUSTINES AND THEY KILLED 13 NUNS AND INJURED MANY OTHERS”.

3. “26 APRIL , THE AIR FORCE SERVING GENERAL FRANCO BOMBARDED AND  MACHINE-GUNNED THE WELL-RESPECTED VILLA OF GERNIKA, BURNING THE CHURCH OF ST. JOHN, BADLY DAMAGING THE CHURCH OF ST. MARY, AND BLOWING TO SMITHEREENS ALMOST ALL ITS BUILDINGS, MACHINE-GUNNING WITHOUT COMPASSION  FOR ITS INHABITANTS, WHILE THEY WERE RUNNING AWAY IN TERROR, FLEEING THE DEMOLITIONS AND THE FIRES WHICH SURROUNDED THEM, AND CAUSING HUNDREDS OF FATALITIES. THE PLANES, WHICH FLIED WITH IMPUNITY AT GROUND LEVEL, SAW PERFECTLY THE RUINS AND VICTIMS THEY WERE CAUSING, WHOM THEY CONSCIOUSLY CHASED. THEY CARRIED OUT A SIMILAR BARBARISM IN OTHER VILLAGES, LIKE ARBACEGUI AND GUERRICAIZ, AND THE SAME DESTRUCTIVE AIR ATTACKS TOOK PLACE IN OTHER VILLAGES AND BASQUE HOUSES”.

ALL THESE FACTS WHICH WE ARE RECORDING HERE AND WHOSE REALITY WE BEAR WITNESS WITH OUR FIRM AND CONSCIOUS TESTIMONY BEFORE HIS HOLINESS, ARE THE SAME AS THE ONES THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT HAS PUBLISHED IN ITS OFFICIAL JOURNAL, AND WHOSE TRUTH SOME PEOPLE HAVE WANTED TO DENY, TRYING TO MAKE THE BASQUE GOVERNMENT SOLDIERS RESPONSIBLE FOR SUCH RUINS AND FIRES; AND WITH THAT DEFAMATION OF OUR PEOPLE, WE, THE BIZKAIAN PRIESTS, THINK WE MUST LET YOU KNOW ABOUT OUR REALITY, WHICH WE CONFIRM BEFORE THE POPE, OUR COMMON LORD, WHOM WE NEED TO COMMUNICATE OUR PAIN AND TRIBULATION DURING THESE CRUEL WAR DAYS. IN THE NAME OF ALL THE BASQUE CLERGY AND OF ALL THE BASQUE PEOPLE, FAITHFUL TO ITS RELIGIOUS HISTORY, EVEN DURING THOSE MOMENTS OF SUCH CRUEL WAR, THE PRIESTS WHO SUBSCRIBE TO IT, AGREEING ON THE RESPECTFUL PLEA OF THE PRESIDENT OF EUZKADI GOVERNMENT, EAGER TO MAKE THE VOICE OF TRUTH REACH THE POPE, MAKE THIS DECLARATION, WHICH THEY RECORD AS FREE, SERENE AND GLADLY, CONSIDER RIGHTFULLY FAIR AND OFFER THE POPE THE TESTIMONY OF THE HUMBLE VENERATION AND DEEP OBEDIENCE WITH WHICH THEY FALL TO HIS  HOLINESS´ KNEES” BILBAO, MAY 11, 1937” ”. THAT DECLARATION WAS SIGNED BY 21 PEOPLE, MOST OF THEM RELEVANT PRIESTS AND 8 OUT OF THE 21 WERE EYEWITNESSES

THERE CAN BE NO OTHER EVIDENCE SO CONVINCING AS THAT ONE, AND YET SPAIN NOR GENERAL FRANCO EVER RECOGNIZED THE DESTRUCTION AND BURNING OF GERNIKA AND THE MACHINE-GUNNING OF ITS INHABITANTS, BEING EXCLUSIVELY DONE BY THE GERMAN AIR FORCE SERVING THEM. BUT THAT WASN´T ALL. THE ARCHPRIEST OF BILBAO AND  DELEGATE VICAR, THE FIRST ONE TO SIGN THE DECLARATION SENT TO THE HOLY POPE BY THE BASQUE CLERGY, DENOUNCING THE AIR RAIDS OF DURANGO AND OF GERNIKA, PUBLISHED IN LA GACETA DEL NORTE, SEPTEMBER 1, 1937 (PAGES 167-168) THE FOLLOWING EMBARRASING RECTIFICATION:

MY CASE OF CONSCIENCE: LOOKING BACK I CONTRAST THE JOY TODAY AND THE SADNESS OF THE PAST AND I NEED, ABOVE ALL, TO MAKE A SOLEMN PROTEST AGAINST THAT ABUSIVE PRESSURE EXERCISED ON ME, AND ON OTHER COLLEAGUES OF MINE, BY THE QUALIFIED TEMPORARY BASQUE COUNTRY GOVERNMENT, FORCING US TO SIGN AGAINST OUR OWN WILL, A HAPLES WRITING ON THE EVENTS IN DURANGO AND GERNIKA. ANY UPRIGHT CHRISTIAN CONSCIENCE WOULD HAVE RESPECTED THE CLERGY, NOT FORCING IT TO INTERFERE IN THE POLITICAL CONTINGENCY, BUT THE GOVERNMENT´S PERSONAL INTERESTS MATTERED THE MOST. THIS ABUSIVE PRESSURE, WHICH IN VAIN I TRIED TO FIGHT AGAINST, HAS BEEN AND STILL IS THE ONE THING THAT MORE HAS EMBITTERED MY HEART IN THE ACCOMPLISHMENT OF MY COMPROMISED POST OF DELEGATE VICAR, ALL OF WHICH TOGETHER WITH GOD´S WILL WAS CARRIED ON MY SHOULDERS. ANYHOW, THE GOVERNMENT MINISTER, FIRSTLY BY MEANS OF WORDS AND AFTERWARDS IN WRITING, THEN THE ECONOMY ONE, AND FINALLY THE PRESIDENT HIMSELF TOLD ME ABOUT SOME INTERVENTIONS IN ORDER TO SAVE THE HONOR, ACCORDING TO THEM, OF THE SLANDERED GOVERNMENT ON THAT POINT AND ON RELIGION ITSELF. AND THEY ENDED UP DEMANDING ME – “IT´S NECESSARY” SAID THE LAST WORD- WHICH THE CLERGY SUBSCRIBED TO IT AND I MYSELF FIRSTLY, A DOCUMENT ADDRESSED TO THE POPE, RELATED TO THE EVENTS IN THOSE 2 BASQUE DESTROYED VILLAS. HAD I REFUSED TO SIGN SUCH PROPOSAL THE CONSEQUENCES WOULD HAVE BEEN DISASTROUS AND WOULD HAVE DONE A LOT OF HARM WHICH I WAS OBLIGED TO AVOID. …THOSE SIGNATURES, WHICH FAR FROM BEING FREE AND SPONTANEOUS WERE STRIPPED OFF BY THE AUTHORITARIAN PRESSURE OF THOSE WHO EXERCISED THE POWER…”(BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA). 

THE FOLLOWING IS A LIST OF LIES TOLD ABOUT THE BOMBARDMENTS IN GERNIKA:

1. JESUS SALAS : “APRIL 28, RADIO SALAMANCA SAID THIS:

   “THE INDIGNATION OF THE SPANISH TROOPS CAN´T BE BIGGER DUE TO THE SLANDER CARRIED OUT BY THE SOVIET-BASQUE LEADERS, WHO AFTER DESTROYING THEIR BEST CITIES, TRY TO BLAME IT ON THE SPANISH AIRMEN” (GERNIKA. EL BOMBARDEOIMANOL VILLA)

2. “PUBLIC WORKS ENGINEER, VICENTE MACHIMBARRENA, AND MINING ENGINEER J. MILLANS DEL BOSCH, WENT TO GERNIKA APRIL 29, BY ORDER OF GENERAL MOLA IN ORDER TO WRITE A REPORT. AS A RESULT OF THAT, MAY 2, RADIO SALAMANCA BROADCASTED THIS: “…SOME BOMBS, HAVE REACHED GERNIKA DURING THE DAYS OUR AIRMEN OPERATED AGAINST IMPORTANT MILITARY OBJECTIVES” “. (GERNIKA. EL BOMBARDEOIMANOL VILLA)

3. “GERNERAL QUEIPO DE LLANO, WHO USED TO TALK ON A DAILY BASIS ON RADIO SEVILLA, ATTRIBUTES THE FIRE OF THE CHURCHES IN DURANGO TO THE BASQUE PEOPLE, AFTER FORCING WOMEN AND CHILDREN TO ENTER THE HOLY PLACES. THE DIARIO VASCO  OF SAN SEBASTIAN REPEATED THE SLANDEROUS AND ABSURD ACCUSATION”.

“AT 19:45 P.M THE SYSTEMATIC DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA CAME TO AN END. GERMAN AIR FORCE HAD BEEN SENT OVER GERNIKA TO CARRY OUT A TOTALITARIAN WAR REHEARSAL. IT WAS THE 1ST EXAMPLE OF THIS FIGHT GENRE: FIRST BOMBS TO SCARE THE PEOPLE IN GERNIKA, THEN A HEAVY SURGE OF BOMBARDMENTS WITH EXPLOSIVES, FOLLOWED BY FIRE BOMBS, AND FINALLY LIGHT AIRPLANES WHICH SHOT THE MISFORTUNE ONE WHO TRIED TO RUN FROM DANGER IN ORDER TO SAVE THEIR LIVES”.”THAT DESCRIPTION OF THE PRIEST ONAINDIA IS TOTALLY TRUE AND I SUBSCRIBE IT EVERYWHERE SINCE IT CORROBORATES WHAT IN PAGE 12 AND THE FOLLOWING ONES IN THE DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA,  THE LITTLE STORY IN THE SPANISH CIVIL WAR I WROTE YEARS AFTERWARDS…”.

4. “ABOUT THE DAY GERNIKA DIED BY GORDON THOMAS AND MAX MORGAN-WITTS, PUBLISHED IN LONDON ( FEB. 1976. EDIT. HODDER AND STOUKHTON) THE MAGAZINE CAMBIO 16 (FEB 9-15, 1976, Nº 218) PUBLISHED THIS ABOUT THAT BOOK:

“BOMBS, BECAUSE!:

THE GERMAN PILOTS OF THE  LEGION CONDOR WHO BOMBARDED GERNIKA APRIL 26, 1937, DID  NOT KNOW THEIR OBJECTIVE WAS CONSIDERED THE CRADLE OF THE BASQUE COUNTRY. FROM THE HIGH COMMAND OF THE NATIONAL ARMY WITH WHOM THEY CONSULTED THE DETAILS OF THE ATTACK, NO ONE WARNED THEM OF THAT FACT. THE ONLY ONES AWARE OF THE RELEVANCE OF THAT HISTORIC PLACE WERE THEIR INHABITANTS. AND PRECISELY, BECAUSE OF THAT, BECAUSE THE PEOPLE IN GERNIKA DID NOT BELIEVE THE NATIONALS WERE CAPABLE OF DESTROYING THEIR TOWN, THAT´S WHY THE BOMBARDMENTS ON A TYPICAL MARKET MONDAY SURPRISED ALL OF THEM. THIS WAS ONE OF THE MOST FAMOUS BOMBARDMENTS OF THE 20TH CENTURY. 50,000 KILOS OF BOMBS – MIXTURE OF DYNAMITE WITH INCENDIARY MATERIALS – WERE THROWN DOWN OVER THE BRIDGE OF RENTERIA, TO AVOID HERE THE CONCENTRATION IN GERNIKA OF BASQUE REPUBLICAN TROOPS, WHO FLED TO BILBAO GOING INTO THE VILLA ON THE TWO ROADS WHICH COLLIDE IN THE BRIDGE ENTRANCE, WHICH WAS ONLY 25 METERS LONG BY 8 METERS WIDE. ALL THIS SAID BOILS DOWN TO REJECT LIES SUCH AS THE DESTRUCTION OF GERNIKA BY BASQUE PEOPLE BURNING DOWN PLACES WITH GASOLINE, LIKE FRANCO´S GENERAL HEADQUARTERS DECLARED EIGHT DAYS AFTER THE ATTACK…”. TO DEMONSTRATE ALL THAT IS TRUE THOMAS AND MORGAN-WITTS OFFER UNPUBLISHED VERSIONS AND DOCUMENTS SO FAR LIKE THE FOLLOWING:

– THE TESTIMONIES HOUR BY HOUR OF THAT FATEFUL DAY OF SEVEN SURVIVORS OF GERNIKA,

– THE PERSONAL VERSIONS OF FIVE OF THE PILOTS WHO CARRIED OUT THE BOMBARDMENTS,

– AND THE PERSONAL DIARY OF THE CHIEF OF THE  LEGION CONDOR IN SPAIN, HOLFRAM VON RICHTHOFEN. THIS DIARY WAS WRITTEN BY HOLFRAM´S WIFE WHO USED TO SEND HIM ONE ON A DAILY BASIS”.

5. THE RULE OF THUMB OF THE  LEGION CONDOR  WAS BOMBARDMENTS  HITING ONLY MILITARY  OBJECTIVES AND YET, WHY DID THE CONDOR LEGION USE 53 HEAVY BOMBARDERS, 4 HEINKEN PATHFINDERS, 23 JUNKERS, 10 HE-51, 6 MESSERBGHMITT BI-109, WITH A CHARGE OF 50,000 KILOS OF FIRE MIXTURE EXPLOSIVES, WHICH VON RICHTHOFEN PERSONALLY ORDERED, AFTER HAVING GIVEN A TALK TOGETHER WITH COLONEL VIGON NEAR MOUNT MUCHATEGUI ?”.

6. “IT MAY BE TRUE GERMAN PILOTS DID NOT KNOW ABOUT THE  HISTORICAL VALUE OF GERNIKA BUT WHAT WE KNOW FOR SURE IS THAT THE MILITARY COMMANDS  KNEW ABOUT IT ; THAT´S WHY THEY WERE REALLY CAREFUL PRESERVING THE HOUSE OF JUNTAS AND THE TREE OF GERNIKA FROM BEING BOMBARDED, SINCE THEY KNEW THAT IF THOSE HISTORIC PLACES WERE HIT THE CONSEQUENCES IN THE BASQUE FOLLOWERS AND IN THE INTERNATIONAL WORLD WOULD HAVE BEEN MANY.

7.” IN THE SUSPENSE NOVEL BY GORDON THOMAS AND MORGAN-WITTS 50% OF WHAT THEY SAID ABOUT GERNIKA WAS FALSE. THE ONLY TRUTH  ABOUT THAT NOVEL IS THE ACCURACY IN THE DESCRIPTION OF THE BOMBARDMENTS  BY THE GERMAN AIR FORCE”.

8. “THOSE DAYS THE PRESS FROM BILBAO PUBLISHED THIS:

– “MR. GORDON THOMAS SAID THE BOMBARDMENT OF GERNIKA WAS UNKNOWN BY FRANCO, AND THAT IT WAS A NAZI DECISION AND SO SUCH GENOCIDE CANNOT BE ATTRIBUTED TO FRANCO”.

” I, CASTOR DE URIARTE, DARE TO ASK MYSELF THIS: ” IF IN THE INTERVIEW WHICH TOOK PLACE IN THE TOWN HALL OF BURGOS, BETWEEN  THE MANAGER OF THE  LEGION CONDORTHE MANAGER OF THE ITALIAN AIR FORCE LEGION, NORTH MAJOR STATE COLONEL, COLONEL JUAN VIGÓN AND OTHER SPANISH MILITARY MANAGERS, AND AFTER THE TALKS UNDERTAKEN ON MOUNT MOTEGUI WITH COLONEL VIGÓN  THEY ALL AGREED ON THE ATTACKS ON DURANGO AND GERNIKA, HOW CAN THEY TRY TO MAKE US BELIEVE GENERALS MOLA AND FRANCO DIDN´T KNOW ANYTHING ABOUT SUCH AGREEMENTS?, HOW CAN IT BE POSSIBLE AFTER DURANGO´S BOMBARDEMENT (MANY PEOPLE DIED, AMONG THEM TWO PRIESTS AND FOURTEEN NUNS) THAT THE GERMAN PILOTS WERE NOT REPRIMANDED SO THAT THEY WOULD HAVE STOPPED TORMENTING GERNIKA WITH THE EXCUSE OF DESTROYING THE BRIDGE OF RENTERIA, WHEN IN DURANGO THERE WERE SEVERAL BRIDGES WHICH WEREN´T MILITARY OBJECTIVES? ” (BOMBAS Y MENTIRAS SOBRE GERNIKA. DON CASTOR DE URIARTE AGUIRREAMALLOA)

9. “ALREADY IN THE MONTH OF MAY, ONCE FRANCO´S FOLLOWERS REMOVED OR COVERED UP THE EVIDENCE THEY ALLOWED THE INTERNATIONAL OBSERVERS GO INTO THE VILLA“.

” THIS IS THE PLAZA OPPOSITE ST. JOHN´S CHURCH WHERE THE OCCUPIERS HAD PUT  EMPTY GASOLINE  CANS SCATTERED AROUND THE STREETS, AS EVIDENCE OF THE FIRE  CARRIED OUT BY THE SEPARATIST-COMMIES. “(GERNIKA. EL BOMBARDEO. IMANOL VILLA)

GERNIKA WAS BOMBED 26 APRIL 1937 AND DURANGO WAS BOMBARDED 31 MARCH 1937. BOTH TOWNS WERE FLOURISHING ONES AND BOTH HAD KINGS FROM CASTILE SWEARING TO RESPECT THE BASQUE LIBERTIES, LIKE QUEEN ISABEL OF CASTILE  SWORE THE FUEROS IN DURANGO IN 1483. THERE HAVE BEEN SO MANY LIES AND EXCUSES FOR SUCH BOMBARDMENTS IN ORDER  TO GAIN SPACE IN THE EAST FOR THE GERMANS, AND GAIN TIME TO LATER ON SAY THE REASON FOR IT WAS THAT COMMUNISM WAS NOT GOOD FOR SPAIN NOR FOR EUROPE THAT WE WILL SIMPLY  SAY THE TRUTH OF IT ALL IS THAT BOTH GERNIKA AND DURANGO ARE WONDERFUL SYMBOLS OF THE BASQUE LIBERTIES, AND THAT CMTGS COULD NOT AND CANNOT HANDLE THAT POWER. IT SMELLS LIKE ENVY, DOESN´T IT? POWER TO THE BASQUE COUNTRY!

 

BEYOND OUR UNDERSTANDING

 

 

THE MORE WE LIVE THE MORE WE REALIZE HOW MUCH HARM IS EVIL DOING EVERYWHERE AROUND THE WORLD. AS TIME GOES BY THE DEVIL GAINS POWER MAKING ALMOST EVERYONE BELIEVE THERE´S NOTHING ELSE FOR US BUT THIS LIFE, OUR EGO, MAKING MONEY AND IGNORING WHAT HAPPENS TO THE ONES AROUND US. AS THE DEVIL IS MAKING MOST PEOPLE IGNORE GOD, LACKING ANY SORT OF SPIRITUAL LIFE WHATSOEVER, MORE AND MORE TERRORIST ATTACKS TAKE PLACE ALL OVER THE GLOBE.

LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS ARE ORCHESTRATING ALL THE TERRORIST ATTACKS TAKING PLACE AROUND THE WORLD. HOWEVER, THEY KNOW THEY ARE BEING WATCHED MORE AND MORE, AND THAT MAKES THEM BE DESPERATE. FOR EXAMPLE, ON THURSDAY 04/20/17, THE WOMAN THE CMTGS ARE AGAINST SAW HOW ONE OF THOSE CMTGS FOOLED  EVERYONE.   I´LL EXPLAIN THE WHOLE THING. THAT MORNING A COUPLE OF MINUTES AFTER THE WOMAN LEFT HER HOME THIS CMTG LEFT HIS HOME (2ND FLOOR LEFT DOOR) AND WALKED BEHIND HER AND PASSED HER IN A RUSH WITH HIS SMALL SON IN HIS ARMS. HE WAS IN SUCH A RUSH THAT HE DIDN´T EVEN WALK THE 30 METRE WALK TO THE CROSSING, AND SO HE CROSSED THE ROAD WITH CARS GOING IN BOTH DIRECTIONS WITH HIS SON IN HIS ARMS. BUT ONE MORE THING TO ADD HERE IS  THIS CMTG LOOKED AT THIS WOMAN WHEN SHE PASSED HIM, JUST BEFORE HE CROSSED. ONCE AGAIN, HE WAS MORE WORRIED ABOUT HER NOTICING SOMETHING FISHY THAN OF LOOKING BOTH SIDES BEFORE  CROSSING THE ROAD IN ORDER TO GET INTO HIS CAR TO GO AND GET THE BAGS WITH THE BUGS.  BESIDES THAT THERE IS SOMETHING ELSE WHICH IS KEY HERE. WHEN THE WOMAN STEPPED OUT OF HER BLOCK OF FLATS WHAT SHE SAW ON HER RIGHT WAS A 3 METRE LONG LINE OF BIG BAGS, A SMALL WOODEN TABLE AND A TOP PIECE OF A STATIONARY BIKE. WHEN SHE SAW IT SHE THOUGHT SOMETHING DID NOT ADD UP THERE, ALTHOUGH SHE DIDN´T QUITE UNDERSTAND IT AT THAT POINT. IT WAS LATER ON WHEN IT HIT HER THAT CMTG HAD BEEN WARNED, BY OTHER CMTGS WHO BRIBED HIM, THROUGH ENCRYPTED MESSAGES ON WHATSAPP, THAT HE WAS BEING WATCHED AND THAT ALL THE SOPHISTICATED BUGS HE HAD HIDDEN IN THE TOP CABINETS IN THE BEDROOMS SHOULD BE REMOVED AND TAKEN BACK TO THEM TO AVOID ANY RISKS. WITH ALL THOSE SOPHISTICATED BUGS DURING THESE 2 YEARS HE WAS ABLE TO LISTEN TO THIS WOMAN´S NEIGHBOURS AND THEN CMTGS MANAGED TO DO THEIR MANEUVERS IN THE DARK. SO SOME HOURS LATER THAT WOMAN PUT 2 AND 2 TOGETHER AND REALIZED THAT CMTG HAD FOOLED THE ONES WATCHING HIM SINCE NOBODY THOUGHT INSIDE THOSE BAGS, OUTSIDE THE WOMAN´S BLOCK OF FLATS, WERE THE SOPHISTICATED BUGS. YES, MY BROTHERS, CMTGS WORK THIS WAY!. HE MADE US ALL THINK HE HAD BEEN CLEANING THE HOUSE, AND THAT ALL THAT WAS INSIDE THE BAGS WAS JUNK SINCE HE LEFT THEM THERE BEFORE THE WOMAN LEFT HER PLACE, AND BEFORE HE WENT OUT FOR THE 2ND TIME WITH HIS SON. HE COULD HAVE WAITED FOR HIS WIFE (WHO DOES NOT KNOW HE´S A CMTG) TO COME AND HELP HIM WITH THE BAGS IF IT WASN´T FOR THE FACT THAT HE DID NOT WANT HER TO SEE THOSE SOPHISTICATED  BUGS, AND THAT´S WHY SUCH SLACKER DID SO MUCH WORK ON HIS OWN, RISKING BOTH HIS LIFE AND HIS DAUGHTER´S LIFE. THERE WAS A VAN OPENED IN FRONT OF IT READY FOR ACTION IF NEEDED. WHAT WE MEAN IS THAT AS THERE ARE CMTGS IN FRONT OF THIS WOMAN´S BLOCK OF FLATS THE MOMENT WE WOULD HAVE TRIED TO LOOK INSIDE ANY OF THOSE BAGS CMTGS WOULD HAVE CALLED HIM TO TELL HIM SOMETHING WAS NOT GOING RIGHT. TERRIFYING, RIGHT? AND THE THING IS THAT WE LOOK AT HIM, AND WE SEE A TALL THIN GUY OF ABOUT 27 YEARS OLD WHO DOES NOT LOOK LIKE A TERRIBLE PERSON CAPABLE OF THE WORST OF ACTS, AND YET HE IS. CMTGS ARE LIKE THAT.

ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF HOW CMTGS WORK IS THE FOLLOWING. IT ALL HAPPENED LAST SUNDAY. THE WOMAN THE CMTGS ARE AGAINST WAS GOING FOR A WALK, LOOKING AT THE RIVER AND SHE NOTICED A MAN IN A BLUE T-SHIRT ENJOYING THE MORNING AS WELL. ABOUT FIVE MINUTES LATER AS SHE WAS HOLDING IN THE URGE TO PEE SHE DECIDED TO GO INTO THIS BAR RESTROOM. IT WAS THE FIRST TIME SHE ENTERED THIS BAR BUT AS IT WAS SMALL AND THERE WAS JUST ONE DOOR IN FRONT OF THE ENTRANCE DOOR SHE JUST WENT AHEAD AND TRIED TO GET INTO THE RESTROOM BUT SHE COULDN´T OPEN IT. AS SHE WAS JIGGLING THE KNOB A 2ND AND 3RD TIME TO OPEN SHE HEARD THE WAITER SAY THIS  MOCKINGLY  TO THE MEN AT THE COUNTER THERE: THIS ONE GOES TO THE RESTROOM“. THE WOMAN COULD NOT BELIEVE WHAT SHE WAS HEARING, AND IMMEDIATELY THIS WOMAN ASKED IN A LOUD ANGRY VOICE: “WHERE IS THE RESTROOM?”, AND THE MOMENT SHE WAS SAYING IT SHE SAW THE MAN IN THE BLUE T-SHIRT ABOUT TO HAVE A CUP OF COFFEE, AND SAW THIS MAN IN THE BLUE  T-SHIRT REALIZED THE WAITER WAS A BULLY. IT WAS THEN WHEN THE WAITER SAID: “THERE´S NO RESTROOM”. YOU SEE, THAT WAITER  SAW SHE WAS TRYING TO OPEN THE RESTROOM DOOR AND INSTEAD OF TELLING HER KINDLY THE RESTROOM WAS OUT OF SERVICE HE MADE FUN OF HER. BUT TO ADD INSULT TO INJURY WHEN THE WOMAN WAS LEAVING THE BAR, RIGHT AFTER HEARING HIM SAY THERE WASN´T ANY RESTROOM, THE WAITER  ROUNDED OFF HIS DISCOURTESY SAYING A SARCASTIC AND AWFUL “THANK YOU“. THIS WOMAN OF COURSE DID NOT ANSWER HIM NOR SAY GOODBYE TO HIM. WHAT A DISGRACE TO HAVE SOMEONE LIKE HIM IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY!  BUT YOU SEE HE IS THE KIND OF PEOPLE WHO WORK FOR CMTGS. CMTGS AND PEOPLE LIKE HIM HAVE SOMETHING IN COMMON: THEY LACK GENEROSITY AND ALL THE REST OF THE BASIC VALUES A MAN, A HUMAN BEING MUST HAVE TO BE WORTH BEING AROUND US. THIS WOMAN KNEW THERE WAS A RESTROOM INSIDE SINCE A RELATIVE OF HER TOLD HER ABOUT IT. THIS RELATIVE OF HER WAS  ONCE INSIDE IT AND THE WAITER, A YOUNG GUY BACK THEN, WAS VERY POLITE TO HER AND DID NOT WANT TO ACCEPT THE EURO THIS RELATIVE OF HER LEFT FOR LETTING HER GO INTO IT. THIS TIME HOWEVER, THE WAITER WAS A CRANKY OLD MAN. LET´S IMAGINE THAT OLD CRANKY MAN WORKS FOR CMTGS. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS BOUGHT THAT BAR AND SO THE CURRENT WAITER IS NOT EVEN CLOSE TO SENSE THE POLITENESS THE ONE BEFORE HAD AND THE ONE  BASQUE PEOPLE ARE USED TO. ONE HOUR LATER (IT WAS ABOUT 1 PM) THE WOMAN WAS GOING BACK HOME WHEN SHE SAW ONE OF THE CMTGS  GOING IN THE DIRECTION OF  THAT  BAR.   THIS CMTG IS ABOUT 42 YEARS OLD, KIND OF  GRAY-HAIRED, ABOUT A METER EIGHTY TALL, THIN AND WAS WEARING JEANS AND A JEANS SHIRT THAT DAY. ON SUNDAYS HE ALWAYS WALKS WITH HIS  WIFE  (WHO  DOESN´T KNOW HE IS A CMTG) AND HIS SMALL SON, NOT ALONE LIKE THIS TIME LET´S REMEMBER COINCIDENCES DO NOT EXIST. LET´S IMAGINE THIS CMTG WENT THERE AND TOLD THE CRANKY OLD WAITER WHO THAT WOMAN WAS AND WHAT TERRIBLE MISTAKE HE HAD MADE. LET´S IMAGINE THAT CRANKY OLD MAN IS NOT FROM THE BASQUE COUNTRY BUT FROM ANOTHER PROVINCE. LET´S IMAGINE THE MAN IN THE BLUE T-SHIRT KNEW THE WOMAN AND HE IS SOMEONE WHOSE PHONE WAS TAPPED. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS KNEW THEY WERE IN TROUBLE SINCE SOONER THAN LATER THE MAN IN THE BLUE T-SHIRT AND MANY MORE PEOPLE WOULD FIND OUT THE CRANKY MAN WAS NOT FROM THE BASQUE COUNTRY AND WOULD FINALLY FIGURE OUT THERE WAS A CONNECTION BETWEEN HIM AND THE CMTGS. YES MY BROTHERS, ONCE AGAIN THEY DID IT. AND TODAY IN THE NIGHT NEWS WE HEARD CMTGS´S LAST MANEUVER IN THE DARK REGARDING THAT MOCKING AND WAS THE FOLLOWING: CMTGS ASKED A MAJOR FROM THAT SAME PROVINCE THE TERRIBLE CRANKY OLD MAN WAS FROM TO COME UP WITH THE MANEUVER IN THE DARK OF MAKING US ALL BELIEVE THEIR PROVINCE AND THEIR PEOPLE, WHO HAVE NOTHING IN COMMON WITH BASQUE PEOPLE, CARE FOR US, WHEN THE TRUTH OF THE MATTER IS THAT THEY WANT TO COVER UP FOR THE IMPOLITENESS THAT MAN NOBODY WANTS AROUND HERE ANY MORE.

CMTGS ARE FULL OF EVIL AND THE FOLLOWING TERRIBLE PIECES OF NEWS CORROBORATE IT:

1. 04/12/17: A SHOOTING OCCURRED IN A PARK IN ARRASATE (GIPUZKOA). A PAKISTANI WAS WOUNDED ON HIS BACK IN A SHOOTING, IN FRONT OF HIS CHILDREN WHO WERE PLAYING THERE. YOU SEE, CMTGS ARE COWARDS, AND THEY ARE SO DESPERATE THAT THEY DO THE MOST HORRIBLE ACTS POSSIBLE. LET´S IMAGINE THIS PALESTINE MAN KNEW DIRTY STAFF ABOUT THE CMTGS AND THAT´S WHY THEY TRIED TO KILL HIM.

2. 04/13/17: SEVERAL RUBBISH BINS WERE BURNT IN ATXURI (BIZKAIA). UP TO 140 RUBBISH BINS HAVE BEEN BURNT IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY SO FAR THIS YEAR. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS ARE BEHIND ALL THIS.

3. 04/13/17: A BRITISH TOURIST WAS STABBED BY A PALESTINIAN MAN ON A TRAIN IN JERUSALEM.  LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS WERE BEHIND THIS ATTACK, AND LET´S IMAGINE THEY DID IT TO CONFUSE EVERYONE SO THAT NOBODY ANY LONGER KNOWS WHY, WHERE, HOW, WHO…

4. 04/13/17: DURING HOLY THURSDAY IN SEVILLE THERE WERE 17 INJURED PEOPLE AND 8 PEOPLE DETAINED. THOSE 8 ONES WANTED TO SPREAD TERROR BY MEANS OF VANDALISM. PEOPLE SAID THESE 8 GUYS WERE BEHIND THE SERIES OF STAMPEDES WHICH TOOK PLACE, AND  WERE GESTICULATING AS TO MAKE EVERYONE AROUND THEM BELIEVE SOMETHING TERRIBLE WAS GOING ON. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS ARE BEHIND IT.

5. 04/20/17:  IN PARIS 1 POLICE OFFICER  WAS KILLED  AND ANOTHER WOUNDED IN A SHOOTING IN ANOTHER TERRORIST ATTACK. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS ARE BEHIND IT.

THE DEVIL IS SPECIALIST IN SUBTLE MANEUVERS IN THE DARK. HERE ARE JUST A FEW EXAMPLES:

1. “THE CHURCH OF CHURCHDOWN (GLOUCESTERSHIRE) FOR EXAMPLE IS ON THE TOP OF A HILL, WHOSE SLOPE WAS CUT IN STEPS, WHICH MAKE THE WAY TO THE TOP. IT IS SAID THE DEVIL, IN ORDER TO DISCOURAGE THE PARISHIONERS, WOULD TAKE AWAY THE STONES WHICH THE BUILDERS HAD PUT IN THE PLACES THEY DECIDED TO THE NIGHT BEFORE AT THE FOOT OF THE HILL OF CHURCHDOWN, AND  CARRIED THEM TO THE TOP OF THE HILL.

2. A SIMILAR STORY IS TOLD OF BRENTOR, WEST OF DARTMOOR, WHERE THE PERSISTENCE OF THE DEVIL MADE THE CHURCH TO BE BUILT ON THE TOP OF A  SHEER HILL, VISIBLE FROM MANY MILES AWAY.

3. THE CHURCH OF ROCHDALE WAS DESTROYED THREE TIMES BY THE DEVIL, AND REBUILT IN A HIGHER PLACE THAN THE FIRST CHOSEN PLACE BY THE BUILDERS. THE ANGELS TOOK THE CHURCH FROM HOLME (YORKSHIRE) TO A HILL, AND THEY THEMSELVES AS WELL WERE THE ONES WHO PUT THE CHURCH OF GODSHILL ON THE ISLAND OF WIGHT, ON ITS BEAUTIFUL ELEVATION ALL COVERED IN GRASS.

4. THE CHURCH OF ALFRISTON (SUSSEX). ALL THE STONES PLACED BY THE BUILDERS IN CERTAIN PLACES WERE MOVED TO DIFFERENT AREAS AND THIS WENT ON FOR A LONG TIME EVERY NIGHT.

5. THE CHURCH OF WHITBY (SUSSEX) WAS DEVIATED FROM THEIR ORIGINAL LOCATION BY THE DEVIL.

6. THE SAME AS IN THE CHURCH OF WHITBY HAPPENED IN MAYFIELD WHERE DUNSTAN CHURCH WAS REORIENTED SO THAT IT WERE EAST-WEST LINED UP. AND WHEN A STONE CHURCH WAS STARTED TO BEING BUILT IN ORDER TO REPLACE THE ORIGINAL STRUCTURE THE DEVIL TRIED ONCE AGAIN TO ALTER THE TRACK, MOVING THE STONES AROUND MAKING IT HARD FOR THE WORKERS AT THE QUARRY TO DO THEIR JOB AS THEY WANTED” (NUEVA VISION SOBRE LA ATLANTIDA. JOHN MICHELL).

THE  2017  FILM  GUARDIANS  OF   THE   GALAXY  VOL  2   RICHARD   SMITHS´REVENGE  DIRECTED BY  JAMES GUNN AND STARRING CHRIS PRATT (AS QUILL) , ZOE SALDANA, DAVE BAUTISTA, VIN DIESEL, BRADLEY COOPER, MICHAEL ROOKER (AS YONDU UDONTA), KAREN GILLAN, POM KLEMENTIEFF, ELIZABETH DEBIEKI, CHRIS SULLIVAN, SEAN GUNN, SYLVESTER STALLONE AND KURT RUSSELL (AS EGO)   SHOWS US THE 2 TEAMS THIS WORLD HAS: GOD´S  TEAM AND THE DEVIL´S ONE. THE  DEVIL´S TEAM IS THE ONE WHOSE FOLLOWERS DECEIVE THEMSELVES, KILLING EACH OTHER WHENEVER THE OPPORTUNITY COMES, THAT IS, WHENEVER THE ONE IS NO LONGER OF ANY USE. LET´S REMEMBER DEVIL FOLLOWERS DO NOT LOVE ANYONE BUT THEMSELVES.   QUILL´S FATHER, EGO, BELONGED TO THE DEVIL´S TEAM. EGO TRIED TO CREATE NEW EXTENSIONS OF HIMSELF IN LOTS OF DIFFERENT WORLDS BUT HE FAILED AND KILLED ALL THE CREATURES HE CREATED. EGO SYMBOLIZES THE DEVIL AND IS SUCCESSFULLY PORTRAYED SINCE IN REAL LIFE THE DEVIL OFTEN COMES ACROSS AS SOMEONE WE LIKE AT FIRST SIGHT, JUST AS QUILL´S FATHER DID AT FIRST. IT´S ONLY AT THE END WHEN WE FIND OUT ABOUT HIS EGO DESIRES AND WE FINALLY SEE HE´S NOT WHAT WE THOUGHT OF AT FIRST. THE DEVIL IS THAT WAY. THE BEST PART OF THE FILM IS WHEN TWO OF THE DEVIL´S TEAM REALIZED THEY NEVER DID ANYTHING GOOD IN THEIR WHOLE LIVES AND EVEN ADMITTED TO HAVE TRAFFICKED WITH CHILDREN, SOMETHING WHICH IS UNFORTUNATELY SO REAL THESE DAYS, AND THEY FINALLY DECIDE TO MAKE A CHANGE IN THEIR LIVES AND START WORKING FOR GOD. ONE OF THOSE TWO IS MICHAEL ROOKER AS YONDU UDONTA, A BLUE-SKINNED LEADER OF THE RAVAGERS.  THAT´S WHAT WE ARE AFTER TOO WITH ALL THESE MONTHLY WRITINGS. WE´RE AFTER ALL OF YOU BECAUSE WE WANT TO SEE YOU IN THE 2ND PART OF THIS GAME CALLED LIFE. WE REALLY WANT THAT AND WANT YOU TO JOIN US ON THIS JOURNEY RECRUITING BORN AGAINS. THERE´S NOTHING HALF AS BEAUTIFUL AS THIS. THIS IS IT!

 

 

 

 

 

RIGHT IN FRONT OF US!

 

 

SINCE WE ARE BORN WE ARE TAUGHT TO COMPETE, AND VERY SOON WE ARE IMMERSED IN A SERIES OF COMPETITIONS, MAKING US BELIEVE LIFE IS ALL ABOUT THAT: POWER. BEING THINGS AS THEY ARE TODAY IT SEEMS REACHING POWER IS MANY PEOPLE´S AIM IN LIFE. THE OTHERS WHO ARE NOT IN THAT GROUP ARE CAUGHT UP BY THAT COMPETITION LURE, AND START THINKING LIFE´S ABOUT IT – EVEN THOUGH THEY DIDN´T GO FOR IT – AND TRY TO PASS THAT COMPETITION DRIVE AS A VALUE ON OTHERS. LATER IN LIFE WE REALIZE THE REALIZATION OF SUCH NOTION WAS NOT SUCH A GOOD IDEA. THE REASON WHY IT´S NOT A VALUE ITSELF IN MOST CASES IS BECAUSE COMPETITION TURNS US INTO EGOIST BEINGS, ONLY CONCERNED WITH GAINING MORE MONEY AND MORE POWER. THIS BECOMES A NON-ENDING CYCLE WHICH EATS UP THE SACRED VALUE OF SERVING THE OTHERS, SINCE IT´S SIMPLY THE OPPOSITE TO POWER.

THE SECOND WORLD WAR SHOWED US HOW GERMANY, WANTING TO CONQUER POLAND, FINLAND, ROMANIA AND THE BALTIC STATES, AND THE SOVIET UNION WANTING TO TAKE PART IN THAT MANEUVER, WERE COUNTRIES WHOSE ONLY AIM WAS CONTROLLING MUCH OF CONTINENTAL EUROPE, NO MATTER THE FATALITIES INVOLVED. HAD GERMANY AND THE SOVIET UNION HAD LEADERS WHOSE AIM IN LIFE WAS TO BE PEOPLE´S REPRESENTATIVES, TRYING TO DO THEIR BEST TO HELP THEIR PEOPLE AND THE OTHER COUNTRIES´ ONES AS WELL, NO WWII WOULD HAVE HAPPENED. AND AGAIN POWER REASONS ARE BEHIND WWII AND ALL THE REST OF THE WORLDWIDE CONFLICTS TOO.

BESIDES THE POWER OF MONEY AND THE POWER OF STATUS IS THE POWER OF FAITH. KNOWING ONESELF, LOOKING INWARDS, BREATHING DEEPLY IN AND SLOWLY OUT, VALUING THE DAILY SMALL THINGS, THANKING GOD FOR EACH OF THOSE LITTLE PRESENTS IN OUR LIFE AND FOR THE HEALTH WE ENJOY, THE FAMILY AND GOOD PEOPLE AROUND US, DOING AS MUCH GOOD AS WE CAN ON A DAILY BASIS, BEARING IN MIND WE´RE CREATURES OF GOD WHO CAN MAKE POSSIBLE THE IMPOSSIBLE IS THE NUMBER ONE POWER OF ALL.

PEOPLE WHO HAVE THE POWER OF MONEY OR STATUS BUT LACK THE ONE OF FAITH USUALLY DO NOT HAVE SOLID FOUNDATIONS. THEIR VALUES ARE MONEY AND STATUS BASICALLY, AND SO IT´S ONLY NATURAL TO THEM TO GET JEALOUS OF THE ONES WHO ENJOY HAPPINESS IN WAYS THEY´VE NEVER IMAGINED IN THEIR WILDEST DREAMS. WE´RE TALKING ABOUT 2 TEAMS. WE´RE EITHER ON GOD´S SIDE OR ON THE COMPETITION. SURE THE EVIL INSIDE THOSE AGAINST GOD HAVE ENLIGHTMENT ZERO REGARDING WHAT IS RIGHT, WHO IS TO BLAME, WHO IS NOT, WHAT STEPS TO TAKE, IN WHICH DIRECTION, WHEN, ETC…, AND THAT EVIL ALSO MAKES THEM GO AGAINST ANYTHING OUR TEAM CHERISHES. FOR SURE EVIL IS BEHIND LONDON´S LAST TERROR ATTACKS, MARCH 23, KILLING 4 PEOPLE AND HURTING 40 OUTSIDE THE HOUSES OF PARLIAMENT. LET´S IMAGINE SOMEONE – HAVING NOTHING TO DO WITH ISLAMIST TERRORISM – PUSHED THE SINGLE ATTACKER –  BY THE WAY, A TEACHER – WHO COMMITTED SUCH CRIMES TO DO THEM, AND LET´S IMAGINE THAT TEACHER DID NOT WANT TO DO IT. WHY DID THE ATTACKER USE A KNIFE INSTEAD OF A GUN? LET´S IMAGINE IT WAS BECAUSE IT WAS NOT HIS IDEA BUT SOMEONE ELSE´S, AND THAT SOMEONE ELSE WAS BRIBED BY THE CMTGS TO DO IT, BUT AS HE KNEW HE COULD BE CAUGHT BY MANY VIDEO CAMERAS ON THE STREETS HE DIDN´T MANAGE TO PASS THE TEACHER ANY GUNS. LET´S ALSO IMAGINE THE ONLY REASON WHY HE DID IT WAS BECAUSE THAT SOMEONE THREATENED TO KILL HIS CHILD. AND WHY ALL THIS? LET´S IMAGINE, THE CMTGS ARE BEHIND IT. WHY? BECAUSE CMTGS ARE BEING SPIED AND THEY KNOW IT, AND SO THEY ARE REALLY DESPERATE.  IT´S CLEAR IT IS ONE MORE OF THE MANY ATTEMPTS TO SPREAD TERROR AMONG PEOPLE AND CONSEQUENTLY SUBTLY MAKE PEOPLE CHANGE THEIR PLANS, WHICH IS THE CMTGS´ ULTIMATE GOAL. GB PRIME MINISTER THERESA MAY ASKED TO HAVE ACCESS TO MESSAGES ON WHATSAPP AND OTHER ENCRYPTED SOCIAL MEDIA SERVICES AFTER FINDING OUT THE TEACHER HAD RECEIVED ENCRYPTED MESSAGES BY WHATSAPP. LET´S IMAGINE WHATSAPP IS A BIG ESCAPE ROUTE FOR TERRORISTS AND OTHERS, AND THEY ARE USING IT. LET´S IMAGINE GREAT BRITAIN P.M. IS FULLY RIGHT IN REQUESTING SUCH ACCESS SINCE LIVES ARE AT STAKE AND PLUS, SINCE WE DON´T HAVE ANYTHING TO HIDE, WE DON´T MIND ANYONE HAVING ACCESS TO WHAT WE´RE SAYING. LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS CAME UP WITH THE IDEA OF A FREE WHATSAPP, AND THOUGHT OF THIS POSSIBLE ESCAPE IN ORDER TO PURSUE THEIR MANEUVERS IN THE DARK.

ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF EVIL INSIDE THOSE AGAINST GOD IS LAST TUESDAY´S CHEMICAL WEAPONS ATTACK IN SYRIA. IT KILLED 70 PEOPLE AND 100 WERE TREATED IN HOSPITALS IN IDLIB, WHERE THE SURVIVORS SAID A TOXIC GAS WAS DROPPED FROM WARPLANES…THERESA MAY IS RIGHT WHEN SHE CALLS FOR AN INVESTIGATION BY THE ORGANISATION FOR THE PROHIBITION OF CHEMICAL WEAPONS. IT´S TERRIBLE TO HEAR THAT HOURS AFTER SUCH ATTACK, AS IF THEY DIDN´T HAVE HAD ENOUGH, THEY ALSO HIT A HOSPITAL TREATING THE INJURED. ” “ DOZENS OF CHILDREN SUFFOCATED TO DEATH WHILE THEY SLEPT,” SAID AHMAD TARAKJI, THE HEAD OF THE SYRIAN AMERICAN MEDICAL SOCIETY (SAMS), WHICH SUPPORTS HOSPITALS IN OPPOSITION-CONTROLLED AREAS IN SYRIA. SMITH SAID: “…THE VICTIMS DON´T HAVE ANY PHYSICAL TRAUMA INJURIES. THERE IS FOAMING AND PINPOINTED PUPILS…THIS APPEARS TO BE SOME KIND OF ORGANO-PHOSPHATE POISON. IN THEORY, A NERVE AGENT. WHAT´S STRIKING IS IT WOULD APPEAR TO BE MORE THAN CHLORINE. THE TOXICITY OF CHLORINE DOES NOT LEND ITSELF TO THE SORT OF INJURIES AND NUMBERS THAT WE´VE SEEN.” “(SYRIA CHEMICAL WEAPONS ATTACK TOLL RISES TO 70 AS RUSSIAN NARRATIVE IS DISMISSED.THEGUARDIAN). LET´S IMAGINE CMTGS ARE BEHIND THAT CHEMICAL WEAPONS ATTACK AND LET´S IMAGINE THAT THEY ARE PLANNING TO DO IT AGAIN SOMEWHERE ELSE.

ABOUT 2 WEEKS AGO WE HEARD ON THE NEWS SOME SPANISH POLITICIANS WANTED TO PUT AN END TO THE BROADCAST OF THE HOLY MASS ON TV ON SUNDAYS. AND RIGHT AWAY THE FIRST THING THAT CAME TO OUR MIND WAS: WHO NEEDS SUCH POLITICIANS TO SAY SUCH THING? REALLY NONE OF US! FIRST OF ALL, THE HOLY MASS IS A TRADITION IN SPAIN, A CHRISTIAN COUNTRY FOR MORE THAN 20 CENTURIES AND EVERYONE SHOULD RESPECT THE ONES WHO REALLY BELIEVE IN JESUS CHRIST AS OUR MODEL TO FOLLOW. JESUS CHRIST SHOWED US OUR AIM IN LIFE IS TO SERVE THE OTHERS. JESUS CHRIST STARTED THE FIRST EUCHARIST IN THE LAST SUPPER, AND ENTITLED EACH ONE OF US TO DO THE SAME AS HE DID. THIS CONCEPT IS SO SACRED THAT THE CHALICE IN EVERY EUCHARIST SYMBOLIZES UNLIMITED POWER IF ONE WHO IS PURE OF HEART BELIEVES IT SOAND ALL THIS TAKES US ALL THE WAY TO THE HOLY GRAIL.

ATTEMPTS TRYING TO HIDE THE TRUE NATURE OF THINGS ARE RECURRENT THROUGHOUT HISTORY. FOR INSTANCE, THE REASON WHY THE CHURCH OF ROME RESISTED THE ACCEPTANCE OF THE GRAIL TRADITION WAS NOT SIMPLY BECAUSE “THEY REJECTED THE POETIC IDEAS OF CABALRY NOVELS, BUT ALSO BECAUSE OF THE EXISTENCE OF A GRIAL FAMILY CARRYING THE MESSIANIC LINEAGE” (LA HERENCIA DEL SANTO GRIAL. SIR LAURENCE GARDNER).

“THE WORD “GRIAL” DERIVES FROM OLD FRENCH “GRADALE” (FROM LATIN “GRADALIS”) WHICH MEANS “ A BIG AND A BIT SWALLOW RECIPIENT WHERE DELICACIES ARE SERVED” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL. GRAHAM HANCOCK).

“THE HOLY GRAIL IS A VESSEL THAT SERVES AS AN IMPORTANT MOTIF IN ARTHUR LITERATURE. DIFFERENT TRADITIONS DESCRIBE IT AS A CUP, DISH OR STONE WITH MIRACULOUS POWERS THAT PROVIDE HAPPINESS, ETERNAL YOUTH OR SUSTENANCE IN INFINITE ABUNDANCE” (WIKIPEDIA. THE HOLY GRAIL).

THE HOLY GRAIL WAS A VESSEL USED BY CHRIST AT THE LAST SUPPER, GIVEN TO HIS GRANDUNCLE, ST. JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA (AD 63), IT WAS USED BY HIM TO COLLECT CHRIST´S BLOOD AND SWEAT WHILE JOSEPH TENDED HIM ON THE CROSS:

 imagen-29-4-17-a-las-11-20-3 

AFTER CHRIST´S DEATH, JOSEPH WAS APPARENTLY IMPRISONED IN A ROCK TOMB SIMILAR TO THE ONE HE HAD GIVEN FOR THE BODY OF HIS GRAND-NEPHEW. LEFT TO STARVE, HE WAS SUSTAINED FOR SEVERAL YEARS BY THE POWER OF THE GRAIL WHICH PROVIDED HIM WITH FRESH FOOD AND DRINK EVERY MORNING. LATER, ST. JOSEPH TRAVELLED TO BRITAIN WITH HIS FAMILY AND SEVERAL FOLLOWERS. HE SETTLED AT YNYS WITRIN (GLASTONBURY), BUT THE GRAIL WAS TAKEN TO CORBENIC WHERE IT WAS HOUSED IN A SPECTACULAR CASTLE, GUARDED ALWAYS BY THE GRAIL KINGS, DESCENDANTS OF JOSEPH´S DAUGHTER, ANNA (ENYGEUS) AND HER HUSBAND, BRONS. CENTURIES LATER, THE LOCATION OF THE GREAT CASTLE OF CORBENIC BECAME FORGOTTEN. AT THE COURT OF KING ARTHUR, HOWEVER, IT WAS PROPHESIED THAT THE GRAIL WOULD ONE DAY BE REDISCOVERED BY A DESCENDANT OF ST. JOSEPH: THE BEST KNIGHT IN THE LAND, THE ONLY MAN CAPABLE OF SITTING IN THE MYSTERIOUS SIEGE PERILOUS. WHEN SUCH A MAN ARRIVED IN THE FORM OF GALAHAD, THE SON OF LANCELOT, ALONG WITH A MIRACULOUS, THOUGH BRIEF, VISION OF THE GRAIL ITSELF, A QUEST TO FIND THIS HOLIEST OF RELICS BEGAN. THROUGH MANY ADVENTURES AND MANY YEARS, THE KNIGHTS OF THE ROUND TABLE CROSSED BRITAIN FROM ONE END TO ANOTHER IN THEIR SEARCH. PERCEBAL DISCOVERED THE CASTLE IN A LAND THAT WAS SICKLY LIKE ITS SPEAR-WOUNDED KING. WHEN ENTERTAINED BY THIS “FISHER” OR “GRAIL KING”, HOWEVER, HE FAILED TO ASK OF THE GRAIL AND LEFT EMPTY-HAND. LANCELOT NEXT REACHED CORBENIC, BUT WAS PREVENTED FROM ENTERING BECAUSE HE WAS AN ADULTERER. FINALLY GALAHAD ARRIVED AND WAS PERMITTED ENTRY TO THE GRAIL CHAPEL AND ALLOWED TO GAZE UPON THE GREAT CUP. HIS LIFE BECAME COMPLETE AND TOGETHER GRAIL AND MAN WERE LIFTED UP TO HEAVEN” (KING ARTHUR IN LEGEND: THE HOLY GRAIL – BRITANNIA.COM). 

GERALD OF WALES (DIED 1223) CLAIMS HE WITNESSED THE EXHUMATION OF KING ARTHUR FROM A GRAVE DISCOVERED AT GLASTONBURY ABBEY IN AROUND 1190 OR 1191. HE STATES “ AND THERE WAS A LEAD CROSS FIXED UNDER … A STONE SLAB. I HAVE SEEN THIS CROSS, AND HAVE TRACED THE LETTERS SCULPTED INTO IT… AND THEY SAID: “ HERE LIES BURIED THE FAMOUS KING ARTHUR WITH GUENEVERE, HIS SECOND WIFE IN THE ISLAND OF AVALON”. SEVERAL NOTABLE THINGS ARISE FROM THIS INSCRIPTION: THAT ARTHUR HAD 2 WIVES, OF WHOM THE SECOND WAS BURIED WITH HIM, AND INDEED HER BONES WERE FOUND WITH THE BONES OF HER HUSBAND…THE PLACE WHICH IS NOW CALLED GLASTONBURY WAS IN THE OLD TIME CALLED AVALON. AND IT IS LIKE AN ISLAND, COMPLETELY SURROUNDED BY MARCHES, WHENCE IT IS CALLED IN THE BRITISH TONGUE INIS AVALLON, THAT IS, THE ISLAND OF APPLES… IT WAS HERE, TO THIS ISLAND WHICH IS NOW CALLED GLASTONBURY, THAT MORGAN, A NOBLE MATRON AND THE RULER AND PATRON OF THOSE PARTS, AND ALSO CLOSE IN BLOOD TO KING ARTHUR, TOOK ARTHUR AFTER THE BATTLE OF CAMLANN FOR THE HEALING OF HIS WOUNDS” (THE ORIGINS OF KING ARTHUR – ROMAN OR WELSH?).

“AFTER HAVING DONE MUCH RESEARCH GRAHAM HANCOCK COMES TO THE CONCLUSION THE SYMBOL OF THE “SACRED BLOOD” RELATED TO THE GRIAL IN THE POPULAR CULTURE WAS AN ADDED GLOSA BY AUTHORS WHO CAME AFTER HIM. THIS CHRISTIANIZATION PROCESS HAD BEEN LAUNCHED BY THE CISTERCIAN ORDER, AND AT THE SAME TIME THE CISTERCIANS HAD BEEN DEEPLY INFLUENCED BY A MAN, ST. BERNARD OF CLARAVAL, WHO HAD JOINED THE ORDER IN 1112, AND WAS CONSIDERED AS THE MOST IMPORTANT FIGURE OF HIS TIME BY MANY SCHOLARS. THE HOLY GRIAL OF PARZIBAL BY WOLFRAM VON ESCHENBACH (GERMANY), ONE OF THE FIRST MEDIEVAL POETS RESEARCHING THE GRIAL, IS DESCRIBED OF PARZIBAL WAS PROBABLY DELIBERATLY BUILT BY THE GERMAN POET WOLFRAM VON ESCHENBACH IN ORDER TO SHOW MANKIND A SORT OF CRYPTOGRAM OF THE ARK IN ORDER TO FIND IT”. LET´S IMAGINE THE STONE SYMBOLIZES GOD´S LAWS, THAT IS, THE 10 COMMANDMENTS WRITTEN BY GOD ON THE 2 STONE TABLETS. ACCORDING TO WOLFRAMTHE GRIAL, SINCE IT COULD ONLY BE CARRIED BY PEOPLE OF PURE HEART, WAS SO HEAVY THAT SINNERS COULD NOT LIFT IT FROM WHERE IT WAS AT”. WOLFRAM MENTIONS THIS IN HIS CRYPTIC PROSE: “THERE WAS A PAGAN PHYSICIAN CALLED FLEGETANIS (CHAPTER 9 OF PARZIBAL) WHO WROTE ABOUT THE GRIAL´S WONDERS FLEGETANIS SAID THAT WE´RE ALL AFFECTED BY THE PLANETS REVOLUTIONS. HE SAID THERE WAS SOMETHING CALLED GRIAL WHOSE NAME COULD BE READ IN THE STARS: “ A TROOP OF ANGELS LEFT THE GRIAL ON EARTH AND AFTER THAT THEY ROSE UP TO WHERE THE STARS ARE, AS IF THEIR INNOCENCE MADE THEM LEAVE”. WOLFRAM DESCRIBES THE GRIAL AS A SOURCE OF BLESSINGS AND FERTILITY FOR PEOPLE OF PURE HEART WHO CONTACTED WITH IT. ONE EXAMPLE AMONG MANY IS IN CHAPTER 5 OF PARZIBAL: “EVERY TIME SOMEONE STRECHED HIS HAND TO GET SOMETHING IN THE PRESENCE OF THE GRIAL, THERE IT WAS, YOU GOT IT, ALL READY TO GO, HOT DISHES, COLD DISHES, JUST INVENTED DISHES , AND THE FAVOURITE ONES AMONG THE OLDIES…, BECAUSE THE GRIAL WAS A FRUIT OF BLESSINGS, A HORN OF PLENTY OF THE DELIGHTS OF THIS WORLD” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL. GRAHAM HANCOCK). 

THE FOLLOWING FACTS AND COMMENTS BACK UP THE EXISTENCE OF THE GRIAL:

 1. THERE ARE REASONS WHY THE GRIAL WAS HIDDEN. CORRUPT ONES DIDN´T WANT PEOPLE OF PURE HEART TO BENEFIT FROM THE GRIAL SINCE THAT WAY THEY, AND ONLY THEY, WOULD BENEFIT FROM IT. CORRUPT ONES COULDN´T STAND BEING LEFT OUT BECAUSE THEY COULDN´T HANDLE SEEING OTHERS BEING HAPPY AND ENJOYING LIFE. THEY ALSO REALIZED THAT LETTING PEOPLE ACCESS THE GRIAL WOULD HAVE RESULTED IN PURE PEOPLE GETTING WHAT THEY DESERVED, AND THEY COULDN´T DIGEST SUCH REALITY.

“THE GRIAL GAVE OFF SUCH A BRIGHTNESS THAT CANDLES LOST THEIR GLOW, LIKE IT HAPPENS TO STARS WHEN THE SUN OR THE MOON COMES UP. THE GRIAL ACCORDING TO CHRETIEN WAS MADE OF PURE GOLD, BUT IT WASN´T THIS MATERIAL WHICH MADE THE GRIAL GENERATE SUCH LIGHT. THAT GIFT HAD TO DO WITH THE FACT THAT THE GRIAL WAS BATHED IN A BURNING HEAVENLY ENERGYTHAT´S WHY WOLFRAM IN PARZIVAL MENTIONS THE “STONE-GRIAL” AND SAYS THAT IT WAS CARRIED THROUGH THE STREETS IN PROCESSION BY  REPANSE  DE  SCHOYE´S HANDS, WHOSE FACE SHONE IN SUCH A WAY THAT EVERYONE IMAGINED IT WAS DUE TO A REALLY BRIGHT DAWN. THAT WOMAN WAS A VIRGIN PRINCESS. THERE WAS AN AURA OF SAINTLINESS AND POWER SURROUNDING HER. SHE DID NOT CHOOSE TO CARRY THE GRIAL, RATHER THE GRIAL CHOSE HER, LIKE WOLFRAM SAYS IN THIS QUOTE:

ONLY HER, NOT BY ANYBODY ELSE DID THE GRIAL ALLOW TO BE CARRIED BY”.

THE KEY WORDS MEANT THE RELIC WAS SOMEHOW CONSCIOUS OF WHO COULD CARRY THE GRIAL AND WHO COULDN´T.

2. WOLFRAM MENTIONS ANOTHER KEY CHARACTERISTIC OF THE GRIAL IN THIS QUOTE FROM CHAPTER 9 OF PARZIVAL:

NO MAN CAN GET THE GRIAL BUT THE ONE RECOGNIZED IN HEAVEN AS DESTINED FOR IT”.

THIS SAME MESSAGE WAS DECISIVELY REITERATED IN CHAPTER 15:

“NO MAN WAS EVER ABLE TO GET THE GRIAL BY FORCE, APART FROM THE ONE WHO IS CALLED FOR IT BY GOD”.

3. THE SCULPTURES OF CHARTRES PLACED THE HOLY GRAIL ON PRIEST AND KING MELQUISEDEC´S LEFT HAND. BY THE WAY THIS WAS THE ONLY EFFIGY OF MELQUISEDEC IN THE WHOLE MEDIEVAL EUROPE.

4. ACCORDING TO EMMA JUNG, PSICOANALIST, SPEAKER , EMINENT PSICHIATRIST AND CARL GUSTAV JUNG´S WIFE, THE WAY THE LITERARY GENRE OF THE HOLY GRIAL APPEARED AT THE END OF THE 12TH CENTURY WAS AS SUDDEN AS SURPRISING. IN AN ERUDITE STUDY ON THE GRIAL LEGEND, BY THE JUNG FOUNDATION, SHE SAID THERE HAD TO BE SOMETHING REALLY IMPORTANT BEHIND THIS SUDDEN AND AMAZING APPARITION. IN FACT SHE CAME TO SUGGEST IN CONTE DU GRAAL BY CHRÉTIEN DE TROYES, AND IN PARZIVAL BY WOLFRAM, THE FIRST TWO EXAMPLES OF THIS GENRE, WE COULD SEE THE FIRST TRACES OF THE HOLY GRAIL. IT WAS IN 1182 WHEN CHRÉTIEN PUBLISHED HIS VERSION OF THE GRIAL, AND RIGHT AFTER THE DECLINE OF JERUSALEM WHEN WOLFRAM VON ESCHENBACH STARTED TO WORK IN PARZIVAL. IN PARZIVAL SOMEONE BY THE NAME OF KYOT IS MENTIONED SEVERAL TIMES. WOLFRAM ADDRESSED HIM AS MASTER. ACCORDING TO LITERATURE EXPERTS KYOT WAS A 12TH CENTURY FRENCH POET, GUYOT DE PROVINS, WHO HAD GONE ON A PILGRIMAGE TO JERUSALEM SOMETIME BEFORE THE HOLY LAND ONCE AGAIN FELL INTO THE SARACENS´ HANDS. HE HAD ALSO BEEN A PART OF THE COURT OF HOLY ROMAN EMPEROR FREDERICK BARBAROSSA (1122-1190). FREDERICK WAS GERMAN, AND BEFORE BECOMING EMPEROR IN 1152 HE HAD BEEN DUKE OF SUAVIA. HE WAS NAMED EXPLICITLY EMPEROR BY THE CHRISTIAN KINGS. GUYOT/KYOT HAD BEEN INTIMATELY RELATED TO THE KNIGHTS OF TEMPLAR, WHO WERE THE GUARDIANS OF THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON, FROM WHERE THE ARK HAD DISAPPEARED IN TIMES OF THE OLD TESTAMENT. IN PARZIVAL WOLFRAM REFERED TO THE KNIGHTS OF TEMPLAR FLATTERINGLY THIS WAY: “A NOBLE BROTHERHOOD…, WHO BY MEANS OF ARMS  REJECTED MEN FROM DIFFERENT COUNTRIES, TURNING OUT THE GRIAL WAS ONLY REVEALED TO THOSE WHO HAD BEEN CALLED TO MUNSALVAESCHE TO BECOME PART OF THE COMPANY OF THE GRIAL” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL. GRAHAM HANCOCK). 

“SINCE THE GOSPELS WERE WRITTEN WITH HIDDEN INTENTIONS TO AVOID ROMAN AUTHORITY CENSORSHIP, THEY´VE GOT MANY SYMBOLIC ELEMENTS WHICH EVEN NOWADAYS MAKE IT DIFFICULT FOR ANYONE TO UNDERSTAND THEM. ALL THESE OPAQUE REFERENCES, BASED ON THE ALLEGORIC LANGUAGE OF THE FIRST RITES OF THE SECT, LED TO THE TOTAL DEFORMATION OF CERTAIN FACTS. THE CONFUSION MADE SOME OF THESE EPISODES TO BE ACCEPTED AS SUPERNATURAL AND THAT CONDITION TURNED INTO A DOGMA” (LA HERENCIA DEL SANTO GRIAL. SIR LAURENCE GARDNER). IN ORDER TO UNDERSTAND MUCH BETTER ALL ABOUT THE HOLY GRAIL LET´S HAVE A LOOK AT THE VERY START OF IT.

AFTER THE JEWS REBELLION IN JERUSALEM (1ST CENTURY AC), THE DESTRUCTION OF ALL THE JEWS´ FAMILY´S FILES RELATED TO KING DAVID´S LEGACY WAS ATTRIBUTED TO THE ROMAN EMPIRE. AS THE ECLESIASTIC HISTORY BY EUSEBIO, BISHOP OF CAESAREA (PALESTINE) DURING THE 4TH CENTURY, THESE HEIRS WERE CALLED THE “DESPOSYNI” (“MASTERS” IN OLD GREEK). ONLY THE DESCENDANTS OF JESUS´S FAMILY WERE ENTITLED TO THAT TITLE. IT CORRESPONDED TO THEM TO KEEP THE SACRED LEGACY OF THE REAL HOUSE OF JUDA, A DYNASTIC LINEAGE WHICH STILL SURVIVES TODAY. MANY APPARENTLY DISCONNECTED HISTORICAL EPISODES HAVE BEEN INTENDED TO END UP WITH SUCH LINEAGE; HISTORICAL EPISODES SUCH AS THE WARS OF THE JEWS(1ST CENTURY AC), THE AMERICAN INDEPENDENCE WAR (18TH CENTURY), AND MANY CURRENT EVENTS HAVE ALL HELPED EUROPEAN GOVERNMENTS, IN COLLABORATION WITH THE CATHOLIC CHURCH AND THE ANGLICAN CHURCH, TO PERPETUATE THEIR MACHINATIONS. WHILE TRYING TO HIDE THE  PRIMOGENITURE REAL RIGHTS OF THE HOUSE OF JUDAH, THE HIGH CHRISTIAN HIERARCHIES SET UP PUPPET REGIMES IN MANY COUNTRIES, AMONG WHICH THE HOUSE OF HANOVER (SAJONIA-COBURGO-GOTHA) IN THE UNITED KINGDOM. AND THEIR GOVERNMENTS WERE FORCED TO BACK UP CERTAIN RELIGIOUS DOCTRINES, WHILE OTHERS WERE DEPOSED DUE TO THEIR RELIGIOUS TOLERANCE”.

“THE APPARITION OF THE TERM “HOLY GRAIL” TOOK PLACE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. IT STARTS AS A LITERARY CONCEPT BASED ON A SERIES OF WRITTEN DISTORTIONS. IT DERIVES DIRECTLY FROM A TRANSLATION OF THE HOLY GRAIL, AND THIS ONE ITSELF COMES FROM THE PRIMITIVE FORMS SAN GRAAL AND SANGRÉAL. THE OLD ORDER OF SANGRÉAL WAS AN ORDER OF THE REAL SCOTTISH STUART HOUSE, WHICH WAS LINKED TO THE EUROPEAN ORDER OF THE SION REIGN. THE KNIGHTS OF BOTH ORDERS WERE FOLLOWERS OF THE SANGRÉAL, WHICH AS WE HAVE JUST SAID BEFORE, DEFINES THE TRUE NATURE OF THE REAL BLOOD OF JUDAH: THE LINEAGE OF THE HOLY GRAIL. BESIDES THE DYNASTIC CHARACTER OF THE HOLY GRAIL HAS GOT AN SPIRITUAL DIMENSION. MANY SYMBOLS REPRESENTED IT BUT THE MOST COMMON ONE WAS A CHALICE WHICH HAS, OR ONCE HAD, JESUS CHRIST´S BLOOD. THE HOLY GRAIL WAS ALSO ASSOCIATED TO A VINE, WHICH GROWS AND GROWS SINCE THE ANNALS OF HISTORY. A VINE´S FRUIT IS GRAPES, AND FROM GRAPES WE GET WINE. WINE IS THE LINK BETWEEN THE SYMBOLIC ELEMENTS OF THE CHALICE AND THE VINE. WE´VE ALWAYS RELATED IT TO JESUS´S BLOOD. CONSEQUENTLY, THIS TRADITION LAYS ON THE VERY ESSENCE OF THE SACRAMENT OF THE EUCHARIST (THE HOLY COMMUNION), AND THE PERPETUAL BLOOD CONTAINED IN SUCH CHALICE REPRESENTS, NOTHING MORE AND NOTHING AND LESS, THE MESIANIC GENEALOGY. IN THE ESOTERIC TRADITION THE HOLY GRAIL, THE CHALICE AND THE GRAPE TREE HAVE THE MEANING OF SERVICE, WHEREAS THE BLOOD AND THE WINE ARE RELATED TO THE ETERNAL SPIRIT OF REALIZATION. THE SPIRITUAL SEARCH OF THE HOLY GRAIL IS THEREFORE, A DESIRE OF REALIZATION THROUGH AN OFFERING OR SERVICE. THE SO-CALLED HOLY GRAIL CODE IS ITSELF A PARABLE OF THE HUMAN CONDITON, IN WHICH BY MEANS OF THE SEARCH OF A SERVICE, AND THROUGH IT, ONE REACHES THE REALIZATION. THE PROBLEM IS THAT A GREEDY SOCIETY, BASED ON THE PRINCIPLE THAT ONLY THE STRONGEST ONES SURVIVE, HAS BURIED THE PRECEPTS OF SUCH CODE. TODAY IT´S CLEAR RICHESS, MORE THAN PURITY, IS A NECESSARY STEP TO BE ACCEPTED IN SOCIETY. THE OBEDIENCE TO LAW IS A DIFFERENT CRITERIA THOUGH.”

THE IDYLLIC DEMOCRACY WAS DEFINED AS THE GOVERNMENT OF THE PEOPLE FOR THE PEOPLE. HOWEVER REALITY PROVES IT WRONG SINCE IN MOST CASES THEY GOVERN THE PEOPLE NOT FOR THE PEOPLE, WHICH IS THE OPPOSITE OF WHAT A DEMOCRACY SHOULD BE, AND HAS NOTHING TO DO WITH THE IDEA OF SERVICE. THEREFORE, IT TOTALLY OPPOSES THE HOLY GRAIL CODE. THE ONES IN POWER USUALLY MANAGE TO TWIST THE IDYLLIC SOLIDARITY RAISING OVER THEIR PEOPLE. POWER CONTROLS INDIVIDUAL RIGHTS, FREEDOMS AND PROSPERITY. POWER DETERMINES WHO IS POLITICALLY CORRECT AND WHO´S NOT. IN SOME CASES IT DOES EVEN DECIDES WHO MUST SURVIVE AND WHO MUST NOT. MANY OF THOSE ARE AFTER INFLUENTIAL POSITIONS IN ORDER TO HAVE MORE POWER OVER THE REST. SERVING THEIR OWN INTEREST THEY BECOME SOCIETY MANIPULATORS, IGNORING MOST PEOPLE´S RIGHTS. THE RESULT IS THAT INSTEAD OF SERVING THE PEOPLE THEY SET UP A SERVANT SYSTEM.”

THE SEARCH OF THE HOLY GRAIL IS GUIDED BY A DESIRE OF SINCERE PERSONAL REALIZATION. IT´S THE CLUE TO HARMONY AND TO UNITY EVERYWHERE WE LOOK AT. THE HOLY GRAIL CODE RECOGNIZES PROGRESS THROUGH ACHIEVEMENT AND IT´S TOTALLY DEMOCRATIC. BOTH, IN ITS PHYSICAL AND SPIRITUAL DIMENSION, THE HOLY GRAIL CONCERNS EQUALLY BOTH LEADERS AND FOLLOWERS. WHO SERVES THE HOLY GRAIL? IT SERVES THOSE WHO SEARCH BEYOND THIS PHYSICAL WORLD DESPITE THE TOUGH MOMENTS, SINCE THEY ARE THE TRUTH LEADERS. ”

JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA, JESUS CHRIST´S UNCLE, AND HIS 12 DISCIPLES GOT TO BRITANIA AND KING ARVIRAGO MADE THEM FEEL AT HOME AND GRANTED THEM WITH SOME LAND WHERE THEY BUILT A CHAPEL. AFTER A DISASTROUS FIRE IN 1184, HENRY II OF ENGLAND GRANTED THE COMMUNITY WITH THE PRIVILEGE OF RESTAURATION SINCE GLASTONBURY WAS A PLACE WHERE SAINTS RESTED AND A PLACE FOUNDED BY JESUS CHRIST´S DISCIPLES. AT THE SAME TIME A STONY CHAPEL WAS BUILT AND LATER ON THIS ONE WOULD TURN INTO A BIG BENEDICTINE ABBEY, ONLY EXCEEDED BY SIZE AND IMPORTANCE BY WESTMINSTER ABBEY. PRESTIGIOUS FIGURES RELATED TO GLASTONBURY ARE ST. PATRICK (THE FIRST BISHOP DURING THE 5TH CENTURY), AND ST. DUNSTAN (BISHOP FROM 940 TO 946).”

“THE GREATEST THREAT FOR THE CHURCH DURING THE LAST YEARS OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE CAME FROM THE DEPOSYNI (DIRECT DESCENDANTS OF JESUS CHRIST´S FAMILY, THE LORDS´ HEIRS) SET UP IN GALIA, KNOWN AS THE DYNASTY OF THE MEROVINGIANS, A MALE LINEAGE DESCENDANT OF FISHERMAN KINGS. NOT ONLY WERE THE MEROVINGIANS RELATED TO THE OLD NAZARENS BUT ALSO KEPT THE TRADITIONS FROM BIBLICAL TIMES. MEROVEO WAS THE FOUNDER OF THE MEROVINGIA DYNASTY. WHEN HE DIED HIS SON, CHILDERICO, TOOK OVER. WHEN CHILDERICO DIED IN 481 CLODOVEO SUCCEEDED HIM. CLODOVEO WAS THE MOST PROMINENT OUT OF ALL MEROVINGIAN KINGS AND WAS THE FOUNDER OF THE FRANC DYNASTY. CATHOLICISM RUN THE RISK OF BEING SWEPT AWAY FROM WESTERN EUROPE, WHERE BEST BISHOPS WERE ARRIANS. CLODOVEO WAS NEITHER ARRIAN NOR CATHOLIC, BUT ROME JERARCHY WANTED TO TAKE ADVANTAGE OF HIS MARRIAGE TO THE CATHOLIC BURGUNDIA PRINCESS CLOTILDE. CLOTILDE TRIED TO MAKE HIS HUSBAND CLODOVEO CONVERT TO CATHOLICISM BUT IT WASN´T UNTIL 496 WHEN SHE SUCCEEDED IN IT. THAT YEAR CLODOVEO AND HIS ARMY WERE AT WAR AGAINST THE ALAMAN TRIBES WHO TRIED TO INVADE COLOGNE. SURPRISINGLY, ONCE IN THEIR WHOLE MILITARY CAREER THE MEROVINGIANS WERE LOSING THE BATTLE. IN A MOMENT OF DESPERATION CLODOVEO INVOKED THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, AND RIGHT AWAY THE ALAMAN KING FELL DEAD. ONCE THE ALAMANS SAW THEIR CAPTAIN DEAD THEY RETIRED. AT THAT MOMENT CLOTILDE MADE IT CLEAR IT WAS JESUS CHRIST WHO HAD HELPED THEM WITH THE MEROVINGIAN VICTORY. ALTHOUGH CLODOVEO WASN´T THAT CONVINCED, CLOTILDE WENT IN SEARCH FOR ST. REMIGIO (REIMS BISHOP) WHO BAPTIZED CLODOVEO. DUE TO THEIR CAPTAIN´S LOYALTY ALMOST HALF THE MEROVINGIAN WARRIORS FOLLOWED CLODOVEO AND WERE BAPTIZED. CONVERSION TO CATHOLICISM HAPPENED IN GREAT NUMBERS AND THE CHURCH COULD SAVE ITSELF FROM EXTINCTION. FROM THAT MOMENT ON THE ROMAN AUTHORITIES HAD TO PROMISE LOYALTY TO CLODOVEO AND TO HIS DESCENDANTS. THEY PROMISED HIM A NEW SACRED EMPIRE DIRECTED BY THE MEROVINGIANS WOULD RISE AGAIN. CLODOVEO DIDN´T HAVE ANY REASONS TO DOUBT ROME´S ALLIANCE BUT UNINTENTIONALLY CLODOVEO BECAME AN INSTRUMENT FOR THE BISHOPS IN ORDER TO CONSPIRE AGAINST THE MESIANIC DESCENDANCY. THE CHURCH THOUGHT THEY WOULD GET THE ARRIANS FROM BORGOGNE AND AQUITANIA CONVERTED TO CATHOLICISM, AND SO THEY PUSHED CLODOVEO TO THEIR INVASION. HOWEVER, ROME HAD A DIFFERENT PLAN WHICH WAS TO TAKE THE MEROVINGIANS AWAY WHENEVER THEY WEREN´T USEFUL ANYMORE AND PUT IN THEIR PLACE THE ROME BISHOP INSTEAD AS THE SUPREME CHIEF OF GALIA. IN 511 AFTER MANY MILITARY SUCCESSES CLODOVEO DIED IN PARIS. HIS REIGN WAS DIVIDED AMONG HIS 4 SONS: TEODORICO, CLODOMIRO, CHILDEBERTO AND LOTARIO. THE LAST ONE TO DIE WAS LOTARIO IN 561. LOTARIO WAS SUCCEEDED BY HIS SONS: SIGEBERTO AND CHILPERICO. FOUR GENERATIONS AFTER IT, FROM CHILPERICO´S DYNASTY, DAGOBERTO II WAS BORN. HE BECAME KING OF AUSTRASIA IN 674. BACK THEN, A COUNCIL OF IMPORTANT BISHOPS HAD REDUCED THE ADMINISTRATIVE AND IMPOSITIVE POWER OF THE REAL HOUSE. THE DESMANTLEMENT OF THE MEROVINGIAN REIGN BY ROME HAD ALREADY STARTED.”

“IN 1184, AFTER HENRY II DIED HIS SON RICHARD I DECIDED TO CUT THE SUBSIDY HIS FATHER GRANTED GLASTONBURY ABBEY WITH FOR THEIR RECONSTRUCTION. AFTER THIS THE GLASTONBURY MONKS BEING BROKE, THOUGHT OF DIGGING SOME HOLES”, PROBABLY IN ORDER TO FIND SOMETHING THAT COULD BE WORTH A LOT, BUT “WHAT THEY FOUND WAS THE MORTAL RESTS OF KING ARTHUR AND QUEEN GINEBRA. THEY ALSO FOUND A CROSS EMBEDDED IN A ROCK WITH AN INSCRIPTION WHICH SAID: “HERE LIES KING ARTHUR IN THE ISLE OF AVALLON WITH HIS WIFE GINEBRA”. NOT ONLY DID THEY FIND KING ARTHUR´S TOMB BUT THEY ALSO HAD GATHERED EVIDENCE TO STATE GLASTONBURY WAS THE ISLE OF AVALLON. FROM THAT MOMENT ON THE ECONOMICAL SITUATION OF GLASTONBURY MONKS GOT BETTER SINCE THOUSANDS OF PILGRIMS WENT TO GLASTONBURY. THE RESTS OF BOTH BODIES WERE BURIED IN 2 POLICROMATED COFFRES IN A BLACK MARBLE TOMB BEHIND THE ALTAR. PILGRIMS PROVIDED THE MONKS WITH LOTS OF DONATIONS AND SO THEY GOT TO RESTORE WHAT WAS IN NEED. WHEN HENRY VIII EDICTED THE DISSOLUTION OF THE MONASTIC ORDERS, GLASTONBURY ABBEY HOUSED MANY RELICS, WHICH DISAPPEARED TOGETHER WITH THE MONASTERY, LEAVING NO TRACE BEHIND OF ANY OF THEM, AND NOBODY HAD ACCESS TO KING ARTHUR´S AND GINEBRA´S RESTS SINCE THEN. ONLY AN INSCRIPTION REMINDS US ALL OF THE LOCATION OF SUCH TOMB.”

“… A MANUSCRIPT WRITTEN CENTURIES EARLIER THAN THE 12TH CENTURY SUGGESTS KING ARTHUR REALLY EXISTED. IN THE HISTORIA BRITTONUM FROM THE 9TH CENTURY THE WELSH MONK NENNIO, IN 830, DESCRIBES ARTHUR, SIMPLY, AS A WARRIOR WHO AFTER THE ROMANS WITHDREW IN THE 5TH CENTURY, WON THE ANGLOSAXON INVASORS IN THE BATTLE OF BADON. ACCORDING TO THE 8TH CENTURY HISTORIAN BEDA, IN HIS WORK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY OF THE ENGLISH PEOPLE, THE BATTLE OF BADON TOOK PLACE IN 493. SUCH HISTORIC EVENT WAS ALSO REGISTERED BY THE BRITISH MONK GILDAS IN HIS WORK ON THE RUIN AND CONQUEST OF BRITAIN (545). ALTHOUGH GILDAS OMITS THE NAME OF THE BRITISH LEADER, A CLOSE REFERENCE IN THE WELSH ANNALS (950), 200 YEARS BEFORE THE 1ST ROMANCE, POINTS OUT ARTHUR AS THE LEADER IN BADON. ALTHOUGH THE WELSH ANNALS WERE WRITTEN A CENTURY LATER THAN THE WRITING BY NENNIO, AND THEY SEEM TO GIVE THE WRONG DATE (519) IN RELATION TO BADON, NO OTHER NAME EXCEPT ARTHUR IS KNOWN AND ASSOCIATED TO THE BRITISH VICTORY IN SUCH BATTLE. CONSEQUENTLY, AMIDST THE DISCONNECTED EVIDENCE WHICH HAS SURVIVED THE BEST CANDIDATE TO BE THE BRITISH LEADER IN BADON BATTLE IS OWAIN DDANTGWYN, AND HIS POWER HEADQUARTERS, VIROCONIUM:

imagen-29-4-17-a-las-11-19 

AND FROM A MILITAR PERSPECTIVE, AND IF NO MORE EVIDENCE IS GATHERED, OWAIN DANTGWYN IS THE BEST ARTHUR DISCOVERED UP TO NOW. THEREFORE, ALREADY SEVERAL HISTORIANS ACCEPT ARTHUR COULD HAVE VERY WELL BEEN THE BRITISH LEADER OF THE LAST AND DEFINITE MILITAR RESISTANCE AGAINST THE ANGLOSAXONS AT THE END OF THE 5TH CENTURY. THE ANGLOSAXONS FROM GERMANY AND SCANDINAVIA CONQUERED ALL ENGLAND, AND THE BRITONS – THE CELTS FROM THE PLACE – WERE FORCED TO RETIRE TO WALES. AS ARTHUR SEEMS TO HAVE BEEN A BRITON LEADER LEGENDS TALK ABOUT HIS DEEDS BEING KEPT MAINLY IN WALES, BEFORE BEING A SOURCE OF INSPIRATION, FROM THE 12TH CENTURY ONWARDS TO THE MEDIEVAL ROMANCES. CONSEQUENTLY, THE ORIGIN OF SOME OF THE TOPICS IN THE ARTHUR MEDIEVAL ROMANCES COULD BE FOUND IN THE PRIMITIVE WELSH OR CELTIC TRADITIONS:

fullsizeoutput_2dc

“ONCE JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA GATHERED JESUS´S BLOOD LEFT PALESTINE AND NICODEMUS, A FRIEND OF HIS ( A CONVERSE ROMAN OFFICER) WENT WITH HIM. NICODEMUS TOOK WITH HIM A BUST OF JESUS CHRIST ( AS HE SAW HIM CRUCIFIED ON THE CROSS), WHICH HE HIMSELF MADE AND LEFT IN LUCCA. JOSEPH AND HIS COMPANIONS WENT ON A TRIP TO THE LAND (WHITE COUNTRY) WHICH THE LORD HAD PROMISED JOSEPH. WE LEARNT LATER ON THAT COUNTRY CORRESPONDS TO SOMEWHERE IN GREAT BRITAIN. WHEN JOSEPH DIED HE LEFT INSTRUCTIONS SO THAT THE ORIGINAL GRAIL – THE ONE USED TO COLLECT JESUS´S BLOOD – REMAINS IN HIS DIRECT DESCENDANTS´ HANDS. AFTER THE 3RD DAY JESUS WAS CRUCIFIED, JEWS DISCOVERED JESUS´S BODY HAD DISAPPEARED AND ACCUSED JOSEPH OF HAVING TAKING IT AND SO THEY IMPRISONED HIM, AFTER CONFISCATING THE SACRED CHALICE. JESUS CHRIST APPEARED IN JAIL WRAPPED UP IN A BRIGHT BEAM OF LIGHT AND RETURNED THE GRAIL TO JOSEPH TELLING HIM HE HAD AWARDED HIM THE CUSTODY OF THE HOLY RELIC. BESIDES THAT, JESUS CHRIST GAVE INSTRUCTIONS TO JOSEPH ABOUT HOW TO CELEBRATE MASS AND TELLS HI THAT THE CUP MUST BE CALLED “CHALICE”. HOWEVER, STRANGE AS IT MAY SEEM, ROBERT DE BORON IN HIS WORK JOSEPH D´ARIMATHIE ( THE MOST POPULAR MEDIEVAL ROMANCE ) REFERS TO IT AS THE GRAIL. FINALLY, AFTER JERUSALEN WAS SACKED BY THE ROMANS IN THE YEAR 70 AC, JOSEPH WAS RESCUED AND FLED TO BRITANIA WITH HIS BROTHER-IN-LAW BRON. BRON HAD A SON, ALEIN, WHOSE SON WAS PERCEVAL. EACH ONE OF THOSE MEN WAS KNOWN AS THE RICH FISHERMAN, A SECRET TITLE FOR THE ONE WHO HAD THE GRAIL. ROBERT DESCRIBED THE GRAIL PHYSICALLY AND MENTIONED THE WORD GRAIL COMES FROM THE OLD FRENCH WORD “AGREE”, WHICH MEANS “DELIGHT, QUENCH”, INDICATING THE CUP PROVIDES US WITH SPIRITUAL RELIEF. THEREFORE, IF PERCEVAL WAS BRON´S GRANDCHILD AND CONTEMPORARY OF JOSEPH IN THE 1ST CENTURY PALESTINE, HOW COME WAS HE STILL ALIVE IN THE 5TH CENTURY, ARTHUR TIME, THE TIME WHEN ROBERT LOCATED PERCEVAL? THE GRAIL IN PARZIVAL BY WOLFRAM  IS NOT A DISH, NOR A CHALICE, NOR A BUST, BUT A MAGIC STONE CALLED THE LAPSIT EXCILLIS (LATIN. LAPIS EXILIS) WHICH MEANS SMALL STONE.

-“SUMMING UP THE FOLLOWING 8 STORIES (ORIGINAL ROMANCES) WRITTEN ABOUT THE GRAIL (1190-1220) BACK UP ITS EXISTENCE:

1.  LE CONTE DEL GRAAL BY CHRÉTIEN DE TROYES (C. 1190).

2. 2 ANONYMOUS CONTINUATIONS ABOUT THE STORY OF CHRÉTIEN (C.1195): IN THE 1ST CONTINUATION THE ANONYMOUS AUTHOR TELLS US THE HOLY GRAIL FLIES AROUND THE ROOMS SERVING FOOD. IN THE SAME STORY, ANOTHER OBJECT DESCRIBED AS THE HOLY GRAIL APPEARS; IT´S A STONE BUST OF JESUS CHRIST.

3.  JOSEPH D´ARIMATHIE DE ROBERT DE BORON. IN HIS WORK ROBERT DE BORON GIVES A PRECISE DESCRIPTION OF THE ORIGIN AND THE APPEARANCE OF THE GRAIL, AND STATES IT WAS THE CUP WHERE JESUS CHRIST DRANK DURING THE LAST SUPPER, THE ONE JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA GOT FROM PILATES AFTER THE CRUCIFIXION.”

4. DIDCOT PERCEVAL (C. 1200). ACCORDING TO THE ANONYMOUS AUTHOR THE ORIGINAL STORY WAS WRITTEN BY A MONK CALLED BLAYSE. HERE AGAIN THE HOLY GRAIL IS THE CUP OF THE LAST SUPPER WHICH WAS TAKEN TO GREAT BRITAIN, TO THE WHITE CASTLE IN THE WHITE COUNTRY, WHERE IT WAS WATCHED OVER BY JOSEPH ´S DESCENDANTS: 

imagen-29-4-17-a-las-11-20

imagen-29-4-17-a-las-11-20-1

IN THIS ROMANCE THE HOLY GRAIL ISN´T DESCRIBED. WE´RE ONLY TOLD VISIONS INSIDE IT TOOK PLACE. DIDCOT PERCEVAL DESCRIBED KING ARTHUR AS THE HEAD OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST. ACCORDING TO THIS STORY, THE ROUND TABLE REPRESENTS THE TABLE OF THE LAST SUPPER, AND KING ARTHUR, AS THE LEGITIMATE HEAD OF THE CHURCH, WAS SITTED ON JESUS CHRIST´S PLACE, AS JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA ONCE DID BEFORE HIM. THIS WRITING STATES AS WELL JESUS CHRIST NAMED JOSEPH GUARDIAN OF THE GRAIL, MEANING KING ARTHUR IS ALSO PLAYING THAT ROLE. IN DIDCOT PERCEVAL BRON IS THE GRAIL´S GUARDIAN AND PERCEVAL BEING BRON´S SUCCESSOR IS HIM WHO, FINALLY, MUST PROTECT THE GRAIL”

5. IN PARZIVAL BY GERMAN WOLFRAM VON ESCHENBACH (C. 1205) THE HOLY GRAIL IS MAGIC STONE CALLED LAPSIT EXCILLIS.

6. PERLESVAUS, WRITTEN SOME YEARS AFTER DIDCOT PERCEVAL, IS SO SIMILAR TO DIDCOT PERCEVAL THAT PROBABLY CAME FROM THE SAME SOURCE. IN PERLESVAUS JESUS CHRIST TOLD JOSEPH ABOUT THE MYSTERIES OF MASS, SOMETHING WHICH ACCORDING TO THE CHURCH WAS STRICTLY RESERVED TO CATHOLIC PRIESTS ORDAINED BY CATHOLIC SUCCESSION OF SAINT PETER. IN THIS ROMANCE, PERCEVAL HEARD A VOICE WHO TOLD HIM TO GIVE OUT THE RELICS FROM THE GRAIL CHAPEL AROUND THE MONASTERIES AND CHURCHES NEARBY. IN PERLESVAUS KING ARTHUR IS THE GRAIL GUARDIAN WITH THE SAME RIGHTS AS BRON OR PERCEVAL.

7. AND 2 MORE STORIES IN THE PROSE VULGATE  CYCLE (C.1220), WHERE THE HOLY GRAIL HAS GOT 2 APPEARANCES:

  • THE LAST SUPPER CHALICE,
  • AND A SACRED BOOK, THE ONE WRITTEN BY JESUS CHRIST.

“AROUND THE YEAR 1200 THE WORD GRAIL MUST HAVE BEEN USED AS A JACK OF ALL TRADES, IN ORDER TO UNIFY THE SACRED RELICS ASSOCIATED WITH JESUS CHRIST, IN OPPOSITION TO THE OTHER SAINTS´ RELICS. FOR SURE ALL OF THEM ARE LINKED TO THE BIBLE, LIKE THE SWORD WHICH BEHEADED JOHN THE BAPTIST, THE LANCE WHICH PENETRATED JESUS CHRIST´S SIDE, SOLOMON´S BELL AND THE BUST OF JESUS CHRIST SCULPTED BY NICODEMUS (EL VOLTO SANTO SHOWN IN LUCCA´S CATHEDRAL IN LA TOSCANA. IN FACT, PERLESVAUS DESCRIBES A CHAPEL BUILT SPECIALLY TO HOUSE THOSE RELICS, WHICH THE AUTHOR REFERS TO AS “THE SAINTS OF THE GRAIL”. HOWEVER, SINCE THE END OF THE 13TH CENTURY THE WORD GRAIL WAS ALMOST USED EXCLUSIVELY TO REFER TO THE CUP OF THE LAST SUPPER.

“IN EVERY ROMANCE THE GRAIL OR GRAILS APPEAR CUSTODIED BY PERCEVAL´S FAMILY, THE DIRECT DESCENDANTS OF JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA. WHEN IT COMES TO EXPLAINING THIS LINEAGE MOST AUTHORS AGREE JOSEPH WAS NAMED GUARDIAN OF THE GRAIL BY JESUS CHRIST HIMSELF. IT´S HERE WHERE THE RELEVANCE OF THE HOLY GRAIL LIES, SINCE IT´S A CLEAR SYMBOL OF AN APOSTOLIC SUCCESSION ALTERNATIVE.” (EN BUSCA DEL SANTO GRIAL. GRAHAM PHILLIPS)

LET´S IMAGINE KING ARTHUR WAS A ROMAN EMPEROR LIKE GRAHAM PHILLIPS SUGGESTS WHEN HE MENTIONS THE HISTORICAL FACT “ACCORDING TO DIDCOT PERCEVAL IN RELATION TO BRITANNIA (5TH CENTURY) BEING THE ONLY SAFE EMPIRE PLACE FROM THE BARBARIC INVASION, WHICH TOOK PLACE DURING THE TIME OF THE HISTORIC ARTHUR (C.480). IF AT THE END OF THE 5TH CENTURY THE HISTORICAL ARTHUR WAS CONSIDERED EMPEROR BRITONS PROBABLY HAD HIM AS THE HEAD OF THE CHURCH BACK THEN AS WELL, SINCE AFTER THE 5TH CENTURY THE POPE WAS NOT CONSIDERED THE UNIVERSAL HEAD OF THE CHURCH. GILDAS TELLS US THAT IN THE LATE 5TH CENTURY (70S) THE BRITON LEADER WAS A ROMAN BOSS CALLED AMBROSIO AURELIO, AND IT WAS SUPPOSEDLY IN THE YEAR 488 WHEN ARTHUR SUCCEEDED AS THE LEADER OF THE BRITONS AND RESUMED THE FIGHT AGAINST THE ANGLOSAXON INVASORS” (EN BUSCA DEL SANTO GRIAL. GRAHAM PHILLIPS). 

THE FOLLOWING 10 FACTS BACK UP THE EXISTENCE OF KING ARTHUR:

1. “DIDCOT PERCEVAL, LANCELOT AND PERLESVAUS FROM THE VULGATA DESCRIBE ARTHUR AS THE GUARDIAN OF THE GRAIL.

2.  DIDCOT PERCEVAL DESCRIBES ARTHUR AS ROMAN EMPEROR.

3. THE DREAM OF RHONABWY (12TH CENTURY WELSH WORK) WHICH IS SUPPOSSEDLY BASED ON A PRIMITIVE EPIC HIGH MIDDLE AGED WELSH POEM, CONTAINS THE OLDEST DESCRIPTION OF ARTHUR´S SWORD, WHICH HAS A DRAWING WITH 2 SNAKES IN ITS GOLDEN HANDLE.

4. THE SONG OF LLYWARCH THE OLD CONFIRMS DURING THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES THE KINGS OF POWYS WERE CONSIDERED TRUE EMPERORS, AND IT ALSO SHOWS ARTHUR WAS ONE OF THEM.

5. DIDCOT PERCEVAL DESCRIBES ARTHUR AS EMPEROR AND HEAD OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST. IF HISTORICAL ARTHUR WAS CONSIDERED EMPEROR AT THE END OF THE 5TH CENTURY THEN THERE ARE MANY CHANCES BRITONS COULD HAVE RESPECTED HIM AS WELL AS HEAD OF THE CHURCH. AT THE END OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE MANY PEOPLE CONSIDERED THE EMPEROR AS THE HEAD OF THE CATHOLIC CHURCH.

6. ARTHUR IS DESCRIBED IN THE ROMANCES AS HEAD OF THE CHURCH, ROMAN EMPEROR AND THE HOLY GRAIL GUARDIAN. HISTORICAL ARTHUR COULD HAVE VERY WELL BEEN THOSE 3 THINGS: HEAD OF THE CHURCH, ROMAN EMPEROR, AND THE HOLY GRAIL GUARDIANTHE HOLY GRAIL ROMANCES REFER TO A GRAIL WHICH THE GRAIL FAMILY OWNED. THEREFORE, IF THE HISTORICAL GRAIL WAS THE HOLY CHALICE IT SEEMS OWAIN DDANTGWYN´S DESCENDANCE WAS THE LEGITIMATE GRAIL FAMILY IN THE HIGH MIDDLE AGES.

7. WHEN WE GO BACK TO CUNEGLASUS, OWAIN´S FIRST-BORN, WE FIND OUT 3 INDEPENDENT GENEALOGIES WHICH REGISTER THE WELSH 9TH CENTURY GOVERNOR´S LINEAGE, HYWEL AP CARADOC. THE 3 GENEALOGIES, THE OLDEST INCLUDED IN THE WELSH ANNALS, RECOGNIZE HYWEL AS MEIC´S DESCENDANT. MEIC WAS CLUNEGLASUS´S THE MONK NENNIO, AUTHOR OF HISTORIA BRITTONUM (THE OLDEST WRITING LEFT ON ARTHUR´S BATTLES) WAS CONTEMPORARY OF HYWEL, AND BESIDES THAT HE WAS A NATIVE OF BANGOR, WHICH IS A FEW KMS AWAY FROM RHOS. THEREFORE, HE PROBABLY GOT ARTHUR´S INFORMATION FROM THAT DIRECT DESCENDANT.

8. ACCORDING TO JOHN ROUS, A 15TH CENTURY CLERGYMAN FROM WARWICK, WARWICK WAS THE PLACE OF ARTHUR´S COURT, WHICH MEANS THE CASTLE WAS CAMELOT. ALTHOUGH WARWICK CAN´T HAVE BEEN THE HISTORIC RESIDENCE OF ARTHUR IT VERY WELL COULD HAVE BEEN THE PLACE WHERE ROMANCES LOCATED CAMELOT FOR THE 1ST TIME.

9. IF OWAIN DDANTGWYN WAS THE HISTORICAL ARTHUR THEN OWAIN GLENDOWER WAS HIS DIRECT DESCENDANT. GLENDOWER USED A 9TH CENTURY EMBLEM WHICH HAD ARTHUR IN THE 14TH CENTURY THE NORMANS CONQUERED WALES, WHERE THE SAXONS HAD FAILED, AND LEFT OWAIN GLENDOWER IN THE NORMAND PROVINCE OF POWYS TURNED INTO A LORD. SUBMITTED TO THE ENGLISH KING HENRY IV´S AUTHORITY GLENDOWER STARTED TO REBEL, AND WAS PROCLAIMED KING OF WALES BY HIS FOLLOWERS. DURING THAT UPRISING OWAIN GLENDOWER PROCLAIMED HIMSELF KING ARTHUR´S DESCENDANT, AND LED HIS TROOPS UNDER A  BATTLE FLAG WITH A GOLDEN DRAGON.

10. AN ANONYMOUS PROSE ROMANCE FULKE LE FITZ WARYN (C.1260) TALKS ABOUT FULK FITZ WARIN (C.1160-1258), WHO BECAME A LORD IN WHITTINGTON (SHROPSHIRE), AND SAYS HE WAS THE ONE WHO FOUND OUT THE HOLY GRAIL. THIS ROMANCE PRESENTS FULK NOT AS POWYS´S KING´S SIMPLE HEIR BUT AS ARTHUR´S LEGITIMATE HEIR, THAT IS, OWAIN DDANTGWYN´S DIRECT DESCENDANT. BESIDES THAT FITZ WARIN WAS THE HOLY GRAIL´S GUARDIAN. MERLIN HAD ALREADY PROPHETIZED FULK´S COMING, THE SAME WAY AS HE DID WITH ARTHUR.” (EN BUSCA DEL SANTO GRIAL. GRAHAM PHILLIPS). 

“LET´S REMEMBER THE GRAIL FAMILY IN THE DIDCOT PERCEVAL: “IT´S WELL KNOWN THE GRAIL WAS HANDED TO JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA, AND HE HIMSELF, ONCE HE DIED, PASSED IT ONTO HIS BROTHER-IN –LAW WHOSE NAME WAS BRON. BRON HAD 12 CHILDREN AND ONE OF THEM WAS ALAIN LI GROS. THE FISHERMAN KING NAMED ALAIN GUARDIAN OF HIS 11 BROTHERS. ALAIN CAME TO THIS COUNTRY FROM JUDEA, JUST AS OUR LORD HAD COMMANDED HIM…AND AS YOU WELL KNOW ALL, ALAIN LI GROS WAS PERCEVAL´S FATHER, WHO THANKS TO HIS GRANDFATHER BRON WAS CALLED FISHERMAN KING. IN RELATION TO THIS ROMANCE FULKE LE FITZ WARYN THE ORIGIN OF THE PERCEVAL LEGEND IS AT THE END OF THE 11TH CENTURY, IN THE HISTORIC CONTEMPORARY FUGURE OF BLAYSE, WHO CAME FROM SAN ASAPH IN THE NORTH OF WALES AND WAS A CLERGYMAN OF WHITTINGTON IN 1090. BLAYSE WAS PAYNE PEVERIL FULK´S GREAT-GRANDFATHER. PAYNE PEVERIL WAS LORD OF WHITTINGTON. BOTH NAMES ARE REGISTERED IN THE DOMESDAY BOOK AND IN THE FEET OF FINES (13TH CENTURY). NOT ONLY PERCEVAL IS SIMILAR TO PEVERIL, BUT PERCEVAL WAS ALAIN LI GROS´S SON. IN DIDCOT PERCEVAL PERCEVAL´S FATHER IS CALLED ALAIN LI GROS (“CRUX” MEANS CROSS IN LATIN, AND “GROES” MEANS CROSS IN WELSH). PAYNE PEVERIL´S WIFE, LYNETTE WAS A DIRECT DESCENDANT OF OWAIN DDANTGWYN, AND THEREFORE MEMBER OF THE FAMILY WHO WATCHED OVER THE CHALICE, THE HISTORIC GRAIL. IN FULKE LE FITZ WARYN, THE ONE WHO DISCOVERED THE GRAIL WAS PAYNE´S GREAT GRANDSON, WHO LIVED ABOUT A CENTURY LATER. AFTER TRAVELLING AROUND EUROPE HE FINALLY RETURNED HOME TO FIND OUT THE GRAIL IN HIS OWN CHAPEL CRYPT, IN WHITTINGTON: “AND THERE, IN THE CHAPEL OF ST. AGUSTIN, LIKE FULK WAS PURE HE FOUND THE GRAIL, THE ONE OUR LORD AND SAVIOUR HANDED JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA”. PROBABLY IT WAS LYNETTE WHO, AS DIRECT DESCENDANT OF ARTHUR, REQUESTED THE CONSTRUCTION OF THE CHAPEL TO GUARD THE CHALICE”.

“IN FULKE LE FITZ WARYN APART FROM THE GRAIL THERE´S ALSO A TEXT DESCRIBED AS GRAIL, AS A SECOND RELIC. IN THE PARAGRAPHS OF PEVERIL, THE ORIGINAL ROMANCE OF THE GRAIL, WRITTEN IN WELSH AND WHOSE AUTHOR WAS PROBABLY BLAYSE, IN THE ROMANCE OF FULKE WE´RE TOLD IF A MAN ASPIRES TO BE ENLIGHTENED HE WILL HAVE TO LEARN TO FIND A BALANCE BETWEEN POWER AND WISDOM. THAT VERSE CONTINUES SAYING: “ THE GRAIL, THE BOOK OF THE SACRED CUP, TELLS US THIS”. AS THE WORDS “SACRED CUP” SEEM TO REFER TO JESUS CHRIST MORE THAN TO THE CUP, AND THE MENTIONED BOOK APPEARS IN THE ROMANCE OF THE VULGATA, THE GRAIL SEEMS TO CORRESPOND TO A SECRET TEXT, WHICH REPRODUCES THE EXACT WORDS PRONOUNCED BY JESUS CHRIST. IF THE ROMANCES OF THE GRAIL WERE SIMPLE ALLEGORIES REGARDING AN APOSTOLIC SUCCESSION ALTERNATIVE IN THE FIGURE OF JOSEPH OF ARIMATHEA, THEN THIS BOOK OF THE SACRED CUP WAS PROBABLY AN ALTERNATIVE TO THE GOSPEL. IN FULKE LE FITZ WARYN THERE´S A POWERFUL CONNECTION WITH A PARAGRAPH OF PEVERIL. THIS KING TELLS PERCEVAL THAT IN ORDER TO BE A WISE KING HE WILL HAVE TO FIND BALANCE BETWEEN WISDOM AND POWER. PERCEVAL, TAKEN ABACK BY THE FISHERMAN KING´S ADVICE, DID NOT DARE ASK ANY QUESTIONS TO HIS HOST. HOWEVER, IN PEVERIL PERCEVAL ASKS THE QUESTION: ”WHO SERVES THE GRAIL?” AND BRAN, THE FISHERMAN KING BEING SATISFIED WITH IT, OFFERS HIM THE BOOK AND ANSWERS HIM: “THE GRAIL SERVES THE FISHERMAN KING”. ALTHOUGH THE BOOK STILL GIVES OUT A GREAT BRIGHTNESS IT´S NOW WHEN PERCEVAL IS ABLE TO READ THE TEXT”.

LA FOLIE PERCEVAL (C.1330) TELLS US CLEARLY THE GRAIL IS A BOOK WHICH CONTAINS JESUS CHRIST´S SECRET WORDS. WHEN THE GNOSTICS STATE THEY HAVE JESUS CHRIST´S SECRET WORDS IT´S THEN WHEN WE NOTICE THE FIRM EXISTING CONNECTION BETWEEN THE GRAIL ROMANCES AND GNOSTICISM. AT THE BEGINNING OF THE 4TH CENTURY, THE TIME WHEN CATHOLICISM WAS SET UP, THE CHURCH DECIDED TO INCLUDE ONLY 4 EVANGELISTS IN THE BIBLE: MATHEW, MARK, LUKE AND JOHN, DESPITE THE FACT OTHER TEXTS EXISTED, SUPPOSEDLY DIRECT ONES, FROM JESUS, LIKE THE GOSPELS OF THE NAZARENS, USED IN JERUSALEM BY THE FIRST CHURCH. CONSTANTINE THE GREAT (C.272-337) PROHIBITED ALL THOSE GOSPELS AND ORDERED TO DESTROY ALL THE COPIES. HOWEVER, GNOSTICS CONTINUED TO DEVOTE THEIR TIME TO TEACHING THE GOSPEL THEY BELIEVED IN , THE ONE IN WHICH THEY FOUND JESUS´S SECRET WORDS. JESUS´S SECRET WORDS ARE THE KEY SUBJECT IN THE GRAIL ROMANCES. FOLIE EVEN HAS A BOOK CALLED HOLY GRAIL AND THIS ONE CONTAINS JESUS´S SECRET WORDS, WRITTEN BY HIS DISCIPLE DÍDIMO (APOSTLE THOMAS), THAT IS, A GNOSTIC GOSPEL, DISCOVERED IN EGYPT IN 1945, PROTECTED BY SOME 4TH CENTURY SCROLLS. THEREFORE, THOMAS´S GOSPEL COULD BE THE HOLY GRAIL WHICH APPEARS IN FOLIE, THE ORIGINAL ROMANCE OF THE GRAIL. THOMAS´S SECRET GOSPEL WAS WRITTEN IN COPTIC, ALTHOUGH IT SEEMS TO BE THE TRANSLATION OF A 2ND CENTURY GREEK EDITION. THIS ONE AND OTHER GNOSTIC TEXTS DATE FROM THE 4TH CENTURY AND THE ONE WHO HID THOMAS´S SECRET GOSPEL MANAGED TO SAVE IT FROM THE DESTRUCTION CATHOLIC AUTHORITIES WOULD HAVE INFLICTED. THOMAS´S GOSPEL IS THE MOST SACRED TEXTS OUT OF ALL THOSE GNOSTIC WRITINGS. IT WAS FOUND IN 1945 IN NAG-HAMADI, UPPER EGYPT, BY 2 ARAB FARMERS. THIS GNOSTIC TEXT CONTAINS 114 SECRET PARABLES FROM JESUS. STILL SOME FRAGMENTS OF THE GOSPELS ARE KEPT IN THE OLDEST ONE OF ALL, THE RYLANDS FRAGMENT WHICH HAS 6 VERSES FROM JOHN´S GOSPEL (C.125). NOWADAYS THE GRAIL IS NO LONGER A  CRAFT OBJECT, RATHER IT REPRESENTS THE SEARCH FOR THE KNOWLEDGE, FOR THE TRUTH(EN BUSCA DEL SANTO GRIAL. GRAHAM PHILLIPS). 

AND THAT´S WHAT WE´RE HERE FOR. ONE OF OUR KEY AIMS HERE IN LIFE IS SEARCHING FOR THE TRUTH. THE AIM OF THIS WHOLE PROJECT OF WRITING A MONTHLY DOCUMENT I´M COMMITTED MYSELF TO IS ALSO THE SEARCH FOR THE TRUTH AND ALSO SERVING ALL OF YOU, MY BROTHERS.

I STARTED WRITING POETRY WHEN I WAS SEVENTEEN. THE REASON WHY I SOMETIMES CHOOSE THIS GENRE TO EXPRESS SOMETHING I WANT TO SHARE WITH ALL OF YOU IS SIMPLY BECAUSE THAT´S THE BEST POSSIBLE WAY TO DO IT. THE SAME REASONS BLAYSE (12TH CENTURY) PROBABLY MUST HAVE HAD WHEN HE SUPPOSEDLY WROTE PEVERIL, THE ORIGINAL ROMANCE OF THE GRAIL. WHEN WE THINK OF THE FACT AUTHORS CHANGED THE NAME OF THE KNIGHT PEVERIL TO PERCEVAL, AND OTHER AUTHORS LIKE WOLFRAM CHANGED IT TO PARZIVAL, AND OTHERS TO PEREDUR IN THE WELSH VERSION WE CAN´T HELP BUT WONDER WHY. ONE OF THE REASONS BEHIND IT MAY WELL BE TO MAKE US THINK OF THE DIFFERENT NAMES AS RELATED TO EACH OTHER, TO MAKE US REALIZE IMPORTANT THINGS ARE NOT SO EASY TO SEE, AND TO MAKE US SEARCH FOR WHAT´S REALLY IMPORTANT TO US, SINCE KEY THINGS ARE USUALLY HIDDEN LIKE BEST THINGS IN LIFE ARE, WHICH SOMETIMES ARE NOT SO OBVIOUS. ALL THESE AUTHORS CONSCIOUSLY CHANGING THE NAME OF PEVERIL TO DIFFERENT ONES MEANT TO MAKE US STOP FOR A MINUTE AND SAY: “WHAT´S GOING ON HERE?”. WHAT THEY PROBLABLY WANTED US TO THINK WAS THE SAME AS THEY DID WHEN THEY CHANGED THE NAMES OF PEVERIL, SINCE THE SAME HAPPENED WITH JESUS´S SACRED WORDS, WHICH WERE DESTROYED ALONG THE WAY BY THE 1ST CMTGS. JESUS´S SACRED WORDS ARE WHAT WE CALL WISDOM. WHENEVER A PERSON IS WISE AND POWERFUL THERE´S SOMETHING ELSE THAT PERSON NEEDS IN ORDER TO KEEP DOING THINGS RIGHT OVER THE LONGEST PERIOD OF TIME POSSIBLE AND THAT IS BALANCE.

REGARDING BALANCE LET´S BEGIN BY SAYING THAT THERE ARE COUNTRIES WHERE SOME OF THEIR TRADITIONS LEAD THEIR PARENTS ALMOST INTO PUSHING THEIR CHILDREN OUT OF THEIR HOUSES WHEN THEY ARE 18, MAKING THEM FEEL THEY BOTHER THEM AND CREATING IN THEM A FEELING OF BEING UNWANTED. ON THE OTHER HAND, THERE ARE OTHER COUNTRIES WHOSE TRADITIONS ARE ON THE OTHER EXTREME AND THEIR MOTHERS MAKE THE IMPOSSIBLE TO RETAIN THEIR “CHILDREN” AS MUCH AS THEY CAN. FOR SURE WHAT´S MISSING HERE IS BALANCE.

SINCE THE BALANCE GAME WE´RE TALKING ABOUT IS BETWEEN SERVING THE OTHERS AND POWER LET´S ROUND IT OFF SHOWING ALL OF YOU ONE OF THE BEST WAYS TO START OFF THE DAY SERVING THE OTHERS. HERE IT GOES: WHILE EACH ONE OF US IS STILL IN BED IN THE MORNING, BEFORE WE GET UP, WE CAN SPLENDIDLY START OFF THE DAY SAYING THE FOLLOWING PRAYER TO GOD; BUT BEFORE SAYING THE PRAYER WE MUST DO 2 THINGS:

1) THANK GOD FOR EVERYTHING WE HAVE AND TELL HIM HOW MUCH WE LOVE HIM.

2) WE MUST MAKE THE SIGN OF THE CROSS 1ST ON OUR FOREHEAD, 2ND ON OUR MOUTH, 3RD ON OUR CHEST AND FINAL ONE THE GENERAL ONE (HEAD TO STOMACH).

ONCE WE´VE GONE THROUGH THOSE 2 KEY STEPS WE´LL BE READY TO START TALKING TO GOD THE FOLLOWING WAY:

1. FIRST WE SAY THE MAN OF SORROWS – ACT OF CONTRITION PRAYER: 

“Jesus, Son of God – Man of Sorrows

He was despised and rejected by men; a man of sorrows, and acquainted with grief…. He was despised, and we esteemed Him not. – Isaiah 53:3

He came unto His own, and His own received Him not…. – John 1:11

For God so loved the world that He gave His only-begotten Son; that whosoever believes in Him should not perish, but have everlasting life. – John 3:16

Act of Contrition
O my God, I am heartily sorry for having offended thee, and I detest all my sins because of thy just punishment, but most of all because they offend thee, my God, who art all-good and deserving of all my love.

I firmly resolve, with the help of thy grace, to sin no more and to avoid the near occasion of sin.

+ In the name of the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit. Amen.” (MAN OF SORROWS-ACT OF CONTRITION PRAYER-ADOREMUS BULLETIN,DIC 2007).

2. AND THEN THE PRAYER IN QUESTION“LORD, WITH THE PRAYER I´M ABOUT TO TELL YOU RIGHT NOW I WANT TO SAVE ALL THE SOULS WHO DIED A LONG TIME AGO, ALL THE ONES WHO HAVE JUST DIED AND THE ONES WHO WILL DIE TODAY(BEFORE WE START THE PRAYER WE MUST MAKE THE SIGN OF THE CROSS FROM OUR FOREHEAD TO OUR NOSE AND FROM 1 SIDE OF OUR FOREHEAD TO THE OTHER ONE WHILE WE SAY: “BY THE SIGN OF THE HOLY CROSS”. THEN WE MAKE ANOTHER SIGN OF THE CROSS FROM OUR NOSE TO OUR CHIN AND FROM OUR CHEEK TO CHEEK WHILE SAYING: “OF OUR ENEMIES”. AFTER THAT WE MAKE A 3RD SIGN OF THE CROSS GOING FROM THE CHIN TO THE CHEST AND ACROSS FROM SHOULDER TO SHOULDER WHILE WE SAY: “DELIVER US LORD , OUR LORD”. AND FINALLY WE MAKE A BIG 4TH CROSS FROM THE CENTER OF THE FOREHEAD TO THE CHEST AND FROM SHOULDER TO SHOULDER WHILE SAYING: “IN THE NAME OF THE FATHER, SON AND HOLY SPIRIT”). HERE IT GOES MY LORD:

OH, JESUS, I ASK YOU TO GRANT ME THE GRACE OF SAVING ONE SOUL FOR EVERY BEAT MY HEART TAKES, TOGETHER WITH THE ONES FROM YOUR HEART, MY LORD, AND TOGETHER WITH THE BEATS OF THE IMMACULATE HEART OF YOUR HOLY MOTHER TAKES, I BEG YOU TO LISTEN TO ME  FOR YOUR PRECIOUS BLOOD AND  YOUR DIVINE MERCY, AMEN. AFTER SAYING THIS AWSOME PRAYER ON A DAILY BASIS WE WILL BE SERVING GOD 1560 MINUTES, 24H, 365 DAYS BY THE NUMBER OF YEARS WE END UP LIVING, THATS A LOT OF DAYS OF SERVING THE OTHERS. WOW!!

IF WE WERE TO ANSWER THE QUESTION “WHO SERVES THE GRAIL?” WE WOULD SAY IT SERVES THOSE WHO SEARCH FOR THE TRUTH. HOW COME? WELL, SINCE THE UNIVERSE IS ENERGY AND EACH ONE OF US IS ENERGY AS WELL THERE´S NO OTHER WAY OF BEING AROUND HERE BUT BEING ON THE SAME WAVE LENGHT OR ON A DIFFERENT ONE. WHAT WE MEAN IS IF WE SEARCH FOR THE TRUTH IN EVERYTHING IN OUR LIFE THEN, AND ONLY THEN WILL BE IN THE POSITION OF GETTING WHAT EACH ONE OF US DESERVES. LET´S REMEMBER THE ARK OF THE COVENANT, WHICH IS THE GRAIL AS WELL SINCE IT ONLY SERVES PURE HEARTS, THE ONES WHOSE LIVES ARE GOOD, REQUIRED OF THE ONES HOLDING IT OR THE ONES WHO WANTED TO GET CLOSE TO IT OF SEEING EYE TO EYE WITH IT, THAT IS, WITH PURITY, WITH GOD. THE SAME HAPPENS WHEN THE CUP AND THE HOST AT EVERY EUCHARIST CELEBRATED. BOTH THE CUP AND THE HOST ARE THE GRAIL, BUT THEY´LL ONLY SERVE ANYONE OF US IF AND ONLY IF WE DESERVE IT. DO WE DESERVE IT? THAT´S THE KEY QUESTION EACH ONE OF US MUST BE ASKING EACH OTHER THIS VERY MOMENT. IF WE HAVEN´T DONE OUR HOMEWORK IT´S JUST ABOUT TIME TO GET STARTED. AND THE BEST WAY TO GO ABOUT IT IS BY START SERVING THE OTHERS. YOU KNOW HOW. JUST OPEN YOUR EYES AROUND YOU, OPEN YOUR HEART, FORGET ABOUT YOU AND YOUR EGOIST DESIRES AND GET DOWN TO IT.

ONE 2017 MOVIE WHICH TALKS ABOUT THIS KEY IDEA IS LIFE DIRECTED BY     DANIEL ESPINOSA AND STARRING JAKE GYLLENHAAL, REBECCA FERGUSON, RYAN REYNOLDS, HIROYUKI SANADA, ARIYON BAKARE AND OLGA DIHOVICHNAYA. HERE WE SEE HOW EACH ONE OF THE 6-MEMBER INTERNATIONAL SPACE STATION CREW SACRIFICED HIS LIFE IN ORDER TO SAVE THE REST. THIS FILM REALLY SHOWS VERY WELL THIS IDEA OF SERVING THE OTHERS. I HIGHLY RECOMMENDED IT. BY THE WAY, WHEN YOU GO PAY ATTENTION  TO  YOUR  EMOTIONS.  IT´S  FUNNY  BUT  LATELY I´VE NOTICED NOBODY IN THE MOVIE ROOMS CRIES WHENEVER ONE OF THOSE EXTREMELY MOVING SCENES COMES ALONG AND FORCES US, TO GO IN SEARCH OF OUR KLEENEX, MAINLY TO AVOID THE REST FROM SEEING OUR FACES ALL IN TEARS WHEN WE´RE HEADING FOR THE WAY OUT. BUT BEFORE THAT TAKES PLACE WE´VE EXPERIENCED THE UNIQUE SOUND OF OUR NOSE BEING BLOWN ON OUR KLEENEX, BEING THE ONLY NOISE, THE ONLY ONE MOVED BY THAT WONDERFUL SCENE WHICH REMAINS IN OUR RETINA FOR AGES, AND ALL THAT MAKES US WONDER WHY THE REST DON´T CRY OR SHOW ANY FEELINGS WHATSOEVER. IS IT BECAUSE HUMAN BEINGS ARE LOOSING TOUCH WITHIN THEMSELVES MORE AND MORE AS TIME GOES BY? SURELY THINGS POINT THAT WAY, AND SOMETHING MUST BE DONE ABOUT IT, SPECIALLY IF WE WANT TO BE LUCKY WINNERS. AND WE´RE TALKING GRAIL, THE ONE WHO´S IN FRONT OF US, IN THE EUCHARIST, IN THE CENTRE OF THE UNIVERSE, SINCE GOD, OUR LORD, THE CRADLE OF ALL ENERGIES AND OF EVERYTHING IS WAITING FOR EACH ONE OF US TO BE ON THE SAME WAVE LENGTH TO SERVE US. BUT LET´S REMEMBER ONLY FISHERMAN KINGS, THAT IS, HUMAN BEINGS WHO SAVE OTHERS, WHO SERVE OTHERS ARE SERVED IN RETURN. GOD, THE UNIVERSE, THE GRAIL IS ALL THE SAME AND THEY WORK THIS WAY. WE LOVE GOD AND WE THANK GOD FOR THIS, FOR YOU AND FOR EVERYTHING. THANK YOU LORD FOR BEING IN FRONT OF US EVERYDAY. LET´S HOPE FOR THE DAY EACH ONE OF US DESERVES TO BE SERVED. AMEN.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

CONSIDERABLE EFFORTS TO HIDE THE TRUTH!

FALSE RUMORS HAVE EXISTED AND STILL EXIST TODAY. ONE OF THE TOO MANY OUT THERE IS THE ONE ABOUT LEONARDO DA VINCI WHEN SOME SAY HE WAS AN ATHEIST, WHEN THE TRUTH OF THE MATTER IS THAT HE WAS A TRUE BELIEVER. L. DA VINCI WENT AGAINST ALL ODDS AND WAS ALWAYS INTERESTED IN FINDING OUT MYSTERIES BEHIND KEY QUESTIONS. “THERE´S A 19TH CENTURY CARTEL USED TO ADVERTISE THE PARISIEN LOUNGE OF LA ROSE & CROIX – MEETING POINT FOR OCCULTISM ENTHUSIASTS – , AND REPRESENTS L. DA VINCI AS THE HOLY GRAIL GUARDIAN”. “THE NAMES OF L. DA VINCI AND JEAN COCTEAU APPEAR ON THE LIST OF THE WORSHIPFUL MASTERS OF ONE OF THE MOST ANCIENT AND INFLUENTIAL SECRET SOCIETIES IN EUROPE, THE PRIORY OF SION. IT WAS IN 1982 WHEN PEOPLE STARTED TO KNOW ABOUT ITS EXISTENCE. IN 1991 L. PICKNETT AND C.PRINCE MET ONE OF THE SPOKESPERSONS OF THE PRIORY OF SION AFTER RECEIVING QUITE A NUMBER OF STRANGE LETTERS FROM THEM. ALL THIS HAPPENED RIGHT AFTER HAVING DONE A RADIO SOCIAL GATHERING ON THE SHROUD OF TURIN. THEY TALKED TO SOMEONE ,FROM THE PRIORY OF SION, WHO USED A PSEUDONYM, “GIOVANNI”, AND WHO HAD CARRIED OUT A THOROUGH MONITORING OF L. PICKNETT AND OF C. PRINCE FROM THE VERY BEGINNING OF THEIR RESEARCH ON L. DA VINCI AND ON THE SHROUD. “GIOVANNI” FINALLY DECIDED TO TALK TO L. PICKNETT AND C. PRINCE ABOUT SOME OF THE INTERESTS OF THE PRIORY OF SION, AND MAYBE GET THE OPPORTUNITY TO EXECUTE SOME ROLE IN THEIR PROJECTS. SOME OF GIOVANNI´S INFORMATION HAD NOTHING TO DO WITH THE HOLY GRAIL, AND THAT´S WHY IT DIDN´T APPEAR IN THEIR BOOK. ON THE OTHER HAND, GIOVANNI´S INFORMATION ON THE HOLY SHROUD SAYING IT WAS A PHOTOGRAPH WAS IN THE BOOK SINCE IT WAS CONFIRMED IT WAS A PHOTO” (LA REVELACIÓN DE LOS TEMPLARIOS BY LYNN PICKNETT & CLIVE PRINCE).

LET´S IMAGINE THE PRIORY OF SION WAS THE ONLY ECONOMICAL MEANS L. DA VINCI HAD TO GO ON WITH HIS ARTISTIC CAREER. LET´S IMAGINE THE PRIORY OF SION WAS CREATED BY CORRUPT ONES, AND WHOSE INTERESTS WERE TO MISLEAD INFLUENTIAL PEOPLE LIKE L. DA VINCI AND JEAN COCTEAU, SO THAT THE REST OF THE WORLD WAS MISLED TOO, AS IT´S ACTUALLY RIGHT THIS VERY MOMENT. LET´S IMAGINE THEY MANAGED TO TRICK L. DA VINCI AND JEAN COCTEAU IN THE BEGINNING WHEN THEY STARTED TO PROVIDE THEM WITH THE MONEY THEY NEEDED. IT WAS LATER IN THEIR LIVES WHEN L. DA VINCI AND JEAN COCTEAU FINALLY AWOKE TO THE CORRUPTION THEY UNVOLUNTARILY HAD CONTRIBUTED TO. HOW DID THEY UNVOLUNTARIY CONTRIBUTE TO THE EXPANSION OF CORRUPTION? LET´S IMAGINE IN L. DA VINCI´S CASE IT WAS THIS WAY: SOME CORRUPT ONES GOT INTO THE PRIORY OF SION TO STOP L. DA VINCI FROM KNOWING THE TRUTH ABOUT THE HOLY SHROUD, AND OTHER KEY TOPICS, AND SO THEY PLOTTED THE FOLLOWING PLAN: THEY DECIDED TO TELL HIM IT WOULD BE A GREAT IDEA TO CREATE A REPLICA OF THE HOLY SHROUD, SO THAT THE REAL ONE COULD BE KEPT SAFE FROM GOD´S ENEMIES. L. DA VINCI THOUGHT THEIR INTENTIONS WERE GOOD AND BELIEVED THEM, AND SO HE CREATED A REPLICA OF IT. LET´S IMAGINE IT WAS AT THE VERY END THOUGH, WHEN L. DA VINCI FOUND OUT THE MALEVOLENT INTENTIONS BEHIND SOME OF THE CORRUPT ONES OF THE PRIORY OF SION WITH THE FALSIFIED HOLY SHROUD L. DA VINCI HAD CREATED. HE FINALLY FOUND OUT THAT THE REPLICA THEY ASKED HIM TO CREATE WAS NOT TO PRESERVE THE ORIGINAL ONE – SINCE LET´S IMAGINE THEY WERE GOD´S ENEMIES – BUT TO HAVE EVIDENCE FOR THEM TO STATE IT WAS A PHOTOGRAPH AND NOT SOMETHING SUPERNATURAL LIKE THE ORIGINAL IS REALLY ( A MIRACULOUS IMPRINT WITH JESUS CHRIST IMAGE ON THE SHROUD ONCE HE WAS DEAD ). LET´S IMAGINE ALL THAT HAD TO DO WITH THE CHARACTER OF LEONARDO DA VINCI, SINCE HE PAINTED HIMSELF GLANCING AWAY FROM LA SAGRADA FAMILIA IN THE ADORATION OF THE MAGI AND FROM JESUS IN THE LAST SUPPER, AND ALSO WITH THE CHARACTER IN COCTEAU´S MURAL, WHERE THIS CHARACTER FACING THE CROSS BACKWARDS HAS ONE WRINKLED EYEBROW AND A SIDELONG GLANCE. HE´S A DISAPPOINTED WITNESS FEELING DISGUST. LET´S IMAGINE THIS WAS THE ONLY WAY LEONARDO DA VINCI AND COCTEAU HAD TO REPORT THE DECEPTION THEY BOTH HAD EXPERIENCED HAVING BEEN TRICKED BY THE PRIORY, WHICH WAS ONLY INTERESTED IN HURTING GOD AND GOD´S FOLLOWERS, LIKE L. DA VINCI, COCTEAU AND ALL TRUE BELIEVERS.

LET´S IMAGINE “THE PRIORY, FOUNDED IN 1099, DURING THE 1ST CRUSADE, WAS THE GUARD OF AN EXPLOSIVE, POWERFUL KNOWLEDGE WHICH DATED FROM A LONG TIME AGO. ITS ORIGIN DATES BACK TO THE  KNIGHTS TEMPLAR – MEDIEVAL ORDER OF KNIGHTS, HALF MONKS, HALF SOLDIERS -. THE PRIORY AND THE  TEMPLARS BECAME PRACTICALLY THE SAME ORGANIZATION HEADED BY ONE GREAT WORSHIPFUL MASTER, UNTIL THEY UNDERWENT A SCHISM AND UNDERTOOK SEPARATE ROADS IN 1188. THE STATED GOAL OF THE PRIORY WAS TO PROTECT THE DESCENDANTS OF THE OLD REAL DYNASTY OF THE MEROVINGIANS, WHO REIGNED IN FRANCE FROM THE 5TH CENTURY UNTIL DAGOBERT II WAS KILLED AT THE END OF THE 7TH CENTURY” (LA REVELACIÓN DE LOS TEMPLARIOS BY LYNN PICKNETT & CLIVE PRINCE).

“THEIR OFFICIAL NAME IS “POOR KNIGHTS OF CHRIST AND OF THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON”, AND ITS ORIGIN HAD TO DO WITH THEIR HEADQUARTERS IN JERUSALEN BEING ON THE TOP OF MOUNT MORIA, WHERE THE TEMPLE HAD BEEN ERECTED UNTIL ITS DESTRUCTION BY THE BABYLONIANS IN 587 BC” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SÍMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK ).

“THE ORDER OF THE TEMPLE WAS FOUNDED IN THE YEARS WHICH FOLLOWED THE 1ST CRUSADE – WHEN JERUSALEN AND THE HOLY LAND WERE CAPTURED -. THE CREATION OF THE KNIGHTS  TEMPLAR IS AROUND 1119, WHEN 9 FRENCH KNIGHTS LED BY HUGUES DE PAYNS, THE 1ST GREAT MASTER OF THE TEMPLARS SWORE THEIR LOYALTY TO THE PROTECTION OF PILGRIMAGE ROUTES TO THE HOLY LAND. THE FORMAL FOUNDATION OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR TOOK PLACE IN 1128 WHEN – UNDER THE PATRONAGE OF THE INCREDIBLY POWERFUL BERNARD OF CLAIRVAUX, (PRIMARY REFORMER OF THE CISTERCIAN ORDER AND THE TRUE HIDDEN POWER BEHIND THE PAPAL THRONE) – THE ORDER RECEIVED ITS OWN RULE OF CISTERCIAN INSPIRATION, WHICH WAS LATER ON APPROVED BY THE POPE INNOCENT II. IT WAS THEN WHEN THEY WERE GRANTED THEIR OWN UNIFORM – WHITE TUNIC WITH THE RED CROSS – AS WELL AS THEIR FORMAL NAME “THE ORDER OF THE POOR SOLDIERS OF CHRIST AND OF THE SOLOMON TEMPLE” OR “KNIGHTS OF TEMPLE“ TO CUT IT SHORT. THE ORIGIN OF SUCH NAME STARTS IN THE FACT THAT HUGUES AND HIS COLLEAGUES WERE GRANTED SOME BARRACKS BY KING BALDWIN II, IN THE AL AQSA MOSQUE, IN JERUSALEN, WHICH AT THAT TIME IT WAS THOUGHT TO BE THE PLACE WHERE THE SOLOMON TEMPLE WAS RISEN” (LA REVELACIÓN DE LOS TEMPLARIOS BY LYNN PICKNETT & CLIVE PRINCE). THE TEMPLARS MOVED OVER THERE IN 1119 AND STAYED FOR ABOUT A YEAR. IT IS BELIEVED THE GOAL OF THIS ORDER WAS TO RECOVER THE ARK OF THE COVENANT.

“THE KNIGHTS  TEMPLAR WERE FOUNDED BY 9 FRENCH NOBLE MEN WHO WENT TO THE HOLY LAND IN 1119, 20 YEARS AFTER JERUSALEN HAD FALLEN TO THE EUROPEAN EXPEDITIONARIES. A 12TH CENTURY HISTORIAN, THE ARCHBISHOP WILLIAM OF TYRE, SAID “THE FIRST AND MOST DISTINGUISHED ONES OUT OF THOSE 9 MEN WERE THE VENERABLE HUGO DE PAYENS (1070-1136) AND GODFREY OF ST. OMER”. THESE 2 HAD BEEN BORN IN PAYENS, A VILLAGE ONLY 8 MILES NORTH OF TROYES, IN THE OLD FRENCH COUNTY OF CHAMPAGNE. THE 9 FOUNDERS WERE FROM CHAMPAGNE”. ”BESIDES THAT THERE WERE OTHER COINCIDENCES:

1. CHARTRES, WITH ITS GREAT CATHEDRAL, HAD BEEN PART OF THE DOMAINS OF THE CHAMPAGNE COUNTS DURING THE 12TH AND 13TH CENTURIES.

2. ONE OF THE FIRST 9 KNIGHTS, ANDRE OF MONTBARD (LATER ON 5TH GRAND MASTER) WAS ST. BERNARD OF CLARAVAL´S UNCLE, WHO WAS ALSO FROM CHAMPAGNE. THIS INFLUENTIAL CLERGYMAN HAD BEEN REALLY INTERESTED BOTH IN GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE AND IN STORIES OF THE HOLY GRAIL.

3. THE TOWN OF TROYES, SO NEAR THE BIRTHPLACE OF HUGO DE PAYENS, THE 1ST GREAT KNIGHT OF TEMPLAR, WAS ALSO HOME OFFICE OF CHRETIEN DE TROYES, THE INVENTOR OF THE HOLY GRAIL.

4. HUGO DE PAYENS WAS CHAMPAGNE COUNT´S COUSIN, AND IN 1125 HE JOINED THE KNIGHTS OF TEMPLAR. (LA REVELACIÓN DE LOS TEMPLARIOS BY LYNN PICKNETT & CLIVE PRINCE). 

5. WHEN CHRETIEN DE TROYES STARTED TO STAND OUT AT THE END OF THE 12TH CENTURY HIS MAIN PROTECTOR WAS CHAMPAGNE COUNTESS.

THESE FIRST 9 KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WERE SO POOR THAT KING BALDWIN II AND HIS SUCCESSORS, ONCE THEY MOVED SOMEWHERE ELSE, GRANTED THEM WITH THE USUFRUCT OF THE SOLOMON TEMPLE. BUT WHY DID THESE 9 MEN COME TO THE SOLOMON TEMPLE BEING SO POOR AS THEY WERE? MAINLY BECAUSE THEY WANTED TO FIND, PROTECT AND TAKE SOMETHING SACRED KEPT IN THAT TEMPLE: THE ARK OF THE COVENANT AND THE TABLETS OF THE LAW. THEY WANTED TO GUARANTEE THE CUSTODY OF THE ARK AND THE TABLETS, ONCE THEY FOUND THEM IN THE UNDERGROUND SANCTUARY OF THE SOLOMON TEMPLE. HUGUES DE PAYNS AND COUNT OF CHAMPAGNE COULD HAVE KNOWN ABOUT THE POSSIBILITY OF THE ARK BEING HIDDEN SOMEWHERE INSIDE THE HILL OF THE TEMPLE, DURING THEIR PILGRIMAGE TO THE HOLY LAND IN 1104 ”(EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HAYCOCK), SINCE THE LEGEND OF THE “VISION OF BARUC” ABOUT THE ARK BEING HIDDEN IN A SECRET CAVE UNDER THE SHETIYYAH (= GROUND LEVEL OF THE SANCTASANCTORUM ) WAS WRITTEN IN TALMUDIC, MIDRASH ROLLS AND IN THE APOCALIPSIS AS WELL.

“AT THE END OF 1126 HUGUES DE PAYNS LEFT JERUSALEN AND CAME BACK WITH ANDRE DE MONTBARD TO EUROPE. BOTH GENTLEMEN GOT TO FRANCE IN 1127 AND IN 1128 THEY BOTH TOOK PART IN THE MOST IMPORTANT EVENT OF THE EARLY HISTORY OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, THE SYNOD OF TROYES, CALLED UP WITH THE CLEAR AIM OF GETTING THE OFFICIAL SUPPORT OF THE CHURCH. THREE IMPORTANT THINGS WORTH MENTIONING OUT OF THAT REUNION WERE THESE:

1. IT TOOK PLACE IN THE BIRTHPLACE OF THE POET, WHO LATER ON WOULD INVENT THE HOLY GRAIL.

2. IT WAS CHAIRED BY BERNARD, AS SECRETARY.

3. IT WAS BERNARD HIMSELF WHO WROTE THE RULE OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, WHICH WAS LATER ON TO SERVE AS GUIDE ON THE EVOLUTION AND DEVELOPMENT OF SUCH ORDER.

WHATEVER THE TEMPLARS FOUND IN 1126 THEY ALREADY REALIZED THEY WEREN´T GOING TO FIND THE ARK OF THE COVENANT. THIS MEANT AN IDENTITY CRISIS ON THEIR PART, AND IT WAS PRECISELY ST. BERNARD IN THE SYNOD OF TROYES WHO WITH THE CHURCH BACKING HIM UP COULD CARRY OUT THE EXPANSION OF THE ORDER. LATER ON, IN A SERIES OF SERMONS ST. BERNARD MADE A POWERFUL PROPAGANDA OF THE YOUNG ORDER, USING ALL HIS PRESTIGE AND INFLUENCE GUARANTEEING THEIR SUCCESS. THE RESULTS WERE SPECTACULAR: MANY NEW RECRUITS FROM FRANCE AND EUROPE WENT TO JOIN, DONATIONS OF LAND AND MONEY FROM RICH MENTORS TO POLITICIANS. BY THE END OF THE 12TH CENTURY THE ORDER HAD BECOME IMMENSELY RICH”.

“SURPRISINGLY, THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR HAD BEEN GREAT ARCHITECTS. IN 1139 POPE INNOCENT II, (WHOSE CANDIDACY WAS ALSO BACKED UP BY ST. BERNARD) GRANTED THE ORDER A UNIQUE PRIVILEGE: THE RIGHT TO BUILD THEIR OWN CHURCHES. IN FACT THEY EXERCISED THEIR RIGHT IN DEPTH, AND THE CHURCH OF THE TEMPLE OF LONDON IS ONE OF THEIR MANY EXAMPLES. THE TEMPLARS BUILT A LOT OF THEM IN JERUSALEN, WHERE THEY CONTINUED TO HAVE THEIR HEADQUARTERS IN THE HILL OF THE TEMPLE, UNTIL THE HOLY CITY WAS RECOVERED BY THE MUSLIM LEADER SALADIN IN 1187. A GERMAN MONK BY THE NAME OF THEODORIC HAD PILGRIMAGED TO JERUSALEN IN 1174, WHEN HE REPORTED THAT ALL THE BUILDINGS LOCATED INSIDE THE PRECINCTS OF THE CUPOLA OF THE ROCK CONTINUED IN THE WARRIOR TEMPLAR´S HANDS”.

“ LET´S IMAGINE GRAHAM HANCOCK IS RIGHT WHEN HE THINKS THE TEMPLARS FOUND RELEVANT MANUSCRIPTS OF KNOWLEDGE REGARDING THE SCIENCE OF CONSTRUCTION, AND THEY USED IT TO BUILD THE SUDDEN GOTHIC ARQUITECTURE WITH THEIR TALL CEILINGS AND THEIR ARMONIZED FORMS. LET´S IMAGINE G. HANCOCK IS RIGHT WHEN HE SAYS THE TEMPLARS CAME TO THE CONCLUSION THE ARK WAS TAKEN TO ETHIOPIA, BECAUSE IN JERUSALEN THERE WAS AN EXILED ETHIOPIAN PRINCE – LALIBALA – WHO LIVED THERE FOR 25 YEARS, BEFORE HE RETURNED TO ETHIOPIA IN 1185, AND ONLY 10 YEARS AFTER THAT WOLFRAM WROTE PARZIBAL, AND ALSO THE WORK OF THE NORTH PORTICO OF THE CATHEDRAL OF CHARTRES TOOK OFF AT THAT TIME”.

HARBE WAS THE KING WHO TOOK OVER AFTER LALIBALA, AND NEITHER OF THEM DESCENDED FROM LINEAGE, BUT FROM AN USURPING DYNASTY KNOWN AS THE ZAGWE (RULING IN ETHIOPIA SINCE 1030 AC UNTIL 1270 WHEN THE SOLOMONIANS WERE RESTORED IN THE THRONE ). HOWEVER, HARBE KNEW HIS YOUNGER BROTHER LALIBALA WAS DESTINED TO COME TO THE THRONE SINCE THE DAY A DENSE SWARM OF BEES SURROUNDED LALIBALA WHEN HE WAS IN HIS CRADLE, AND THE POPULAR BELIEF THAT THE ANIMAL KINGDOM CAN PREDICT THE FUTURE OF RELEVANT PEOPLE. KNOWING ALL THIS MADE HARBE FEEL HIS THRONE WAS THREATENED TO THE POINT HE TRIED TO KILL HIS BROTHER BY MEANS OF A POISON, WHEN HE STILL COULDN´T WALK. THE POISON SUNK LALIBALA INTO A CATALEPTIC SLEEP. THE ETHIOPIAN LEGENDS SAY THAT STATE LASTED FOR 3 DAYS DURING WHICH HE WAS TAKEN TO HEAVEN BY SOME ANGELS AND GOD TOLD HIM NOT TO BE AFRAID FOR HIS LIFE OR HIS FUTURE SOVEREIGNTY. GOD HAD ALREADY DECIDED WHAT HIS DESTINY WOULD BE AND THAT´S WHY HE HAD BEEN ANNOINTED. HE TOLD HIM THAT ONCE HE WOULD WAKE UP HE WOULD RUN AWAY TO ETHIOPIA AND LOOK FOR REFUGE IN JERUSALEN, BUT THAT HE COULD COUNT ON THE DAY WHEN HE WOULD COME BACK AS KING TO ROHA, HIS BIRTHPLACE. HE ALSO TOLD HIM HE WOULD BUILD THERE SUCH MANY WONDERFUL CHURCHES THAT NOBODY WOULD HAVE SEEN ANYTHING LIKE IT SO FAR . GOD THEN GAVE LALIBALA PRECISE INSTRUCTIONS AS TO THE BUILDING METHOD TO USE, THE SHAPE EACH CHURCH WAS GOING TO HAVE, THEIR LOCATION AND EVEN THEIR INSIDE AND OUTSIDE DECORATION. WHEN LALIBALA RETURNED TO ETHIOPIA AND BECAME KING AGAIN, ALMOST IMMEDIATELY AFTERWARDS A GROUP OF SPECTACULAR SCULPTED CHURCHES STARTED TO BE BUILT IN THE ROCK IN ROHA, LATER ON BAPTIZED AS “LALIBALA” IN HIS HONOR. WHEN LALIBALA DIED DECADENCE APPEARED. FINALLY IN 1270, HIS NIECE NAAKUTO LAAB WAS CONVINCED TO ABDICATE IN FAVOR OF YEKUNO AMLAK, A MONARCH WHO PROCLAIMED HIS SOLOMONIC LINEAGE. SINCE THEN UNTIL HAILE SELASSIE WAS OVERTHROWN DURING THE COMMUNIST REVOLUTION IN 1974, ALL ETHIOPIAN EMPERORS EXCEPT ONE WERE OF REAL DESCENDANCE” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

LET´S IMAGINE GRAHAM HANCOCK WAS RIGHT WHEN HE THOUGHT THAT THE LETTER SENT TO THE KING OF FRANCE WAS WRITTEN BY HARBE, AND THEREFORE “IT WAS A FALSIFIED LETTER, SINCE IT WASN´T PRESTE JOHN AS HE INTENDED EVERYONE TO BELIEVE. WHY THEN DID HARBE WRITE SUCH A LETTER BRAGGING OF HIS HUGE ARMY AND LIBELLING THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR? WELL, BECAUSE AS HE REGULARLY SENT EMISSARIES TO JERUSALEN HE THOUGHT THERE WAS SOME KIND OF CONSPIRACY BY LALIBALA AND THE TEMPLARS. GIVEN THE FACT LALIBALA HAD BEEN EXILED FOR 5 YEARS IN JERUSALEN HARBE THOUGHT THERE HAD BEEN PLENTY OF TIME FOR LALIBALA TO MEET THE TEMPLARS”.

 PARZIBAL, WRITTEN A FEW YEARS AFTER LALIBALA HAD EXPELLED HARBE FROM THE ETHIOPIAN THRONE, CONTAINED SOME REFERENCES TO THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WHO WERE DESCRIBED AS MEMBERS OF “THE COMPANY OF THE GRAIL”. G. HANCOCK THOUGHT IT WAS INTRIGUING WHAT WOLFRAM WOULD OFTEN REPEAT ABOUT THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR BEING SENT ON MISSIONS ABROAD FROM TIME TO TIME. THOSE MISSIONS WERE SECRET AND RELATED TO THE ACHIEVEMENT OF POLITICAL POWER. THE FOLLOWING 2 EXAMPLES SHOW THIS:

1. “IT WAS WRITTEN ON THE GRAIL THAT NOONE SHOULD ASK ANY TEMPLAR´S NAME NOR LINEAGE WHOM GOD PLACED IN A FAR PLACE… HOWEVER, EVERYONE SHOULD HELP THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR GAIN THEIR RIGHTS. IF TEMPLARS WERE ASKED THAT QUESTION THEN THE PEOPLE WOULDN´T BE ABLE TO GO ON HAVING THE TEMPLARS AMONG THEM”.

2. “IF A COUNTRY LOSES ITS LORD, AND HIS PEOPLE SEE GOD´S HAND IN THAT, AND ASKS FOR A NEW LORD OF THE SOCIETY OF THE GRAIL, HIS PLEA IS HEARD…GOD SENDS MEN SECRETLY”.

THE MOST INTERESTING PART IN PARZIBAL WAS THE LONG MONOLOGUE BY A MEMBER OF THE COMPANY OF THE GRAIL WHO TALKED ABOUT GOING TO THE HEART OF AFRICA…BEYOND ROHAS. ROHAS WAS THE OLD NAME OF TODAY´S CITY LALIBALA”.

THERE ARE FACTS WHICH LEAD US TO THINK GOD ASKED SOME OF HIS MESSENGERS TO ACCOMPLISH CERTAIN GOALS LIKE FOR EXAMPLE THESE ONES:

 1. THE 11 CHURCHES SCULPTED OUT OF THE ROCK OF LALIBALA WERE THE MOST ADVANCED BUILDINGS FROM THE ARCHITECTURAL POINT OF VIEW ETHIOPIA HAD SEEN BEFORE. ACCORDING TO UNESCO THESE 11 CHURCHES SHOULD HAVE BEEN INCLUDED AMONG THE WORLD WONDERS. BESIDES SOME MYSTERY SURROUNDED ALL THESE 11 CHURCHES. THEY WERE UNIQUE. EHIOPIAN LEGENDS ATTRIBUTED THE BUILT OF THE 11 CHURCHES TO SOME ANGELS. LET´S IMAGINE THOSE ETHIOPIAN LEGENDS WERE RIGHT WHEN THEY SAID THE 11 CHURCHES WERE REALLY BUILT BY ANGELS. “THUS THE 11 MONOLITHS ARE UNIQUE IN CONCEPTION, EXECUTION AND ESTHETICS, AND THESE BIG BUILDINGS ARE STILL TODAY, 800 YEARS AFTERWARDS, PLACES OF CULT. THERE WERE EXCAVATED IN LIVE ROCK, VERY WELL SCULPTED STRAIGHT OUT OF SOLID RED VOLCANIC LIMESTONE ROCK. THIS MAKES THEM LOOK SUPERHUMAN, AND CONSIDERABLE EFFORTS HAVE BEEN MADE TO HIDE THE TRUE CHARACTER OF THESE 11 CHURCHES. SOME OF THEM ARE ALMOST HIDDEN INSIDE DEEP TRENCHES, WHILE OTHERS ARE HIDDEN IN THE MOUTH OF HUGE OPENED CAVES DUE TO THE QUARRY EXPLOITATION. THERE IS A COMPLEX AND PUZZLING LABYRINTH OF TUNNELS AND NARROW PASSAGES WITH “THAT CONNECT ALL CHURCHES EXCEPT 4 OF THEM. THESE 4 CHURCHES ARE CONNECTED ONLY WITH THE ROCK WHERE ALL OF THEM SET THEIR BASES. ST. MARY´S CHURCH IS ONE OF THESE 4 CHURCHES WHERE A PRIEST SHOWED HANCOCK A REALLY TALL COLUMN WHICH G. HANCOCK DESCRIBED THIS WAY: “FROM THE THICKNESS TRUNK OF A BIG TREE, IT RISES ABOVE THE ROCK BASE AND DISAPPEARS IN THE HALF-LIGHT OF THE HIGHLANDS. IT´S SPIRAL SHAPED AND TOTALLY WRAPPED IN AN OLD AND FADED CLOTH WITH WEAK FINGERPRINTS OF ALREADY ERASED DYES. THE PRIEST SAYS THAT COLUMN IS SACRED AND HAS KING LALIBALA´S ENGRAVINGED WRITING. THOSE WRITINGS TELL US HOW THOSE CHURCHES WERE BUILT. G. HANCOCK ASKED IF THEY COULD CLEAR THE CLOTH SO THAT HE COULD READ THE SECRETS, BUT THE POOR PRIEST WAS HORRIFIED AND SAID THIS: “THAT WOULD BE A SACRILEGE. THE WRAPPING MUST NEVER BE REMOVED” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK). LET´S IMAGINE THE TEMPLAR GUYOT DE PROVINS SHARED WITH WOLFRAM A BIG AND TERRIBLE MYSTERY, THE SECRET OF THE LOCATION OF THE ARK OF THE COVENANT. LET´S IMAGINE GUYOT ENTRUSTED WOLFRAM WITH THE JOB OF WRITING THIS IMPRESSIVE, CRYPTOGRAMIC STORY, SO THAT IT COULD BE TOLD TIME AND TIME AGAIN FOR CENTURIES. THAT´S THE REASON WHY WOLFRAM WROTE PARZIBAL, CODED WITH SUCH INTELLIGENCE, SO THAT THE SECRET OF THE LOCATION OF THE ARK WOULD BE INDEFINITELY SAFELY KEPT THROUGHOUT THE WORLD CULTURE. AS TO THE 11 UNIQUE ETHIOPIAN CHURCHES, WHY WOULD SOMEONE WANT TO HIDE SUCH UNIQUE ARCHITECTURE FROM ALL OF US? LET´S IMAGINE IT´S BECAUSE CORRUPT ONES AGAINST GOD ARE SPECIALISTS IN DESTROYING, HIDING AND DISTORTING ANYTHING THAT HAS TO DO WITH GOD, WITH BEAUTY, THAT IS WITH CELESTIAL ARCHITECTURE, AND WITH ANYTHING THAT HAS THE POTENTIAL OF REMINDING US OF GOD, HEAVEN AND EVERYTHING THAT IS YET TO COME. LET´S IMAGINE SUCH IMPRESSIVE SCALE AND SUCH PERFECTION REGARDING THE 11 CHURCHES IS SIMPLY, LIKE IT OR NOT, GOD´S WORK.

G. HANCOK DID A LOT OF RESEARCH AND AMONG THAT HE FOUND THIS BOOK THE PRESTER JOHN OF THE INDIES BY A PRIEST NAMED FRANCISCO ALVAREZ IN 1540. FRANCISCO SAID THE FOLLOWING REGARDING THE FACT THOSE 11 CHURCHES ARE TOTALLY EXCAVATED IN OPEN ROCK AND VERY WELL SCULPTED: “I´D RATHER NOT WRITE ABOUT THESE BUILDINGS, BECAUSE IF I DO I THINK NOBODY IS GOING TO BELIEVE ME, AND BECAUSE OF WHAT I´VE JUST WRITTEN I CAN BE ACCUSED OF STRAYING FROM THE TRUTH. THAT´S WHY I SWEAR TO GOD, IN WHOSE HANDS I´M IN, THAT THERE´S MUCH MORE THAN I´VE WRITTEN, AND I´VE LEFT IT OUT!, SO THAT NOONE CAN TELL ME IT´S FALSE” “ (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

LET´S IMAGINE NOT EVERY KNIGHT TEMPLAR WAS FAITHFUL TO THEIR BELIEFS. FOR EXAMPLE, “WHEN ODO DE SAINT-AMAND WAS MASTER OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, ACCORDING TO WILLIAM OF TYRE, ODO WAS A FELON, ARROGANT AND DID NOT WORSHIP GOD NOR ITS NAME. HE DID NOT RESPECT ANYONE NOR DARED GOD” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

FOR SURE ODO DE SAINT-AMAND´S ARROGANCE AND BAD PRACTICES CONFUSED MANY KNIGHTS TEMPLAR BACK THEN. HOWEVER, THE SECT OF THE ASSASSINS TAKES THE CAKE AS TO HOW MUCH CONFUSED THE TEMPLARS GOT AFTER BEING IN CONTACT WITH THEM. THIS SECT, ALSO CALLED THE HASCHISCHINS, IMPOSED ON THEIR WARRIORS THE USE OF HACHIS, AND ALSO THE PLAYING OF DIFFERENT ROLES SPEAKING OTHER LANGUAGES AND DRESSIN UP, IN ORDER TO TRICK PEOPLE. THIS IS THE CASE OF THE GREAT MASTER OF THE ASSASSINS, SINAN (THE OLD MAN OF THE MOUNTAIN), WHO FOOLED KING AMALRIC MAKING HIM BELIEVE HE WOULD CONVERT TO THE CHRISTIAN FAITH IF HE FREED HIM FROM THE TRIBUTE THE SECT HAD TO PAY THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR IN 1149. IN RESPONSE TO THAT ANOTHER UNRULY KNIGHT TEMPLAR, GUTIERRE D´AUNAY, DECIDED TO KILL THEM, AND THIS LED TO A CONFLICT BETWEEN THE KING AND THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, ALTHOUGH KING AMALRIC DIED ALL OF A SUDDEN AT THE AGE OF 39 AND COULDN´T BESIEGE THE ORDER HEADQUARTERS AS HE INTENDED TO. THE WORST OF ALL WAS  ALL THIS CONFLICT LED THE ORDER TO CONTACT THE ASSASSINS´ HASHISH AND OTHER DRUGS CULTURE. THE ASSASSINS´ CULTURE HAD TO DO ALSO WITH KILLING ANYONE WHO WOULD UPSTAGE SINAN.

THE MASTER KNIGHT TEMPLAR, GERARD DE RIDEFORT, WAS ONE MORE EXCEPTION TO THE CAUTION AND GENTLEMANLINESS TYPICAL OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, SINCE “HE HATED KING RAYMOND OF TRIPOLI III (C. 1140-1187) SO MUCH THAT GAVE HIM THE WRONG PIECE OF ADVICE TELLING HIM TO ORDER THE CHRISTIAN TROOPS TO MOVE FORWARD INTO TIBERIAS (FROM JERUSALEN). UNFORTUNATELY, KING RAYMOD OF TRIPOLI FOLLOWED GERARD DE RIDEFORT´S ADVICE AND ALL CHRISTIANS, ONCE THEY REACHED ALL THIRSTY HATTIN HILL, WERE KILLED BY SALADIN´S FORCES” (LOS TEMPLARIOS BY M.G. SALES). 

LET´S IMAGINE EMPEROR WEDEM ARA´AD WAS THE ONE WHO SENT THE 30 PEOPLE WHO WERE TEMPLARS TO AVIÑON IN FRANCE IN 1306 TO TALK TO POPE CLEMENT V. LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON WHY EMPEROR WEDEM ARA´AD SENT THE 30 TEMPLARS TO AVIÑON WAS A WAY TO GET RID OF THEM SINCE HE FELT THREATENED BY THEIR POWER AND BY THEIR SPECIAL INTEREST FOR THE ARK. ONCE THE TEMPLARS GOT TO AVIÑON IN 1306 KING PHILIP IV THE HANDSOME (1268-1314) PLOTTED FOR A YEAR HOW TO KILL THE 30 TEMPLARS SINCE HE AND THE POPE FEARED THEIR POWER – GIVEN THE FACT SUPERSTITIONS BACK THEN – AND ONE YEAR LATER PHILIP IV AND CLEMENT V ORDERED TO TORTURE AND BURN THE 30 OF THEM. “AMONG THEM WERE JACQUES DE MOLAY AND THE PRECEPTOR OF NORMANDY, GEOFFROI DE CHARNAY. IN LESS THAN 130 YEARS AFTER LALIBALA RETURNED TO ETHIOPIA THE TEMPLARS HAD BEEN TRAPPED, TORTURED, SENT TO THE BONFIRE, AND THEIR PROPERTIES AND WEALTH SHARED OUT AMONG THE EUROPEAN GOVERNING HOUSES ALLEGING THEY WERE GUILTY OF SODOMY, BLASPHEMY AND IDOLATRY”. LET´S IMAGINE ALL THE ALLEGATIONS AGAINST THE TEMPLARS WERE FALSE AND THE ONES WHO WERE HOMOSEXUALS, REJECTED CHRIST AND SPITTED ON CHRIST´S IMAGE WERE THE ONES RESPONSIBLE FOR THE TEMPLARS ARREST. “THE TEMPLAR ORDER BECAME FULLY DISSOLVED IN ENGLAND, SPAIN, ITALY, GERMANY, CYPRUS AND OTHER PLACES. HOWEVER, IN PORTUGAL AND SCOTLAND SOME TEMPLARS ESCAPED THE PERSECUTION, AND SPREAD OUT THROUGHOUT DIFFERENT ORDERS, LIKE THE ONE OF CALATRAVA, AND THE ORDER OF CHRIST IN PORTUGAL. IN OTHER COUNTRIES THEY DRESSED UP AND WERE ABLE TO SURVIVE. THE SCOTTISH KING ROBERT I BRUCE PROVIDED A REFUGE FOR ALL THE TEMPLAR KNIGHTS WHO WERE BEING PERSECUTED. LET´S IMAGINE THE 18TH CENTURY MASONS INVENTED THEIR HISTORICAL PRECEDENTS TO LEGITIMIZE THEMSELVES, FOOLING US ALL WHEN THEY SAID THE SECRET SURVIVAL OF THE TEMPLARS – THANKS TO KING ROBERT I BRUCE – WAS DUE TO A FREEMASONRY. LET´S IMAGINE THEY LIED ABOUT KING ROBERT I BRUCE WHEN THEY SAID THE OLD MASONIC SCOTTISH LOGIA KILWINNING WAS FOUNDED BY HIM, TO RECEIVE THOSE 30 TEMPLARS WHO CAME FROM FRANCE. LET´S IMAGINE BOTH, ANDREW RAMSAY (SCOTTISH HISTORIAN MASON) AND CARL VON HUND RELEVANT GERMAN MASON) LIED WHEN THEY SAID FREEMASONRY ORIGINATED IN THE TEMPLARS, AND THAT EVERY MASON IS A TEMPLAR”.

JOHN THE BAPTIST WAS THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR´S PATRON SAINT, AND THE KNIGHTS TEMPLARS ESPECIALLY REVERED HIM. THE TEMPLARS BECAME REALLY POWERFUL THANKS TO DONATIONS FROM THE STATE AND FROM KINGS AND NOBILITY. THE FORTUNE THEY AMASSED WAS SUCH THEY BECAME THE FIRST WORLD INTERNATIONAL BANKERS. THEY WERE IN CHARGE OF DEFENDING HOLY PLACES, BUT AROUND 1291, ALTHOUGH THEY WERE STILL RICH THEY RAISED RESENTMENTS SINCE THEY DIDN´T PAY TAXES AND WERE ONLY ACCOUNTABLE TO THE POPE” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HAYCOCK). 

“IN PORTUGAL TEMPLARS WERE PROSECUTED BUT INNOCENT. AS DIONISIO I, A PORTUGUESE MONARCH, WAS A GOOD CATHOLIC HE PRETENDED TO OBEY THE POPE´S INSTRUCTIONS AND LET THEM GO FREE IN 1312, JUST 6 YEARS LATER THEY CAME BACK UNDER A NEW NAME: THE MILICIA OF JESUS CHRIST, ALSO KNOWN AS THE KNIGHTS OF CHRIST OR THE ORDER OF CHRIST. IN 1319 THAT NEW BODY WAS APPROVED BY POPE JOHN XXII, SINCE CLEMENT V HAD ALREADY DIED. THEREFORE, THE PORTUGUESE ORDER OF CHRIST AND THE BRITISH ONE WERE THE 2 PLACES WHICH HOUSED THE TEMPLAR TRADITIONS. LET´S IMAGINE ONCE EMPEROR WEDEM ARA´AD KNEW ABOUT THE KILLINGS OF THE 30 TEMPLARS IN AVIGNON, HE DECIDED TO EXPEL THE FEW LEFT IN ETHIOPIA” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

THE FOLLOWING ARE FACTS BACKING UP THE HONESTY AND SPIRITUAL POWER OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR:

 1. “THE PORTUGUESE PRINCE HENRY THE SAILOR (1394-1460), MEMBER OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST (KNIGHT TEMPLAR) HAD THIS ONE AMBITION WHICH WAS TO GET TO KNOW THE COUNTRY WHERE “PRESTE JOHN” WAS FROM. HE REALLY DEVOTED MUCH OF HIS CAREER TO ACCOMPLISH THAT GOAL. IN THE 20TH CENTURY SOME SECRET DOCUMENTS CAME TO LIGHT, LIKE THE BRIEF NOTE HE LEFT BEFORE HE DIED, WHICH SAID THIS: “PRESTE JOHN´S AMBASSADOR VISITED LISBON 8 YEARS BEFORE HENRY´S DEATH”. LET´S IMAGINE HENRY THE SAILOR WAS MADE PRISONER AND HE WROTE THAT NOTE BEFORE THEY KILLED HIM. NOBODY KNOWS WHAT THE PRINCE AND THE ETHIOPIAN AMBASSADOR TALKED ABOUT, BUT WE DO KNOW 2 YEARS AFTER THAT INTERVIEW, KING AFONSO V OF PORTUGAL GRANTED THE ORDER OF CHRIST WITH SPIRITUAL JURISDICTION OVER ETHIOPIA. THAT SAME YEAR (1460), THAT HENRY THE SAILOR DIED, A DESERVING SUCESSOR, ALSO KNIGHT OF THE ORDER, VASCO DE GAMA, WAS BORN IN SINES (SOUTH PORT OF PORTUGAL), AND HE WAS GOING TO OPEN THE ROUTE OF THE CAPE TO INDIA IN 1497. WHEN THE PORTUGUESE ADMIRAL VASCO DE GAMA LEFT HE TOOK 2 THINGS WITH HIM: 1) A WHITE SILK INSIGNIA WITH AN EMBROIDERED DOUBLE RED CROSS OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST, AND 2)  ACCREDITING LETTERS TO BE HANDED OVER TO PRESTE JOHN”.

2. ”IN 1487, 10 YEARS BEFORE VASCO DE GAMA LEFT, THE ORDER OF CHRIST HAD SPONSORED ANOTHER INITIATIVE ADDRESSED TO GET TO ETHIOPIA. THAT YEAR KING JOHN II OF PORTUGAL, GREAT MASTER OF THE ORDER THEN, SENT THE MAN HE TRUSTED, PETER OF COVILHAN, TO A DANGEROUS TRIP TO PRESTE JOHN´S COURT THROUGH THE MEDITERRANEAN, EGYPT AND THE RED SEA. DRESSED UP AS A MERCHANT, COVILHAN FINALLY ARRIVED IN ABISINIA IN 1493. HE WAS WELCOMED ALTHOUGH LATER ON HE WAS SUBJECTED TO A CONFORTABLE HOUSE ARREST. HE WAS KEPT IMPRISONED IN ETHIOPIA ALL HIS LIFE” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA. SIMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK). LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON WHY THIS SPY, COVILHAN, WAS ARRESTED WAS BECAUSE AS HE WAS ENTRUSTED WITH THE JOB OF GETTING INFORMATION ABOUT WHERE THE ARK COULD BE, HE ASKED MANY QUESTIONS ABOUT IT, WHICH MADE IT CLEAR TO GOD´S COMPETENCE, TO THE ONES AGAINST GOD, COVILHAN WAS AN OBSTACLE WHICH HAD TO BE ELIMINATED.

“THE GNOSTICS SECTS, FOUNDED BY SIMON THE MAGICIAN AND DOSITHEOS WERE A GREAT DANGER FOR THE RISING CHRISTIAN CHURCH. SOME GNOSTIC SECTS SUCH AS SIMONIANS, DOSITHEANS, MANDAEANS AND MAYBE EVEN THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WERE PERSECUTED AND KILLED BY THE CATHOLIC CHURCH, BECAUSE OF WHAT THEY KNEW OF JOHN THE BAPTIST, WHOM THEY REVERED. ONLY THE SMALL GROUP OF MANDAEANS IN IRAK WAS LEFT, TOGETHER WITH SOME FEW CLANDESTINE JOHN´S FOLLOWERS IN EUROPE. ALL THROUGHOUT THIS JOHN THE BAPTIST FOLLOWERS TRADITION THERE IS AN EVIDENT CONFUSION BETWEEN JOHN THE EVANGELIST (PRESUMED AUTHOR OF THE 4TH GOSPEL) AND JOHN THE BAPTIST. SUCH CONFUSION IS A RELEVANT CHARACTERISTIC OF THE MAIN FREEMASONRY TREND. ALTHOUGH THIS TRADITION SAYS IT REPRESENTS AN ESOTERIC FORM OF CHRISTIANISM SINCE IT KEEPS SOME “SECRET TEACHINGS” OF JESUS, THIS TRADITION DOESN´T SHOW ANY RESPECT FOR JESUS. THEY CONSIDER JESUS A SIMPLE MORTAL, ILEGITIMATE SON AND MAYBE VICTIM OF DELUSIONS OF GRANDEUR” (LA REVELACIÓN DE LOS TEMPLARIOS BY LYNN PICKNETT AND CLIVE PRINCE). LET´S IMAGINE MANY GNOSTICS TEXTS WERE FULL OF LIES ABOUT JESUS CHRIST

HERE ARE SOME OF THE MANY LIES TOLD ABOUT THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR:

1. THE LEGEND THAT SAYS THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WORSHIPPED A DIABOLIC IDOL CALLED BAPHOMET IS A DIRTY LIE. WHY DID THAT LIE APPEARED? LET´S IMAGINE IT WAS BECAUSE IT WAS ONE MORE HARASSMENT WAY TO PUT AN END TO THE ORDER. HOW DO WE KNOW IT WAS HARASSMENT THE TEMPLARS ENDURED? BECAUSE “THERE IS NO TRACE OF SUCH DEVILISH IDOL IN ANY OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR´S ARTICLES OR RULES. THE TIME WHEN IT FIRST APPEARED COINCIDED WITH THE TIME OF STUNNING HATE CAMPAIGN AGAINST THE ORDER. THE INVENTION OF BAFOMET MUST HAVE ITS ORIGIN IN THE CONTACT THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR HAD WITH MUSLIMS IN THE HOLY LAND, SPECIALLY WITH THE SECT OF THE ASSASINS ” (THE TEMPLARIOS BY G. SALES).

2. ANOTHER LIE IS WHEN THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WERE ACCUSED OF REJECTING JESUS CHRIST.

3. WHEN THEY WERE ACCUSED OF GIVING IN TO THE MOST PERVERT HOMOSEXUAL ACTS IS ONE MORE LIE.

4. WHEN SOME SAID THEY DEVOTED THEMSELVES TO OTHER SUPERSTITIONS AND SACRILEGIOUS PRACTICES IS FALSE AS WELL.

5. WHEN SOME SAID THEY SPITTED AT THE CROSS AND STEPPED ON IT IS COMPLETELY FALSE.

6. WHEN SOME SAID THEY WERE BLASPHEMOUS IS A LIE.

7. “THE LAST RESEARCH BY FINCKE ON THE DOCUMENTS OF THE CROWN OF ARAGON DEMONSTRATES CLEARLY THE FALSE ACCUSATIONS AGAINST THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR” (THE TEMPLARIOS BY G. SALES).

“IT WAS THE FORTUNE OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WHICH AWAKENED THE KING´S AND THE POPE´S GREED. THIS DESIRE TO GET HOLD OF THEIR POSSESSIONS WAS THE REASON FOR ALL THE FALSE ALLEGATIONS AND THE ATTACKS ADDRESSED TO THEM. THE CHURCH AND THE STATE REALIZED HOW COURAGEOUS THESE BRAVE SOLDIERS WERE AND SO THEY USED THEM TO ACHIEVE THEIR OWN POLITICAL GOALS. HOWEVER, THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR´S WORDS BECAME SO STRONG THEY THREATENED THE POPE AND THE MONARCHS. IT WAS THEN WHEN THE STATE AND THE CHURCH DECIDED TO DESTROY THE ORDER. PHILIP IV THE HANDSOME CAME TO THE CONCLUSION FRANCE WAS DOOMED TO BECOME THE NATION WHICH WOULD RUN ALL EUROPEAN POLITICS, AND SO HE DECIDED TO GET RID OF THE ONLY ONE POWER AGAINST HIM, THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR. HE ACHIEVED HIS GOAL BY MEANS OF THE MOST DESPICABLE SLANDERS, BY THE LOWES MEANS AND THE MOST DISGRACEFUL PROCEDURES. HE ORDERED THE GREAT MASTER OF THE ORDER, JACQUES DE MOLAY  img_1352, TO BE DETAINED WHEN HE GOT TO THE TEMPLE OF PARIS FROM CYPRUS. J. DE MOLAY, GENTLEMAN FROM BESANÇON, WAS THE VICTIM OF A LONG AND CRUEL OPPRESSION, HAVING BEEN DEPRIVED OF THE RIGHT TO GIVE THE SACRAMENTS OF THE CHURCH. BERNARD OF VADO, KNIGHT TEMPLAR WAS SEVERELY TORTURED. HIS FEET WERE ENFORCED FIRE PUNISHMENT, AND SO HE SHOWED HIS HEEL AND HANDS´ PALMS´ BONES TO THE JUDGES IN A QUESTIONING”.

“WHEN THEY BROKE INTO THE TEMPLARS HEADQUARTERS THEY FOUND THEM EMPTY. AT LEAST SOME KNIGHTS TEMPLAR MUST HAVE KNOWN OF THE KING AND POPE´S INTENTIONS AND HAD TIME TO TAKE THE TREASURE AND RUN AWAY WITH IT. MOST THEORIES ON THIS SUBJECT ACCEPT THE FACT THE TEMPLARS NOT ONLY TOOK VALUABLE MATERIAL BUT ALSO SACRED OBJECTS LIKE THE ARK OF THE COVENANT, ALSO CALLED THE HOLY GRIAL”

“THE PRIORY WAS CREATED IN 1956 AS A COVER FOR THE GROUPS WHO PLOTTED TO GET CHARLES DE GAULLE BACK IN POWER – DE GAULLE´S “PRETORIAN GUARD” AND THE CONSPIRATION OF “THE GRAND O” WHICH WAS SCHEMED BY THE ULTRA CONSPIRATOR HENRY MARTIN. THIS PLOT WAS RECAPTURED AFTERWARDS IN THE 1960´S, WITH THE NEW GOAL OF SPREADING ERRONEOUS INFORMATION TO PREVENT OTHER ESOTERIC GROUPS FROM LOOKING FOR CERTAIN FILES, AND SO THEY LEFT THE PUZZLING FALSE CLUE OF THE MEROVINGIAN DYNASTY” “(LA REVELACIÓN DE SIÓN BY LYNN PICKNETT AND CLIVE PRINCE).

“SENS COUNCIL IN FRANCE ORDERED TO BURN 54 KNIGHTS TEMPLAR, AND INDEED THE 54 TEMPLARS WERE SLOWLY BURNED. SUCH CRUEL MEASURES MADE ALMERY DE VILLIERS, THE 1ST KNIGHT TEMPLAR, WHO RIGHT AFTER THE 54 TEMPLARS WERE SLOWLY BURNT, WAS TAKEN TO THE SENS COUNCIL, AND THERE HE SAID HE WOULD CONFESS ANYTHING THEY WANTED HIM TO SAY. HE ALSO SAID HE WOULD EVEN ADMIT HE HAD KILLED JESUS CHRIST. NOTHING IN THE PROCEDURE FOLLOWED AGAINST THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WAS PROTECTED BY LAW. IT WAS FULL OF INAPPROPRIATE REMARKS WHICH DEBASED AND OVERRULED THE KNIGHTS TEMPLARS” (THE TEMPLARIOS BY M.G. SALES).

THE POET GOFFREDO OF PARIS SAW HOW MANY KNIGHTS TEMPLAR AND THE GREAT MASTER JACQUES DE MOLAY WERE BURNT ALIVE. THIS IS WHAT GEOFREDO SAID ABOUT THIS TERRIBLE GENOCIDE: “ONCE JACQUES DE MOLAY SAW THE FIRE READY UNDRESSED HIMSELF AND SLOWLY STARTED WALKING PEACEFULLY AND COMPLETELY NAKED TOWARDS THE BONFIRE. THEY TIED HIS HANDS TO A POST. THIS IS THE EXACT MOMENT WHEN THEY FIRST HEARD HIS VOICE SAYING TO THE EXECUTIONERS: “LET ME JOIN A LITTLE BIT MY HANDS, SINCE THIS IS THE BEST MOMENT FOR IT”. THEN HE ADDRESSED THE PEOPE THERE AND ADDED: “I´M GOING TO DIE SOON, AND GOD KNOWS WELL THAT FOR NO REASON.” I PREDICT SOONER THAN LATER THOSE WHO ARE CONDEMNING US UNJUSTLY WILL BE DIVINELY LIGHTNING STROKEN. I AM GOING TO DIE WITH THIS CONVICTION”. THEN HE TALKED ONCE AGAIN TO HIS EXECUTIONERS TELLING THEM THIS: “NOW FRIENDS, I ASK YOU TO TURN MY HEAD TO NOTRE DAME”. THIS WAS THEIR COMMAND, AND ONCE THE BONFIRE WAS FIRED, DEATH CAME TO HIM SO SWEETLY ALL PEOPLE THERE WERE AMAZED””.

“IN ALL STATES COUNCILS WERE CALLED UP, LIKE THE ONE IN LONDON BUT NOTHING WAS JUSTIFIED AGAINST THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR. THE ORDER WAS DISSOLVED BY THE POPE. IN GERMANY, THE MAINZ COUNCIL WAS CALLED UP AND THE ACCUSED ONES GOT SO DEFINITELY TOGETHER THAT THEIR ATTITUDE FORCED THEIR FREEDOM AND INNOCENCE. HOWEVER, THE DISSOLUTION SENTENCE WAS OBEYED AND MANY KNIGHTS TEMPLAR INTEGRATED INTO THE TEUTONIC ORDER. IN PISA AND RAVENNA COUNCILS THE KNIGHTS TEMPLARS WERE ABSOLVED OF ALL THE CHARGES. IN SPAIN IN RELATION TO THIS SEVERAL COUNCILS TOOK PLACE. KING JAMES II, IN 1307 RECEIVED NEWS FROM KING PHILIP IV OF FRANCE TELLING HIM OF THE ABOLITION OF THE ORDER. ONE OF THE KNIGHTS KNEW OF THE ROYAL REPORT AND THE TEMPLARS DECIDED TO FIGHT BACK AGAINST THEM FROM THEIR FORTRESSES IN CATALONIA, ARAGON AND VALENCIA. HOWEVER, ALL THESE STRONG POSITIONS LIKE PEÑISCOLA, BURRIANA, ARES, COVES AND THE CASTLES OF ARAGON, CASTILE AND CATALONIA WERE FALLING INTO THE KING´S TROOPS POWER. KING JAMES II SEIZED ALL THE TEMPLARS´ PROPERTIES, DESPITE THE OPPOSTION OF THE HOLY HEADQUARTERS, WHICH WANTED TO CONFISCATE THEM FOR THE CHURCH. THE PERSECUTION IN SPAIN AGAINST THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR WAS SO TOUGH AS THE ONE IN FRANCE, AND ALTHOUGH THE TARRAGONA COUNCIL FOUND THEM INNOCENT, THE KING FORBADE THEM MOVE AROUND, WHICH LASTED UNTIL 1331 WHEN POPE JOHN XXII ALLOWED THEM TO ENTER OTHER ORDERS. NOT MUCH IS KNOWN ABOUT THE PROCESS AND SUPRESSION OF THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR IN CASTILLE, EXCEPT FOR THE ARGUMENTS BETWEEN FERDINAND IV, AND THE GREAT MASTER, JACQUES DE MOLAY. AFTER MANY QUESTIONINGS, COMMISSIONS AND PROVINCIAL COUNCILS, THE ONE IN SALAMANCE (1310) STATED THE KNIGHTS OF TEMPLE WERE INNOCENT OF ALL CHARGES. THE SENTENCE WAS ENACTED NOVEMBER 14, 1312 IN TARRAGONA BY ARCHBISHOP GUILLÉN DE ROCABERTI, RAIMUNDO (VALENCIA ARCHBISHOP), MARTIN OF HUESCA (ZARAGOZA), BERENGER OF VICH AND FRANCISCO OF TORTOSA. THE ONE WHO DIDN´T ATTEND IT WAS THE ARCHBISHOP OF LERIDA BECAUSE HE WAS SICK. THAT SAME YEAR THE ORDER WAS DISSOLVED BY THE VIENNA COUNCIL. THEN THE TARRAGONA COUNCIL FREED THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR AND LET THEM LIVE WHERE THEY USED TO AND HAD THEIR PROPERTIES. IN 1320 THE POPE DEMANDED THAT ENGLAND GIVE BACK THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR THEIR PROPERTIES, WHICH DEMONSTRATES THE GREED AND ENVY HAD BEEN THE MAIN REASONS FOR THE FALL OF THE ORDER. THE ORDER WAS DESTROYED MAINLY IN FRANCE, SPAIN AND IN ENGLAND” (THE TEMPLARIOS BY M.G. SALES). 

LET´S IMAGINE THE RULE OF MAESTRE RONCELLIN, “DISCOVERED IN 1780 BY FEDERICO MUNTER, BISHOP OF COPENHAGUE, IN THE VATICAN FILES WAS TRUE. SOME OF THOSE ARE THESE:

1. RULE 5ª: “KNOW THAT GOD MAKES NO DIFFERENCE AMONG ALL MORTALS: CHRISTIANS, SARACENS, JEWS, GREEKS, ROMANS, FRANCS OR BULGARIANS, SINCE EVERYONE WHO PRAYS IS SAVED BY GOD”.

2. RULE 20ª: “SINCE MARY´S AND JOSEPH´S SON WAS A SON FREE OF SIN, AND WAS CRUCIFIED, WE WORSHIP HIM IN GOD; BUT THE WOOD OF THE CROSS IS A BEAST SYMBOL WHICH THE APOCALIPSIS REFERS TO”.

3. RULE 25ª: “SINCE IGNORANCE IS THE ORIGIN OF MANY MISTAKES, NOONE WILL BE ADMITTED AS A KNIGHT OF TEMPLE NOR SHARE THE REVELATION OF THESE RULES, UNLESS HE KNOWS THE 7 LIBERAL ARTS: GRAMMAR, DIALECTICS, RETHORIC, MUSIC, GEOMETRY, ASTRONOMY AND ARITHMETICS”.

4. RULE 29ª: “IF A BROTHER FORGETS ABOUT IT OR REVEALS THE SMALLEST SECRET OF THESE RULES WILL BE PUNISHED ACCORDING TO THE FAULT. IF HE´S INTERROGATED BY THE LAW ON THE USES , LAWS, RULES AND SECRET BUSINESSES OF THE ORDER, HE WILL RESIST SUCH TYRANNY, DENYING AND SWEARING IGNORANCE OF THOSE LAWS” “.

“THE TEMPLE FILES DISAPPEARED AND NOBODY KNOWS WHAT HAPPENED. WHAT DOES THE MAGIC SQUARE HAVE? THE MAGIC SQUARE IS THIS:

 

S A T O R

                                                                  A R E P O

                                                                 T E N E T

                                                                  O P E R A

                                                                  R O T A

 THIS MAGIC SQUARE APPEARS IN MANY MONUMENTS SUCH AS:

1. THE RUINS OF POMPEII.

2. IN SOME LATIN BIBLE FROM THE 8TH CENTURY.

3. IN SOME GREEK MANUSCRIPTS FROM THE 12TH CENTURY.

4. IN OLD AUSTRIAN COINS FROM THE 14TH CENTURY.

5. IN THE CHURCH OF PIAVE, NEAR CREMONA.

6. IN THE CHURCH OF MAGDALENE, IN VERONA.

7. IN THE CHURCH OF ST. LAWRENCE OF ROCHEMAURE OF JARNAC IN FRANCE.

8. IN THE CHURCH OF SANTIAGO DE COMPOSTELA AND IN MANY OTHER BUILDINGS BUILT BY THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR.

MAYBE THIS MAGIC SQUARE IS RELATED TO THE RULE 8ª OF RONCELLIN WHICH SAYS THIS: “THERE WHERE YOU BUILD GREAT BUILDINGS MAKE THE SIGNS IN REMEMBRANCE OF IT”.

M.G. SALES THROWS THE FOLLOWING KEY QUESTIONS:

1. WHAT DO WE MAKE OF TODAY´S NEOTEMPLARS?

2.  WHAT DO WE MAKE OF MARCH 18, 1808 AT ST. PAUL´S CHURHC IN PARIS, WHEN THE CANNON PETER ROMAIN OFFICIATED THE MASS FOR THE REVIVED ORDER?

3. WHAT DO WE MAKE OF QUEEN FABIOLA OF BELGIUM´S BROTHER, MR. JAMES DE MORA Y ARAGON, ACTOR, PIANIST AND HIS BROTHER IN LAW´S SABLIST, KING BALDUINO´S JOINING THE TEMPLAR ORDER IN PARIS (1960)?”.

“THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR THOUGHT AHEAD OF THEIR TIME. THESE ARE SOME OF THE REASONS BEHIND THOSE FUTURISTIC MINDS:

 1. THEY WERE MEMBERS OF A SOCIETY, MUCH BEFORE THE JESUIT ORDER OF IGNATIUS OF LOYOLA.

2. THEY WERE NAVIGATORS BEFORE CRISTOBAL COLON.

3. THEY WERE CONQUERORS BEFORE HERNAN CORTES AND FRANCISCO PIZARRO.

4.THEY WERE BUSINESSMEN BEFORE THE DUX OF VENICE.

5. THEY WERE PACIFISTS, PREACHERS OF RELIGIOUS TOLERANCE BEFORE HENRY IV, THE VERD-GALAN.

6. THEY WERE FEDERALIST POLITICIANS BEFORE CHARLES V.

7. THEY WERE FINANCIERS AND BANKERS BEFORE THE MEDICI” “ (LA REVELACIÓN DE SIÓN BY LYNN PICKNETT AND CLIVE PRINCE).

M.G. SALES TALKS ABOUT THE HUMBLE SENSE OF THE REVOLUTIONARY CONCEPT OF THE TEMPLE ORDER MASTERS AS ANOTHER REASON FOR THE TEMPLAR ORDER´S FALL, AND CERTAINLY WE CAN ALSO SAY THAT STILL TODAY MANY PEOPLE LOOK DOWN ON THIS HUMBLE SENSE OF REVOLUTIONARY CONCEPTS IN GENERAL, DESPITE THE INTRINSIC POWER THAT GOES WITHIN ITSELF DUE TO ITS HUMBLE POWER, SO RARE ANYWHERE WE LOOK AT. INSTEAD OF HUMBLENESS WE OFTEN FIND RAGE, ARROGANCE AND LYING. THIS IS BEEN THE CASE DURING THESE LAST 7 YEARS WHEN WE´VE FOUND OURSELVES WITH RIP-OFFS ALL OVER THE PLACE, FROM THE TOOTHPASTE TUBE WHICH BREAKS ON THE SIDE, TO THE NAIL FILE WHOSE RED COLOR DYES OUR NAILS AND FINGERS RED TO THE MANY CREAMS WHOSE EFFECTS ARE NOTHING BUT BURNING OUR SKIN. WE´VE ALL BEEN THREATENED BY A BIG CHEESE SOMEWHERE. I MYSELF LIKE LEONARDO DA VINCI USE DECODED LANGUAGE BECAUSE I CAN´T GIVE NAMES, AS YOU ALL SURELY HAVE NOTICED BY NOW, RIGHT? NONE OF US CHOSE TO BE HERE BUT WE ARE, AND THE TRUTH IS THAT THESE TIMES ARE NOT GOD´S BUT EVIL´S DOING ITS PART, HURTING AS MANY GOOD PEOPLE AS HE CAN, LYING AS MUCH AS HE CAN, TORTURING HONEST ONES AND MAKING MOST PEOPLE REJECT ANY KIND OF SPIRITUAL LIFE WHATSOVER, OFFERING THEM INSTEAD A WIDE VARIETY OF DISTRACTIONS TO KEEP THEM FAR AWAY FROM GOD, FROM THE TRUTH.

THE FOLLOWING 4 FILMS ARE GREAT EXAMPLES OF GOING AGAINST ALL ODDS IN ORDER TO FIGHT FOR WHAT IS RIGHT, FOR WHAT IS TRUE. IN THE 2016 MOVIE ALLIED DIRECTED BY ROBERT ZEMECKIS WE SEE HOW BRAD PITT, STARRING AS INTELLIGENCE OFFICER MAX VATAN, DOES NOT GET DISTRACTED BY THE FACT THAT HIS WIFE, MARIANNE (MARION COTILLARD) HAD BEEN THREATENED BY GERMAN SPIES TO BE A GERMAN SPY, AND INSTEAD HE, USING HIS EMOTIONAL INTELLIGENCE, TRIES TO FIGHT TO FIND OUT THE TRUTH OF IT ALL AND FINALLY HE KNOWS HER FEELINGS FOR HIM HAD ALWAYS BEEN GENUINE, AND THAT SHE REALLY LOVES HIM. THEY BOTH FIGHT TO THE VERY END DESPITE THEIR COMPLICATED LIVES. THE LOVE MAX FEELS FOR MARIANNE IS THE LOVE GOD FEELS FOR US, NEVER GIVING IT UP, ALWAYS FIGHTING FOR THE TRUTH, FOR THE PURE LOVE THEY FEEL DESPITE THE REST.

ANOTHER AWSOME FILM HACKSAW RIDGE DIRECTED BY MEL GIBSON IS ABOUT THIS 2ND WORLD WAR MEDIC HERO, DESMOND DOSS (STARRING ANDREW GARFIELD), WHO REFUSED TO KILL BEING THE FIRST CONSCIENTIOUS OBJECTOR IN THE OKINAWA BATTLE, AND BEING REMEMBERED FOR THE MANY LIVES HE SAVED. HE EVEN SAVED JAPANESE LIVES ON THE HIGH SUMMIT OF THE JAPANESE ISLAND. HE RISKED HIS LIFE AND EVEN THOUGH HE WAS WOUNDED IN THE LEGS HE WENT ON SAVING LIVES. DESMOND´S STRONG FAITH AND BRAVERY IS A REMINDER FOR ALL OF US TO LOVE, LOVE AND LOVE ALL THE TIME AND ALL THE WAY. THE MESSAGE WITHIN THIS FILM IS ONCE AGAIN ONE OF LOVE, LOVE BEYOND UNDERSTANDING, LIKE GOD´S LOVE FOR US, AND THAT´S WHAT WE ARE HERE FOR, NOTHING MORE AND NOTHING LESS. YES! THE WONDERFUL ACTOR ANDREW GARFIELD PLAYING THE ROLE OF DESMOND DOSS REMINDS US OF THE ROLE THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR PLAYED FIGHTING TO SAVE THE ARK, THE TRUTH, IN THIS CASE LIVES. EACH LIFE SAVED IS TRUTH ITSELF.

IN THE 2016 ACTION THRILLER JACK REACHER: NEVER GO BACK DIRECTED BY EDWARD ZWICK, STARRING TOM CRUISE, WE  SEE HOW JACK REACHER LEFT THE ARMED FORCES BECAUSE HE SAW THE CORRUPTION INSIDE THE BODY HE BELONGED TO, AND HIS ETHICAL CODE COULDN´T BEAR SUCH SHOW AND IMMORALITY. HE FINDS OUT ONE OF HIS COLLEAGUES, MAJOR TURNER (STARRING COBIE SMULDERS) HAS BEEN FRAMED, AND THAT THE GENERAL OF THE ARMY TROOPS WAS BRIBED TO BE PART OF CORRUPT PRACTICES – SUCH AS RESELLING SEIZED WEAPONS TO INSURGENTS AND SMUGGLING DRUGS TO THE USA – AND WANTS TO KILL MAJOR TURNER BECAUSE SHE WANTS TO RESEARCH ON THE DEATH OF TWO SOLDIERS IN AFGHANISTAN – HAVING BEEN TURNER´S COLLEAGUES KILLED BY ONE OF THEIR BRIBED COLLEAGUES. AT THE END THE TRUTH IS DISCOVERED AND J. REACHER AND MAJOR TURNER MANAGED TO REPORT AGAINST THE GENERAL AS THE GREATEST INSTIGATOR IN THEIR REGULAR IMMORAL WEAPON CAMPAIGN.

THE LAST BUT NOT LEAST IS THE 2016 MOVIE PATERSON DIRECTED BY JIM JARMUSCH AND STARRING ADAM DRIVER AS PATERSON. THIS FILM SHOWS US A REAL PERSON FULL OF PERSONALITY AND SENSITIVITY. HIS POEMS SHOW THE REAL ESSENCE OF THAT GENUINE MAN HE IS. SOMETIMES SOCIETY AND THE SYSTEM MAKES SOMEONE DENY WHAT HE IS REALLY, AND THAT IS WHAT HAPPENS TO PATERSON BECAUSE HE DENIES BEING A POET DESPITE THE FACT HE WRITES POEMS. HIS WIFE AND A MYSTERIOUS JAPANESE MAN KNOW HE IS A POET AND TELL HIM SO. POETRY AND SENSITIVITY GO HAND IN HAND, AND IN MANY CASES WITH AN INTENSE SPIRITUAL WORLD. THIS LIFE, THIS SYSTEM IS PUSHING TOO MANY PEOPLE AWAY FROM GOD, KNOWING AS MANY OF THOSE KNOW THAT INSIDE THEMSELVES THERE IS A VOICE OF GOD TALKING TO THEM EVERY DAY, AND YET VERY FEW LISTEN TO THAT VOICE, IGNORING IT IN MOST CASES. IT TAKES COURAGE, IT TAKES THE LOVE OF GOD, OF THE ONES WHO FOLLOW GOD THROUGH THICK AND THIN TO ENCOURAGE EACH OTHER, SHOWING EACH OTHER THROUGH OUR DAILY ACTS THAT DOING THE RIGHT THING IS THE ONLY WAY EVEN THOUGH THE SYSTEM TELLS US IT´S NOT, LIKE IT HAPPENED TO DESMOND DESS. WHAT A 20TH CENTURY KNIGHT TEMPLAR HE WAS!

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

SPIRITUAL ENGINEERING!

WE LIVE IN A SOCIETY WHERE DIFFERENT KINDS OF PRESSURES STOP HUMAN BEINGS FROM BEING THEIR OWN, FROM EXPRESSING THEIR OPINION FREELY BECAUSE THEY ARE AFRAID OF WHAT OTHERS MIGHT THINK OF THEM, AND EVEN DREAD  LOSING THE RESPECT THEY ALREADY HAVE. LEWIS SPENCE (1874-1955) – SCOTTISH JOURNALIST AND OCCULT SCHOLAR – IS AN EXAMPLE OF THIS PRESSURE WHICH STOPPED HIM FROM EXPRESSING HIMSELF THE WAY HE WANTED. HE REALIZED IF HE CONFESSED OPENLY SOME KEY SACRED KNOWLEDGE HIS EDINBURGH SENSIBLE AND TRUSTWORTHY REPUTATION WOULD BE COMPROMISED. THEREFORE, L. SPENCE DECIDED NOT TO CONFESS OPENLY THE CONCLUSIONS ON THE QUALITY OF LIFE PEOPLE HAD AT THE TIME OF THE ADVANCED PREHISTORIC LOST CIVILIZATIONS, THAT IS  AROUND 11,OOO YEARS AGO. HE EVEN CATEGORICALLY REFUSED TO SPEAK AGAIN ABOUT THIS QUESTION. WE ARE SO EAGER TO REVIVE THE TRUTH OF THIS WHOLE QUESTION WE ARE GOING TO GIVE LEWIS SPENCE A HAND HIGHLIGHTING THE KEY POINTS TO OUR LIVES.

“HAROLD BAYLEY IN ARCHAIC ENGLAND MENTIONS THE DESCRIPTIONS MADE BY THE FIRST TRAVELLERS WHO VISITED AFRICA, AND SAYS ALL OVER THIS CONTINENT THERE WERE VAST EXISTING TUNNELS, SO WIDE CARAVANS COULD TRAVEL ALONG THEM. HE ALSO MENTIONS HUGE UNDERGROUND SYSTEMS OF CAVERNS AND PASSAGES THAT EXISTED IN ANCIENT TIMES IN GREAT BRITAIN. MANY OF THEM WERE POINTED OUT BY THE REVEREND SABINE BARING-GOULD, WHO IN HIS BOOK CLIFF CASTLES AND CAVE DWELLINGS OF EUROPE REFERS TO THE INEXPLICABLE CATACOMBS DISCOVERED UNDER THE WOODS OF THE NORTHWEST OF FRANCE. IRELAND IS FULL OF UNDERGROUND ROOMS AND GALLERIES, WHOSE ENTRANCES WERE DISCOVERED INSIDE THE EMBANKMENTS WHICH SURROUND THE RATHS (“STRONG CIRCULAR EARTHEN WALLS FORMING AN ENCLOSURE AND SERVING AS A FORT AND RESIDENCE FOR A TRIBAL CHIEF”. IRISH ORIGIN. ENGLISH OXFORD LIVING DICTIONARIES) ON THE TOP OF MOST HILLS. THE LOCAL INHABITANTS ASSURE THE FOLLOWING:

1.THOSE EXCAVATIONS WERE EVEN BIGGER IN EARLIER TIMES ,

2.AND THE SECRET TUNNELS BETWEEN THE RATHS, THE CHURCHES AND THE OLD HOUSES MADE UP AN UNDERGROUND COMPLEX, WHICH ALWAYS MET THE DESIGN OF THE OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS.

THE LOCATION OF SUCH STRUCTURES SEEMS TO BE RELATED TO THE LEGEND, WHICH WAS REPEATED BY THE FIRST HISTORIANS OVER AND OVER AGAIN, OF A MAGIC WAR BETWEEN TWO RACES. THE VICTORIOUS GROUP, AFTER ACCEPTING THE EQUAL DISTRIBUTION OF THE COUNTRY BETWEEN BOTH, AGREED ON BEING DIVIDED HORIZONTALLY SENDING HIS RIVAL INTO EXILE TO THE UNDERGROUND WORLD, WHEREAS THE VICTORIOUS ONE OCCUPIED THE SURFACE OF THE EARTH.”( NUEVA VISIÓN SOBRE LA ATLANTIDA BY JOHN MICHELL)

LET´S IMAGINE ALL THOSE TUNNELS, CAVERNS AND GALLERIES WERE REPLICAS OF THE ONES WHICH AN ADVANCED PREHISTORIC CIVILIZATION ONCE HAD, HOSTING DRUIDS WHO HAD KEY SACRED KNOWLEDGE. “THE OLDEST WRITING OF ATLANTIS COMES FROM THE GREEK PHILOSOPHER PLATO, ONE OF THE FOUNDERS OF THE EASTERN RATIONAL THINKING, WHO INSISTED ON THE IDEA THAT EVERYTHING WE HEARD ABOUT  ATLANTIS WAS A TRUE STORY, NOT FICTION. HE STARTED WRITING AT THE BEGINNING OF THE 4TH CENTURY B.C. AND SAID THE SOURCE OF HIS STORY HAD BEEN AN EGYPTIAN PRIEST, WHO TOLD HIM ABOUT THE REPEATED DESTRUCTION OF FLOODED CIVILIZATIONS:

“THERE WAS AN ISLAND, ATLANTIS, WHICH WAS AS BIG AS LIBIA AND ASIA TOGETHER, AND A WONDERFUL AND BIG ALLIANCE OF KINGS HAD APPEARED. THAT DYNASTY OF KINGS WAS LOADED AND MOST THINGS THEY NEEDED WERE PROVIDED BY THE ISLAND ITSELF –  INSTEAD OF  USING OTHER MEANS LIKE IMPORTATION -, FOR EXAMPLE MINING, WHICH SUPPLIED THEM WITH ONE OF THE MOST VALUABLE METALS AT THAT TIME. ELEPHANTS WERE VERY NUMEROUS ON THE ISLAND, AND BOTH ELEPHANTS AND THE REST OF THE ANIMALS HAD PLENTY OF FOOD TO EAT THERE. THE ISLAND PRODUCED ALL THESE BEAUTIFUL AND ADMIRABLE THINGS LIMITLESS. THIS PARADISE CAME TO AN END BECAUSE ITS CORRUPT INHABITANTS WERE PUNISHED. THEIR BAD ACTS AND MATERIALISTIC PRIDE PAVED THE WAY FOR EARTHQUAKES AND HIGH TIDES OF EXTRAORDINARY VIOLENCE, AND ALL OF A SUDDEN IN LESS THAN 24 HOURS THE ISLAND OF ATLANTIS WAS SWALLOWED BY THE SEA AND DISAPPEARED.” 

“THEREFORE, PLATO, BY MEANS OF THESE FACTS, LAID THE FOUNDATIONS AND WROTE ABOUT SOMETHING WHICH HAPPENED SOMEWHERE IN THE WORLD A LONG TIME AGO. PLATO ALSO SAID THE MEMORY OF THIS EVENT HAD BEEN PRESERVED BY THE EGYPTIAN PRIESTS AND RECORDED IN THEIR WRITINGS. READING SOME LEGENDS, FOR EXAMPLE THE ONE OF THE SUMERIAN PEOPLE (“THE FIRST URBAN CIVILIZATION IN SOUTHERN MESOPOTAMIA, MODERN-DAY SOUTHERN IRAQ TOOK FORM IN THE 4TH MILLENNIUM BC”. WIKIPEDIA) WE SEE THEY HAD MAINTAINED THE MEMORY OF A FLOOD WHICH HAD DESTROYED A PROSPEROUS, POWERFUL, BIG SOCIETY”. LET´S IMAGINE EGYPT AND SUMERIAN CIVILIZATIONS COME FROM ATLANTIS. LET´S IMAGINE ATLANTIS WAS “AN EQUIDISTANT POINT BETWEEN THE DELTA OF THE NILE AND THE LOWER EUFRATES, MAYBE IN A DISAPPEARED ARCHIPELAGO SIMILAR TO THE ONE IN MALDIVES. PLATO MENTIONED IN ATLANTIS THERE WERE ELEPHANTS AND CREATURES WHO HAD LIVED FOR THOUSANDS OF YEARS EXCLUSIVELY IN AFRICA, INDIA AND SOUTHEAST ASIA.” LET IMAGINE THAT TECHNOLOGICALLY ADVANCED SOCIETY WAS “FLOODED AND DESTROYED IN THE MIDDLE OF THE 4000 B.C. LET´S IMAGINE IT WAS A MARITIME SOCIETY AND THERE WERE SURVIVORS AND SOME TRAVELLED TO EGYPT AND MESOPOTAMIA, AND THEIR GOAL WAS TO CIVILIZE THE PRIMITIVE PEOPLE THEY MET”. LET´S IMAGINE EGYPT WAS HOME OF SACRED SCIENCE PRIESTLY TRADITIONS “WHICH MOSES WAS IN CONTACT WITH SINCE AN EARLY AGE. THIS SACRED KNOWLEDGE SEEMS TO HAVE ENABLE THOSE AUTHENTIC PRIESTS BACK THEN TO HAVE BUILT FORMIDABLE AND IMPRESSIVE BUILDINGS, WHEN THE NECESSARY TECHNOLOGY TO DO SO WAS TOTALLY INEXISTENT”. LET´S IMAGINE AN ANCIENT POWERFUL KNOWLEDGE EXISTED A LONG TIME AGO “FROM A REMOTE AND DISAPPEARED CULTURE. THEREFORE THEIR PRINCIPLES BEHIND THEIR MACHINES´ OPERATING WAYS, IN SUCH ARCHAIC TIMES, ARE SURELY UNKNOWN TO US TODAY.” “  (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA.SÍMBOLO Y SEÑAL BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

“THE KEY TO THE TELLURIC FORCES OF ALL THE OLD MONUMENTS  SHOWS US THE MYSTERIES OF THE MEGALITHIC SCIENCE CONTROLLED BY AN ARCHAIC CIVILIZATION WHICH PLATO CALLED ATLANTIS. MANY OLD STONE MONUMENTS AND ARTIFICIAL MOUNDS AROUND THE WHOLE EARTH WERE INSTRUMENTS OF A SCIENCE USED BY THE ARCHAIC CIVILIZATION ATLANTIS. THE MOST IMPORTANT DISCOVERY IS THE ONE OF THE “LEY LINES”, THE MYSTERIOUS NET OF STRAIGHT LINES WHICH JOIN THE OLD VESTIGES OF GREAT BRITAIN, AND WHICH HAVE THEIR COUNTERPART IN CHINA, AUSTRALIA, SOUTH AMERICA AND MANY OTHER PLACES. THE KEYS TO THE NATURE OF PREHISTORIC SCIENCE, BY MEANS OF ARCHEOLOGY, ASTRONOMY, GEOLOGY AND OTHER DISCIPLINES CONFIRM THE SACRED SITES WERE NATURAL MAGIC CENTERS USED BY THE DRUIDS AND OTHER FOLLOWERS IN POSSESSION OF THAT KNOWLEDGE – WHICH WAS LOST – DID SO. TODAY´S RESEARCH HEADS FOR THE REDISCOVERY OF A PRINCIPLE ABLE TO REVOLUTIONIZE THE CONCEPT WE HAVE OF OUR PLANET.”

THERE ARE MANY PLACES WHERE WE STILL CAN SEE MANY REGULAR GEOMETRIC LINES AROUND THE DIVISIONS OF GROWING FIELDS, PATHS AND BORDERS STILL PRESENT TODAY. “NOWADAYS WE HAVE AERIAL PANORAMIC PHOTOGRAPHS OF A GREAT PART OF GREAT BRITAIN, AND EVERYONE IS SURPRISED AT THE MANY REGULAR GEOMETRIC LINES AROUND THOSE FIELDS. THIS SPIRITUAL ENGINEERING IS NOT EASY TO UNDERSTAND FOR US “RIGHT AFTER CHRISMAS IN 1648, JOHN AUBREY WAS RIDING HIS HORSE THROUGH THE VILLAGE AVEBURY IN WILTSHIRE, AND DISCOVERED A PREHISTORIC TEMPLE, ONE OF THE BIGGEST ONES BUILT IN EUROPE, AND ONE WHICH HAD PASSED UNNOTICED UP TO THAT DAY. WILLIAM STUKELEY (18TH CENTURY), A LEARNED PERSON AND AN EXPERT IN THE BIBLE,  WITNESSED ALL HOPE ABANDONED HOW MEN LIKE “STONE-KILLER” ROBINSON – A BRUTAL FARMER – ORGANIZED THE DESTRUCTION OF MANY PARTS OF THE MONUMENT IN AVEBURY. THE GIGANTIC SNAKE WAS PARTLY REMOVED, AND TODAY IT´S IMPOSSIBLE TO CONFIRM MANY DETAILS OF STUKELEY´S BLUEPRINTS. STUKELEY, WIDELY FAMILIARISED WITH THE ANCIENT LITERATURE THANKS TO HIS LATIN, GREEK AND HEBREW STUDIES, CONSIDERED AVEBURY TO BE THE MONUMENT OF A TRUE OLD FAITH, A SACRED CITADEL IN GREAT BRITAIN. THE TRADITION FROM WHICH STUKELEY DREW THE CONCLUSIONS COINCIDE WITH THE FIRST PERIOD OF THE HUMAN ILLUSTRATION, A TRADITION BASED ON A CONSTANT RENEWED AND CODIFIED REVELATION THROUGHOUT TIME BY THE PHYLOSOPHICAL SCHOOLS ALL OVER THE WORLD. HE ENLIGHTENED THE WORK OF PYTHAGORAS´ AND PLATO´S FOLLOWERS,  OF TRANSCENDENTAL MEDIEVAL MAGICIANS, AND WAS PRESERVED MAINLY BY THE HEBREW CABALISTS AND THE GNOSTICS OF THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH. SUCH TRADITION, PRESERVED ZEALOUSLY BY THE MASONS AND OTHER SECRETIVE GROUPS CONSISTS OF A METHOD WHICH ALLOWS US TO REACH A CERTAIN INCOMMUNICABLE KNOWLEDGE. THIS KNOWLEDGE CAN BE REACHED THANKS TO A COURSE OF PREPARATORY STUDIES FOR THOSE MOMENTS OF INDUCED PERCEPTIONS, WHERE THE HIDDEN UNIVERSE APPEARS CLEAR IN OUR INNER MIND. THIS WAY, THROUGH THE ARTS OF GEOMETRY AND MUSIC, OF ITS SYNTHESIS IN NUMERIC RELATIONS AND THEIR FURTHER APPLICATION TO PROPORTION, POETRY AND SACRED HISTORY, ONE CAN BREAK UP THE OBSTACLES OF TIME AND ACQUIRE A CERTAIN VISION OF PAST AND FUTURE EVENTS.” WILLIAM STUKELEY MEASURED THE STONES IN STONEHENGE AND AVEBURY AND REGISTERED THE SCENES ON HIS BEAUTIFUL DRAWINGS:

img_1255 .

ONE OF THOSE  SHOWS US HOW A BIG STONE FROM A CIRCLE IN AVEBURY WAS SURROUNDED BY LOGS BURNING, AFTER HAVING DUGGED A DITCH AROUND IT, WAITING FOR THE COLD WATER STREAM AND THE BLOW WHICH WOULD BREAK IT IN TWO. WE SEE IN THE DRAWING HOW THE SMOKE MAKES OVER THE BIG STONE SPIRALS AND SILHOUETTES OF DRAGONS, THE SAME DRAGONS OR SERPENTS WHICH STUKELEY SAW ALL OVER GREAT BRITAIN:img_1256.

FROM THE SCOTTISH ISLANDS TO THE PLAINS OF WESSEX IN THE SOUTH DRUIDS MARKED THE COUNTRY WITH THE SIGN OF THE SNAKE AND THE WINGED DISC. STUKELEY PERCEIVED ALL THIS AS A SACRED DESIGN WHERE THE ETERNAL SYMBOLS OF A TRUE FAITH WERE MARKED:

  fullsizerender

img_1254

IN HIS BOOK ON AVEBURY, WILLIAM STUKELEY DESCRIBES THE HUGE SCALE ON WHICH DRUIDS ADJUSTED THE LANDSCAPE TO A SACRED GUIDELINE: “OUR ANCESTORS BUILT HUGE TEMPLES, WITH COLONNADES OF HUGE PILLARS, LIKE A SMALL WOOD IN ORDER TO SYMBOLIZE HEAVEN. BRITISH DRUIDS MANAGED TO MAKE PLAINS, HILLS, SPRINGS AND RIVERS CONTRIBUTE TOWARDS A 3-MILE-LONG TEMPLE. THEY ENGRAVED THEIR SACRED FINGERPRINTS, SO PERMANENTLY THAT AVEBURY REMAINED STILL INTACT UNTIL SOME YEARS AGO, AT THE BEGINNING OF THIS CENTURY. THERE ARE STILL ENOUGH VESTIGES TO GET THE IDEA OF THE WHOLE THING”. THE DISCOVERIES OF STUKELEY MEANT JOHN AUBREY HAD ALREADY OPENED PEOPLE´S EYES ON THE EXISTING OLD VESTIGES IN ENGLAND. STUKELEY GAVE A PASSIONATE INTERPRETATION OF IT WHICH WAS FULLY ACCEPTED BY HIS CONTEMPORARIES, POETS AND SCHOLARS. WILLIAM BLAKE CAPTURED THE SECRET OF THE LANDSCAPE GIANTS. BLAKE IN HIS PREFACE TO AVEBURY BY STUKELEY SAID THIS: “AFTER READING AVEBURY BY STUKELEY WE CAN CONCLUDE THE TRUE RELIGION MOST PEOPLE PROFESSED, – THOSE WHO INHABITED THE EARTH RIGHT AFTER THE FLOOD – SURVIVED IN OUR ISLAND, GREAT BRITAIN, AND IT WAS THE BEST REFORM TO PUT AN END TO EVERYTHING THAT WAS UNIVERSALLY DAMAGING CHRISTIANISM. JEWS ENJOY HERE A MORE FAVORABLE SITUATION THAN IN ANY OTHER PLACE, AND IT´S PROBABLY HERE WHERE THE CONVERSION, TO WHICH THEY´RE DESTINED, WILL TAKE PLACE.”

“IN 1929, A YOUNG PAINTER, KATHRYN MALTWOOD IN HER BOOK A GUIDE TO GLASTONBURY´S TEMPLE OF THE STARS DESCRIBED AND ILLUSTRATED HER DISCOVERY OF A GROUP OF HUGE FIGURES IN SOMERSET, BETWEEN THE TOR OF GLASTONBURY AND THE HILL OF CADBURY, WHICH REPRESENTED THE ZODIAC SIGNS. IN HER BOOK THE HIGH HISTORY OF THE HOLY GRIAL COMES TO THE CONCLUSION THE MONKS OF GLASTONBURY ABBEY HAD INHERITED THE KNOWLEDGE OF THE LEGENDS OF THE FIGURES, AND OF THE SEARCH OF THE HOLY GRIAL. SHE STATED THE WHOLE AREA OF GLASTONBURY HAD BEEN MARKED IN ANCIENT TIMES WITH THE SYMBOLS OF THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN.”

“AT THE SAME TIME K. MALTWOOD WAS WRITING ABOUT HER DISCOVERIES IN SOMERSET, ALFRED WATKINS, MEMBER OF THE WOOLHOPE CLUB IN HEREFORD, WAS INVESTIGATING THE RELEVANT DISCOVERY OF GLASTONBURY BEING COVERED WITH A NET OF STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS, JOINING THE CENTERS AND THE VESTIGES OF ANCIENT TIMES. A. WATKINS WAS A VERY WELL-KNOWN AND RESPECTED BUSINESMAN IN HIS COUNTY. HIS SON, ALLEN WATKINS, IN THE EASY READ BIOGRAPHY HE DEDICATES TO HIS FATHER TELLS US ABOUT THE IMPORTANT VISION HIS FATHER HAD:

“JUNE 20, 1921, MY FATHER GOT TO SEE ALL OF A SUDDEN AN ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKWAY, JOINING THE LANDSCAPE HE WAS AT AND AN ANCIENT BRITISH PREHISTORIC TIME AND ITS SACRED ANCIENT VESTIGES”. WHEN ALFRED WATKINS HAD THAT CRITICAL INSTANT OF CLAIRVOYANCE – WHEN HE SAW THE NET OF ANCIENT TRACKWAYS ALL OVER THE PLAINS AND HILLS – THAT´S EXACTLY WHEN HE KNEW ALL THE SURFACE OF THE EARTH WAS BATHED BY A MAGNETIC CURRENT ENERGY. THIS NATURAL TERRESTRIAL MAGNETISM PROVIDED THAT ADVANCED CIVILIZATION WITH AN IMPORTANT SOURCE OF ENERY AND INSPIRATION. THE PRECISION OF THE TRACKWAYS AND THE WAY IN WHICH THE SACRED AND LEGENDARY POINTS OF THE LANDSCAPE ARE HIGHLIGHTED MAKE US COME TO THE CONCLUSION THE CONSTRUCTION OF THOSE TRACKWAYS MUST HAVE BEEN SUPERVISED BY AN ANCIENT GROUP OF PEOPLE WHO WAS IN POSSESSION OF A DEEP UNDERSTANDING OF THE HIDDEN NATURE OF THE COUNTRY. SEVERAL WRITERS REFERRED TO THE MANY PRECISE STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS AS WAYS TO HELP US ALL LOCALIZE CHURCHES AND SACRED PLACES, SPREAD ALL OVER GREAT BRITAIN. SOME OF THE MANY ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS WERE THESE:

1. 8 STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS CROSSED AT THE OLD CHURCH OF WOOBURN, IN BUCKINGHAMSHIRE.

2. OTHERS IN THE CHURCH OF ST. MICHAEL OF HONITON, IN BRENTOR, WEST DARTMOOR, AND IN CHURCHINGFORD, ON THE LIMITS OF DEVON AND SOMERSET. IN SOME CASES, CONCENTRIC CIRCLES DRAWN AROUND THOSE POINTS REVEALED A CERTAIN NUMBER OF EQUIDISTANT SITES OF VERTICAL STONES, HEADING FOR THE TOP OF THE HILLS, FORMED ALMOST PERFECT TRACKWAYS. IN 1939, MAYOR F.C. TYLER IN THE GEOMETRICAL ARRANGEMENT OF ANCIENT SITES STATED THESE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS WERE PART OF A SACRED GEOMETRICAL DESIGN SET UP IN A REMOTE TIME WITH A SACRED PURPOSE.” “

“BEFORE K. MALTWOOD, IN 1580, THE FAMOUS SCHOLAR AND MAGICIAN-DOCTOR DEE DISCOVERED MERLIN´S SECRET IN THE PLAINS OF GLASTONBURY, AND STATED THE PREHISTORIC EMBANKMENTS IN GLASTONBURY HAD BEEN CAREFULLY PLANNED TO REPRESENT THE ZODIAC SIGNS AND THE STARS. “

 ALFRED WATKINS NOTICED SOME ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKWAYS HAD BEEN TRACED TO POINT AN EXTREME POSITION OF THE SUN OR OF THE MOON. TYLER CONFIRMED THAT OPINION AND HIGHLIGHTED THE RELEVANT INFORMATION GIVEN BY DOCTOR HEINSCH IN AN INTERNATIONAL CONGRESS CALLED PRINCIPLES OF THE PREHISTORIC CULTURAL GEOGRAPHY IN AMSTERDAM IN 1938. DOCTOR HEINSCH SPOKE ABOUT A FORGOTTEN MAGICAL PRINCIPLE, WHICH SERVED TO DETERMINE THE LOCATION OF REMOTE SACRED PLACES. THESE WERE LOCATED OVER THE LINES OF BIG GEOMETRICAL FIGURES, BUILT IN TURN  RELATIVE TO THE POSITIONS OF THE CELESTIAL BODIES. DOCTOR HEINSCH PRESENTED EXAMPLES OF THIS PRACTICE ALL OVER EUROPE AND MIDDLE EAST, FROM STONEHENGE TO CHARTRES AND OTHER SACRED PLACES, AS WELL AS THE EVIDENCE OF THEIR SURVIVAL IN THE CHRISTIAN AND PRIMITIVE MUSLIM CHURCHES. DR. HEINSCH ARRIVED AT THE CONCLUSION THIS VAST SCALE AND PRECISE CONSTRUCTION WAS ENOUGH EVIDENCE FOR US TO ADMIT A UNIVERSAL CIVILIZATION EXISTED IN THE PAST, AND THAT IT WAS IN POSSESSION OF AN ADVANCED KNOWLEDGE OF SCIENCEBISHOP BROWNE (ABERDEENSHIRE, SCOTLAND),img_1265

STUDIED SUCH MONUMENTS AND FOUND OUT THE BIGGEST OF ALL STONE PILLARS WAS MARKED ON ONE OF ITS SIDES WITH CIRCLES AND HOLLOWS ENGRAVED ON IT. THESE MARKS WERE SET UP PRECISELY AS THE SEVERAL CONSTELLATIONS OF CELESTIAL BODIES.”

“ACCORDING TO ARQUEOLOGICAL EXCAVATIONS MANY OF THE SO CALLED “ROMAN ROADS” WERE INDEED PREHISTORIC ROUTES WHICH ROMANS REPAIRED COVERING ITS PAVEMENTS. THE STRAIGHT TRACKS OF GREAT BRITAIN MUST HAVE SURVIVED AT LEAST 1,500 YEARS AT THE TIME OF THE ROMAN INVASION. SUCH STRAIGHT TRACKS LOOKED VERY SIMILAR TO THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS, WHICH ENDED UP IN A STONE CIRCLE. HOWEVER, MAJOR ROMAN TRACKS DID NEVER ADAPT TO THOSE STRAIGHT TRACKS FULL-LENGTH. ROMANS TOOK ADVANTAGE OF SOME ISOLATED AREAS OF THE TRACKS. THE SECRET OF THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS MUST HAVE GOT LOST MANY CENTURIES BEFORE THE ROMAN INVASION. CELTIC DRUIDS PROBABLY DIDN´T GET TO EVER UNDERSTAND FULLY SUCH SYSTEM OF THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS WHICH THEY HAD INHERITED. CELTIC LEGENDS ARE FULL OF REFERENCES TO THE GREAT MEN OF THE PAST, WHOSE WORKS HAD BEEN DESTROYED. KING ARTHUR AND HIS FOLLOWERS WALKED ALONG MANY OF THE OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS, BUT THEY NEVER GOT TO REACH ALL THE PLACES WHERE THE DRUIDS UNDOUBTEDLY SAW THE RUINS OF A LOST CIVILIZATION. THE ROMANS WEREN´T VERY MUCH SURPRISED WHEN THEY FOUND THIS ANCIENT SYSTEM OF ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS SINCE THEY HAD FOLLOWED THOSE TRACKS EVERYWHERE THEY CONQUERED (ALL OVER EUROPE, NORTH AFRICA, CRETE, BABYLON AND NÍNIVE). AS THEY HAD ALREADY SEEN SUCH SYSTEM, AND HAD IGNORED THE SACRED KNOWLEDGE BEHIND IT, THE ROMAN USED THE TRACKS FOR MILITARY AND MERCHANDISING PURPOSES”. THEREFORE, THE SET OF ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS WHOSE GOAL WAS SUBLIME AND SPIRITUAL TURNED OUT TO BE A HIGHWAY OF MILITAR AND MERCHANDISING POWER ONCE THE ROMANS FOUND THEM. “IN THE 12TH CENTURY GEOFFREY DE MONMOUTH STATED THE CONSTRUCTION OF SUCH ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS OF GREAT BRITAIN TOOK PLACE DURING THE REIGN OF THE LEGENDARY KING BELINUS, WHO ACCORDING TO GEOFFREY: “ CALLED  ALL THE WORKERS OF THE ISLAND AND ORDERED TO BUILD A PATH BY MEANS OF STONE AND MORTAR. SUCH PATH HAD TO EXTEND TO THE WHOLE LENGTH OF THE ISLE, AND HAD TO GO STRAIGHT JOINING TOWNS TO ONE ANOTHER, ALONG THE WHOLE PATH”. SO FINALLY ONE TRACK GOING THROUGH THE WHOLE COUNTRY WAS BUILT, ANOTHER TWO DIAGONALLY IN SUCH A WAY THEY CROSSED EACH OTHER IN THE CENTER. SUCH TRACKS WERE SACRED PLACES.”

SIR JOHN RHYS, A STUDIED PERSON ON CELTIC SUBJECTS, WROTE THE TALES MABINOGION, WHERE HE HIGHLIGHTS THE KEY IDEA THAT EACH ACT, EACH TRIP, EACH MIGRATION WAS CARRIED OUT ACCORDING TO GOD´S WILL, REVEALED THANKS TO A FORGOTTEN SYSTEM, BY MEANS OF AN ASTROLOGICAL INTERPRETATION OF THE SKY.”

“IN 1967, ALEXANDER THOM, SCOTTISH PROFESSOR OF ENGINEERING SPENT MANY YEARS OF HIS LIFE VISITING THE MOST REMOTE PLACES OF GREAT BRITAIN, AND SUPERVISING A GREAT NUMBER OF THE APPROXIMATE 500 STONE CIRCLES STILL EXISTENT, AS HIS BOOK MEGALITHIC SITES IN BRITAIN SHOWS. ALEXANDER THOM DISCOVERED IN ALL CASES, THE DISPOSITION OF THE STONES FITS A GEOMETRIC FIGURE PRECISELY TRACED AND DONE.

“MOST OLD CHURCHES BUILT IN GREAT BRITAIN ARE LOCATED ON THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS, THAT IS, ON PREHISTORIC SACRED CENTERS, UNLIKE TODAY´S CHURCHES, IN GREAT BRITAIN AND ALL OVER THE WORLD, ARE SIMPLY EMPTY ROOMS SINCE THEIR LOCATIONS HAVE NOTHING TO DO WITH SACRED AREAS.” HOW DID THE PREHISTORIC CIVILIZATION KNOW WHICH PLACE WAS A SACRED ONE OR NOT IN ORDER TO CHOOSE IT AS THE PERFECT LOCATION FOR A SPECIFIC CHURCH? THE WAYS WERE DIVERSE AND SOME OF THOSE ARE THE FOLLOWING:

1. BY MEANS OF VISIONS AND ADIVINATORY DREAMS WHICH SOME CHOSEN HUMAN BEINGS HAD. THOSE CHOSEN ONES SAW THE PLACE WHERE THE CHURCH HAD TO BE BUILT IN THEIR VISIONS.

1.1. “SAINT BRANOCK DREAMT HE HAD TO BUILD HIS CHURCH AT THE EXACT PLACE WHEREVER HE SAW A WILD FEMALE PIG WHITH HER FARROW. SO THE FOLLOWING DAY AFTER HIS DREAM HE WENT OUT INTO THE COUNTRYSIDE AND FOUND THE PIG IN THE PLACE WHERE THE CHURCH OF BRAUNTON (DEVONSHIRE) IS TODAY.

1.2. ANOTHER EXAMPLE IS THE CATHEDRAL OF DURHAM´S LOCATION WHICH WAS CHOSEN BY MEANS OF A DREAM. THE MONKS OF LINDISFARNE, EXPELLED FROM THEIR ISLAND BY HOSTILE THIEVES, WANDERED AROUND NORTH OF ENGLAND, CARRYING THE CORPSE OF THEIR FOUNDER, ST. CUTHBERT. ONE NIGHT, THE ABBOT HAD A VISION WHERE ST. CUTHBERT APPEARED TO HIM AND ORDERED HIM TO BUILD A SANCTUARY IN THE ISLE OF DUNHOLME. NOBODY HAD HEARD OF THAT ISLAND BEFORE, UNTIL ONE DAY A MONK BY CHANCE HEARD A WOMAN FROM THE AREA TALK OF A COW WHICH GOT LOST ON ITS WAY TO DUNHOLME. THE ISLE HAPPENED TO BE A CLIFF SUSPENDED OVER THE RIVER WEAR, AND THAT´S WHERE THE CHURCH WAS BUILT. FOR MANY YEARS THE INCORRUPT CORPSE OF ST. CUTHBERT ATTRACTED MANY PILGRIMS FROM MANY PLACES ALL OVER NORTH OF ENGLAND TO THAT CHURCH.

2. BY MEANS OF INSPIRATIONS.

2.1. THE CHURCH OF WREXHAM WAS STARTED TO BE BUILT IN A LOW MEADOW. EVERY MORNING, THE WORK DONE FORM THE PREVIOUS DAY APPEARED RUINED. ONE NIGHT, THEY DECIDED TO HAVE A GUARDIAN LOOKING AFTER THE PLACE. NOTHING HAPPENED UNTIL THE NEXT MORNING WHEN A SHOUTING VOICE WAS HEARD AND IT SAID: “BRYN-Y-GROY”, THE NAME OF A FIELD LOCATED HIGHER UP. THEY GOT THE MESSAGE AND SO THE STONES WERE CARRIED TO THIS PLACE CALLED “BRYN-Y-GROY”, AND THIS WAY THE CONSTRUCTION OF THE CHURCH WENT ON WITHOUT ANY MORE PROBLEMS.

2.2. IN LLANGOR AS WELL, ALL THE WORK DONE AS TO THE CONSTRUCTION OF A CHURCH THERE WAS RUINED AT NIGHT. ONE DAY THEY GOT THE INSPIRATION THAT A WHITE DEER WOULD REVEAL THE BEST OF LOCATION FOR THE CHURCH TO THEM, SO THEY HEADED TOWARDS THE WOODS AND SAW A WHITE DEER APPEAR FROM A BUSH. IT WAS EXACTLY THERE WHERE THEY FINALLY MANAGED TO BUILD THEIR CHURCH.

3. BY MEANS OF THE INTERVENTION OF BIRDS AND ANIMALS:

3.1. THE PEOPLE WHO WERE LOOKING AT THE FOUNDATIONS OF THE CHURCH OF ST. PETER IN BURNLEY SAW HOW A HERD PICKED UP THE STONES WITH THEIR MOUTHS AND RAN TAKING THEM TO A CLOSER MOUND.

3.2. THE SAME HAPPENED IN ANOTHER CHURCH OF LANCASHIRE. THE PIGS, WHEN PICKING UP THE STONES, WOULD SHOUT “WINWICK”, THE NAME OF THE VILLAGE WHERE THE CHURCH WAS BEING BUILT. IN THIS CASE, THE PLACE WHERE THE PIGS HAD CHOSEN WAS ALREADY A SANCTIFIED PLACE BY OSWALDO´S MARTYRDOM.”

“IN 1220 THE CATHEDRAL OF SALISBURY IN OLD SARUM WAS KNOCKED DOWN AND THE NEW ONE WAS BUILT IN NEW SARUM. THE FOLLOWING PHOTO SHOW THE ALIGNMENT BETWEEN STONEHENGE, OLD SARUM AND THE CATHEDRAL OF SALISBURY:

 img_1266

IN THIS PHOTO AS WELL WE SEE THE ALIGNMENT BETWEEN 7 MEDIEVAL CHURCHES”:
img_1267

“IN CHINA, GEOMATICS, SPECIALISTS IN FENG SHUI, WERE CONSULTED AS TO THE CONSTRUCTION AND LOCATION OF A BUILDING, TOMB, TREE, POST OR STONE SUSCEPTIBLE OF AFFECTING THE APPEARANCE AND NATURE OF THE COUNTRY. CHINESE PEOPLE KNEW CERTAIN POWERFUL CURRENTS, MAGNETISM TRACKS WERE SPREAD INVISIBLY ALL OVER THE EARTH. GEOMATICS WERE IN CHARGE OF DETECTING THOSE CURRENTS AND INTERPRET THEIR INFLUENCES ON THE PLACES THEY CROSSED. YANG, MALE CURRENT, TAKES HIGH MOUNTAIN ROUTES, WHEREAS YIN, THE FEMALE CURRENT, FLOWS MAINLY ALONG LOWER HILLS. THE ONES WHO UNDERSTOOD THE SECRETS OF TERRESTRIAL GEOMETRY WERE ABLE TO HAVE THE WILL TO A VISION. THIS WAS THE SUDDEN VISION WHICH ALFRED WATKINS HAD IN THE HILLS OF HEREFORDSHIRE. ST. MICHAEL AND ST. GEORGE ILLUSTRATE 2 ASPECTS OF THE SAME PRINCIPLE. BOTH ARE RELATED TO THE ARCHETYPE, REPRESENTED BY CASTOR AND POLLUX (GREEK AND ROMAN MYTHS), WHO RUN THE FIRE OF ST. ELMO, AN ETHEREAL ELECTRICITY CURRENT, (“A NON-CONSUMING, HEATLESS FLAME, PROVING THE MYTHS OF SPIRITUAL PRESENCEWIKIPEDIA) OVER WHICH THE GREEKS SEEM TO HAVE PRESERVED SOME KIND OF CONTROL, EVEN IN PREHISTORIC TIMES. ST. MICHAEL EXERCISED HIS POWER OVER THE HIGH ROCKY HILLS AND ST. GEORGE OVER THE LOWER HILLS. THIS PHOTO SHOWS AN ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACK OF 10 CHURCHES CONSECRATED TO ST. MICHAEL AN OTHER SAINTS LIKE ST. GEORGE AND MARGARET WHO KILLED DRAGONS (SNAKES):

  img_1268

HOWEVER, THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH ADOPTED THE POLICY OF DESTROYING ALL DOCUMENTS IN CONNECTION WITH THE ANCIENT SCIENCE AND ABOLISHED THE PRACTICE OF ASTRONOMY,  AND  THAT´S WHY MOST CHRISTIAN PHILOSOPHERS LOST THE TOTAL CAPACITY OF VALUING THE SYSTEM OF NAMES, NUMBERS AND SYMBOLS WHICH HAD COME INTO THEIR POSSESSION.”

REVEREND LIONEL S. LEWIS, WHO WAS VICAR OF GLASTONBURY, GATHERED UP MANY OF THE OLD TRADITIONS STILL PRESERVED BY THE PEASANTS OF SOMERSET ON THE SACRED PATHS WHICH JESUS CHRIST AND JOSEPH OF ARIMATEA FOLLOWED ON THEIR TRIP AROUND GREAT BRITAIN, STARTING FROM THE COAST. ACCORDING TO SOME OF THOSE, THEY GOT OFF ON THE NORTH COAST OF SOMERSET AND FOLLOWED THE RIVER BRUE, WHICH LATER ON BECAME GLASTONBURY CHANNEL, BEING PART OF A STRAIGHT TRACK WITH  TORS AS THE OLD ENGRAVINGS SHOW.”

STEINER´S EXPERIMENTS REVEALED THE DEGREE IN WHICH PLANET INFLUENCES AFFECT BOTH MAGNETIC CURRENTS OF THE TERRESTRIAL SURFACE AND ALSO THE DEEP LAYERS MINERALS. AT CERTAIN TIMES OF THE YEAR, THEY GET RECHARGED WITH ENERGY, WHICH THEY GRADUALLY TRANSMIT TO THE GROUND, MAKING SEEDS BLOSSOM AND SPEED UP THE VEGETAL GROWTH. GUY UNDERWOOD IN HIS BOOK THE PATTERN OF THE PAST CAME TO THE CONCLUSION EVERY STONE CIRCLE IN GREAT BRITAIN HAS A POWERFUL SOURCE OF ENERGY ON ITS CENTER, DESCRIBED BY G. UNDERWOOD AS A BLIND SPRING, AND THE ISOLATED VERTICAL STONES MARK THE ROADS AND THE SPIRALS OF THE UNDERGROUND CURRENTS. THESE SPRINGS, PONDS AND CREEKS THROUGH WHICH THEY RAN WERE THE POINTS WHICH HELPED JOIN ALL THE SACRED PLACES BY MEANS OF LAND WAVES, EMBANKMENTS AND STRAIGHT STONE TRACKS. THIS ORGANIC STRENGTH PROVIDED THEM WITH THIS ASTRAL LIGHT, THE POWER AND THE INSPIRATION WHICH WERE THE FOUNDATIONS FOR THE ANCIENT CIVILIZATION. ALFRED WATKINS DEFENDED THE REALITY OF HIS VISION TO THE VERY LAST DAY OF HIS LIFE, AND RECENT DISCOVERIES IN AMERICA –PERU, MEXICO AND BOLIVIA – BACK UP MR. WATKINS´ VISION AND INFORMATION. THIS REALITY OF THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS WAS BACKED UP BY POETS AND WRITERS. ONE OF THESE WAS W.H. AUDEN WHO MENTIONS THESE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS IN HIS POEMS, LIKE IN THE OLD MAN´S OLD PATH, WRITTEN IN THE 1950´S. 

“SOME OLD WRITERS REFER TO THE TRADITIONS OF THE PREHISTORIC PREDECESSOR ERUDITES WHO ENCODED THEIR KNOWLEDGE OF THE WORLD BASED ON THE DIMENSIONS OF THE TEMPLES. THE KEY REQUIREMENT HERE IS TO MAKE SURE OF THE EXACT LENTHS OF THEIR  UNITS OF MEASUREMENT. SOME OF THE GREATEST SHOLARS FOUND THIS PROBLEM WORTHY OF ATTENTION. THE STUDY OF ANCIENT METROLOGY, THAT IS OF UNITS OF MEASUREMENT USED BY THE ANCIENTS WAS OBSTRACTED BY THE USE OF THE METRIC SYSTEM, INAPPLICABLE TO THEIR RESEARCH. THE LENGHT OF THE EQUATOR, WHERE A DEGREE SPANS AS MANY FEET AS DAYS ARE IN A THOUSAND YEARS, EXPLAINS WHY A FOOT (WHOSE ORIGIN CAN BE TRACED ALL THE WAY BACK TO THE SUMERIAN CHRONOLOGY) CONSTITUTES THE BASIC UNITY OF THE TERRESTRIAL MEASUREMENTS CANNON. AN ENGLISH FOOT REPRESENTS A FIXED DISTANCE, A DEGREE WHICH CORRESPONDS TO THE EQUATOR CIRCLE. THEREFORE, A FOOT HAS AN ONLY VALUE, A CONSTANT LENGTH, WHICH HAS BEEN PRESERVED UP TO TODAY. THERE´S NO QUESTION A FOOT IS A MUCH MORE DIGNIFIED UNIT TO BE USED AND STUDIED THAN THE PRETENCIOUS AND SUPPOSEDLY SCIENTIFIC METER…, FULL OF INHERENT TRIVIALITY, WHICH REPRESENTS THE VALUES OF THE MODERN PROCESS FOR WHICH IT WAS PLANNED…”

“STONEHENGE, WHICH IS 4,000 YEARS OLD, IS STILL ABLE TO PRESERVE THE SACRED UNITS OF MEASUREMENT OF THE ANCIENT WORLD.” LET´S IMAGINE STONEHENGE IS “A RELIC TO PRESERVE THOSE SACRED  UNITS OF MEASUREMENT, AND THAT THE MAIN DIMENSIONS OF STONEHENGE REPRESENT FRACTIONS OF THE TERRESTRIAL DIMENSIONS.”

“IT WAS ISAAC NEWTON WHO FOUND OUT THESE SACRED MEASUREMENTS IN THE BLUEPRINT OF THE TEMPLE OF JERUSALEM (LEXICON PROPHETICUM). ISAAC NEWTON WAS THE FIRST MODERN SCIENTIST WHO DEMONSTRATED THE EARTH IS NOT A PERFECT SPHERE, BUT RATHER A WIDENED SPHERE IN THE EQUATOR AND FLATTENED ON THE POLES. THOSE NUMBERS AND MEASUREMENTS ARE THE SAME ONES FOUND IN STONEHENGE AND IN THE RITUAL CITY OF TEOTIHUACAN IN MEXICO. THEREFORE, ACCORDING TO THOSE ONE GOOD DAY A UNIQUE CODE OF PHILOSOPHICAL, RELIGIOUS AND SCIENTIFIC KNOWLEDGE BLOSSOMED.”

THE PYRAMID OF KEOPS IN EGYPT IS ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF THE SPECIAL MEANING OF ITS DIMENSIONS. ITS STONES WERE COVERED WITH WHITE MARBLE AND WERE ENGRAVED WITH LETTERS AND SYMBOLS WHICH SUMMARIZED ALL THE ANCIENT KNOWLEDGE. BOTH, THE SCHOLAR JOHN TAYLOR (THE GREAT PYRAMID 1859) AND THE FRENCH JOMARD AGREED ON THE FACT THAT THE PYRAMID OF KEOPS SUMMED UP THE ANCIENT KNOWLEDGE ON THE EARTH DIMENSIONS. ACCORDING TO JOHN TAYLOR THE PYRAMID OF KEOPS WAS ABOUT 4,000 YEARS OLD, AND THAT IT WAS BUILT RIGHT AFTER THE FLOOD. GIVEN THE FACT, ACCORDING TO THE BIBLE, THE EARTH WAS CREATED IN 4004 BC, THE INTERVAL WAS SIMPLY NOT ENOUGH FOR THE HUMAN SCIENCE TO HAVE REACHED SO MUCH WITHOUT ANY HELP WHATSOEVER. ACCORDING TO TAYLOR NOAH´S DESCENDANTS WERE THE ONES WHO BUILT THE PYRAMID OF KEOPS FOLLOWING GOD´S GUIDELINES. THIS IDEA HAS BEEN KEPT ALL THROUGH THE LITERATURE ON THAT TO TODAY. PIAZZI SMYTH IN HIS BOOKS LIFE AND WORK AT THE GREAT PYRAMID AND OUR INHERITANCE IN THE GREAT PYRAMID HIGHLIGHTS THE WONDERS OF THE GREAT PYRAMID AND PRAISES THE DIVINE INTELLIGENCE WHICH INSPIRED THE BUILDERS OF THE PYRAMID. PETER TOMPKINS IN SECRETS OF THE GREAT PYRAMID 1971 DEMONSTRATES THE OLD THEORY OF THE COINCIDENCES OF MEASUREMENTS BETWEEN THE PYRAMID, THE EARTH AND THE COSMOS WAS CONFIRMED BY MEANS OF PROPORTIONAL FIGURES OF THE MODERN GEODESY. FOR SURE, THE GOAL OF THE PYRAMID WAS TO SUM UP THE CODE OF DIVERSE SCIENTIFIC LAWS AND FORMULAE.” LET´S IMAGINE THE DIAMOND´S END´S GOAL, WHICH THE PYRAMID BUILDERS REMOVED, WAS TO TRANSFORM THE COSMIC ENERGY. LET´S  ALSO IMAGINE  THAT A DIAMOND STONE WILL BE ONCE AGAIN PUT ON ITS ORIGINAL PLACE, THAT IS, ON TOP OF THE GREAT PYRAMID, ONCE THE MESSIAH COMES BACK AGAIN, WHICH ACCORDING TO THE PYRAMID PROPHECIES WILL TAKE PLACE AFTER THE COLLAPSE OF TODAY´S CIVILIZATION, THAT IS, AT ABOUT 2034. RIGHT AFTER THE RETURN OF THE MESSIAH, A NEW WORLD ORDER WILL BEGIN. HERE´S A DRAWING OF THE PYRAMID  CUT SHORT TOP WITH A BAR AND THE  DIAMOND END, AS MOSE COSWORTH SHOWED IN THE RATIONAL ALMANAC (1900):

 img_1272

LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON WHY THE PYRAMID BUILDERS REMOVED  THE DIAMOND END WAS BECAUSE “THE EARTH WAS ABUSED , AND BECAUSE SOME DISTURBANCES CAUSED  THE LOSS OF CONTACT WITH THE SPIRIT OF THE PAST, AND SO CONFUSION AND SUPERSTITION SPREAD ALL OVER.”

THE UNKNOWN FOUNDERS OF CHRISTIANITY, WHOSE WORKS AND IDEAS WERE BLOCKED BY ITS IMPERSONATORS, THE FATHERS OF THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH, FORMULATED THEIR SACRED WRITINGS IN A NUMERIC CODE; THAT´S WHY MANY PASSAGES, EVEN WHOLE BOOKS FROM THE NEW TESTAMENT ARE SUSCEPTIBLE OF A NUMERIC INTERPRETATION. THE MAIN SOURCE OF OUR KNOWLEDGE ON THOSE FIRST CHRISTIANS, THE GNOSTICS, ARE THE WRITINGS OF THEIR BIGGEST ENEMIES, THE FATHERS OF THE CHURCH, SPECIALLY ST. IRENEUS, WHO IN THE 2ND CENTURY, FLEED TO BECOME LYON´S BISHOP, AND QUOTED AND MOCKED THE GNOSTICS DOCTRINES IN ORDER TO DISCREDIT THEM, DESPITE THE FACT HE WAS INSTRUCTED BY THEM. “

“ACCORDING TO PLATO THE GREAT ENIGMA ON THE SEARCH OF THE ORIGINS OF AN ANCIENT DISAPPEARED WORLD IS ATLANTIS. FOR SURE THERE WERE OTHER WORLDS AND OTHER CIVILIZATIONS BEFORE OURS. THE CHANGES IN THE SEAS AND CONTINENTS ARE PRODUCED BY MEANS OF EROSION, SEDIMENTATION AND SUDDEN DISASTERS AND COSMIC AGITATIONS. SOME AREAS DISSAPPEARED ALL OF A SUDDEN UNDER THE WATER, LIKE THE ATLANTIS OF PLATO.

GLASTONBURY IS CONSIDERED ONE OF THE MOST SPECIAL AND UNIQUE SANCTUARIES IN GREAT BRITAIN. ITS FIRST NAMES, AVALON AND CRYSTAL ISLE, REFLECT THE CONCEPT THE ANCIENT ONES HAD OF THE AREA AND ITS MYSTIC EVENTS. THERE´S EVIDENCE BACKING UP GLASTONBURY WAS A CENTER OF THE PREHISTORIC RELIGION, OF THE CELTIC DRUIDISM AND OF THE CELTIC CHRISTIANISM FOLLOWING THE FIRST TWO. THE MOST OUTSTANDING OF ALL GLASTONBURY LEGENDS TELLS US HOW IT BECAME THE EMBANKMENT OF THE FIRST CHRISTIAN CHURCH IN THE WORLD. RIGHT AFTER THE CRUCIFIXION, ST. JOSEPH OF ARIMATHAEA, BEING PART OF A GROUP OF 12 SAINT CHRISTIANS HEADED TO GREAT BRITAIN AND ARRIVED IN GLASTONBURY. IN THE HILL OF WEARYALL, ON THE ISLAND OF AVALON, JOSEPH OF ARIMATHAEA, DIGGED HIS PILGRIM STICK ON THE GROUND, AND THERE THEY BUILT THEIR CHURCH, CONSECRATED TO THE HOLY MARY. SOUTH OF THIS CHURCH JOSEPH OF ARIMATHAEA WAS BURIED. SOME OLD LEGENDS STATE JESUS CHRIST WENT ALONG THE TIN TRACK AND VISITED GLASTONBURY. THE EVIDENCE BEHIND THE SANCTITY OF THE 12 HIDES OF GLASTONBURY IS FOUND IN THE DOMESDAY BOOK – A REGISTER OF REAL STATE OF ENGLAND ESTABLISHED IN 1086 BY 12 CHRISTIAN SAINTS REMAINED TAX-EXEMPT FOR EVER. THEY WERE PRACTICALLY AN INDEPENDENT STATE UNTIL THE REFORM APPEARED. IT WAS THEN WHEN THE POWER OF THE STATE IMPOSED ON THE INTERESTS OF THE CHURCH AND THE PEOPLE, THAT THE LAST ABBOT OF GLASTONBURY, RICHARD WHITING WAS HUNG BECAUSE HE HID THE TREASURES OF THE ABBEY FROM THE STATE ESBIRROS WHO WERE GOING TO SEIZE THEM. ONE OF GLASTONBURY LEGENDS POINTS TO CHALICE HILL AS THE PLACE WHERE THE HOLY GRIAL, THE SACRED GRIAL FROM THE LAST SUPPER, IS HIDDEN IN ONE OF THE MANY UNDERGROUND GALLERIES. GLASTONBURY HAS BEEN CALLED THE MOST SACRED LAND, THE ENGLISH JERUSALEM, A REGENERATION PLACE. THESE PROPHECIES THAT DESIGNATE GLASTONBURY AS A REGENERATION PLACE STARTED WITH THE ORACULO OF MERLIN. THE BOOK OF MERLIN DATES BACK TO THE 6TH CENTURY AND IS PART OF THE VOLUMES OF GLASTONBURY LIBRARY WHICH WERE LOST, AND WHICH WE ONLY KNOW THANKS TO QUOTES BY WRITERS LIKE JOHN OF GLASTONBURY (15TH CENTURY). ONE OF HIS FRAGMENTS WHICH STILL EXISTS SAYS THIS: “ONE DAY THE TOMB OF JOSEPH OF ARIMATHAEA AND THE HOLY GRIAL WILL BE DISCOVERED AND THAT FROM THAT MOMENT ON THE INHABITANTS OF THAT OLD ISLAND WILL NEVER BE DEPRIVED OF WATER NOR OF THE DEW FROM THE SKY”. THE PROPHECY COINCIDED WITH THE LEGEND OF TH CYCLE OF THE HOLY GRIAL ABOUT THE LAME FISHER KING, LOCATED IN THE SWAMPS OF GLASTONBURY, THE RECOVERY OF THE KING WOULD MAKE HIS DEVASTATED COUNTRY BLOOM AGAIN AND THE PRIMAL GOLD AGE BE RESTORED AGAIN. THROUGHOUT THE ENGLISH LITERATURE, THE PROPHECY WAS REPEATED BY MILTON, BLAKE, ELIOT IN THE WASTE LAND, AND MANY OTHERS, AND REITERATED BY AUSTIN RINGWODE.  A. RINGWODE WAS THE LAST ONE OF THE EXPELLED MONKS OF GLASTONBURY ABBEY, WHO SAID THIS AT HIS DEATHBED:

THE ABBEY WILL BE REPAIRED ONE DAY AND REBUILT FOR THE SAME CULT WHICH HAS NOT CEASED; AND THEN, PEACE AND PLENITUDE WILL REIGN FOR A LONG TIME”. THE SAME HAPPENED IN THE TEMPLE OF JERUSALEN WHERE ONCE IT WAS DESTROYED, RITUALS STOPPED AND THE BALANCE WAS LOST, TOGETHER WITH A DROP IN FERTILITY.”

FREDERICK BLIGH BOND, RESPECTED SCHOLAR ON MEDIEVAL ARQUITECTURE, IN HIS BOOK THE GATE OF REMEMBRANCE (1918) STATED ALL HIS SUCCESS WAS DUE TO SPIRITIST COMMUNICATIONS RECEIVED BY MEANS OF AUTOMATIC WRITING, THAT IS, HE WAS GUIDED BY GOD´S SPIRITS. SOME OF HIS FRIENDS STARTED TO GET THE MESSAGES FROM THE OLD MONKS OF THE ABBEY. THE SAME AS B.BOND, HIS FRIENDS WERE VERY RESPECTABLE PEOPLE. EVEN THOUGH B.BOND´S FRIENDS DIDN´T HAVE A THOROUGH KNOWLEDGE OF GLASTONBURY ABBEY THEIR TRANSCRIPTIONS PROVIDED US WITH DETAILS ABOUT THE STRUCTURE AND ITS HISTORY, ALL IN THE ARCHAIC LANGUAGE OF THE ANCIENT MONKS, AND WAS ALSO B.BOND´S GUIDE IN HIS EXCAVATIONS OF GLASTONBURY ABBEY´S RUINS.”

“IN THE 1930´S, KATHRYN MALTWOOD IN HER GIANTS, MYTHS AND MEGALITHS, INCLUDES SOME OF THE IMPRESSIVE VISIONS OF IRIS CAMPBELL, PSYCHOLOGIST AND COLLABORATOR OF MYSTIC J.FOSTER FORBES, ABOUT ANCIENT GLASTONBURY:

UNDER THE ABBEY THERE WERE RUINS OF VAST MONDS, CREATED BY NATURAL AGITATIONS. SUCH CATACOMBS ARE VERY DEEP, AND THE MAGNETIC TERRESTRIAL CURRENTS FLOW THROUGH THE UNDERGROUND CHANNELS. THIS IS HOW THE INSIDE COMBUSTION – ALSO CALLED THE SECRET FIRES OF THE EARTH – WAS PRODUCED. GLASTONBURY´S TOR RISES ON THE MAGNETISM EPICENTER, AND WHAT´S UNDER IT AGITATES CONTINUALLY… THE CONTEMPLATIVE ORDER, THE MONKS, CAME TO THIS OLD SANCTUARY OF GLASTONBURY, AND KNOWING AS THEY KNEW THOSE MYSTERIES, BOTH TERRESTRIAL AND CELESTIAL, CONSECRATED THEIR WORK TO PRAYING FOR THE PEACE OF THE WORLD. THEY DID IT TURNING THEIR THOUGHTS TO THE BOILING UNDERGROUND WORLD.”

THE FOLLOWING PEOPLE BACK UP WHAT WE JUST SAID:

1. W.Y. EVANS WENTZ IN THE FAIRY FAITH IN CELTIC COUNTRIES MENTIONS THESE FORTUNATE PLACES WITH SUCH POWERFUL MAGNETIC FORCES:

A.CARNAC (NORTH-WESTERN FRANCE)

B.TARA  (IRELAND)

C.BOYNE VALLEY  (IRELAND)

2. LOUIS CHARPENTIER IN LES MYSTÈRES DE LA CATHÉDRALE DE CHARTRES STATES THIS CATHEDRAL RISES ON A HUGE PREHISTORIC MOND, ON TOP OF AN UNDERGROUND CHAMBER, WHERE SEVERAL POWERFUL TELURIC CURRENTS (=WOIVRES) COME TOGETHER NATURALLY. CHRISTIAN GEOMANTICS LOCATED AND BUILT THEIR STRUCTURE SO THAT IT COULD SERVE AS AN INSTRUMENT OF ACCUMULATION, FUSION OF ENERGY, AND ITS EXPANSION, IN THE TOWN  ITSELF AND THE PILGRIMS´ BEST INTEREST, WHO AT CERTAIN TIMES OF THE YEAR, GATHERED IN THE CATHEDRAL. CHARTRES HOSTED THE GREAT DRUID UNIVERSITY OF GAUL.”

LET´S IMAGINE “THE PRECISION OF THE STONES OF THE GREAT PYRAMID, THE FACT THE INSIDE OF THE GALLERIES AND HALLS OF THE GREAT PYRAMID, IMMERSED IN AN ABSOLUTE PERMANENT DARKNESS, DID NOT SHOW ANY TRACE OF HUMES FROM THE TORCHS USED BACK THEN – AS IT WAS EXPECTED -, STONEHENGE, GLASTONBURY ABBEY AND MANY OTHER ANCIENT MONUMENTS AND SANCTUARIES´ INCOMPREHENSIBLE FACTS HAVE TO DO WITH GOD´S FORCES TO PERFORM MIRACLES. WHETHER WE´RE TALKING ABOUT A WANDERING GOD, A DRESSED UP KING, A MYSTERIOUS FOREIGNER ON THE ROAD, A TRAVELING POET, A GYPSY OR  A PEDDLER, ALL THOSE ROMANTIC CHARACTERS WHICH ATTRACT OUR AESTHETIC SENSE UNIVERSALLY AND  STRAIGHTAWAY, REPRESENT A TRUE ARCHETYPE, THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH, THE SPIRIT THAT REIGNED IN THE WHOLE ANCIENT WORLD, AND WHICH ACCOMPANIED THE JEWS IN THEIR DIASPORA FROM THE HOLY LAND TO GREAT BRITAIN, WHERE, AS STUKELEY SAYS, “THE CHOSEN ONES ENJOY A MORE FAVORABLE SITUATION THAN IN ANY OTHER PLACE ON EARTH” “.

“IN THE AUSTRALIAN DESERT, NATIVES STILL TODAY ONCE A YEAR WALK THEIR OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS, SINGING AND ATTRACTING THE SPIRIT OF THE ROCKS AS THEY GO FURTHER ALONG THESE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS. TODAY MOST ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS ALL OVER THE WORLD PASS UNNOTICED, SINCE THEIR TRACKS WERE FORGOTTEN AND THEREFORE THEIR SPIRIT IGNORED. HOWEVER, EACH YEAR A GROWING NUMBER OF PEOPLE FEEL ATTRACTED TO THESE ANCIENT VESTIGES, CENTERS OF AN INVISIBLE DESIGN TRACED ON EARTH. THE UNIVERSE ACTS IN RELATION TO THE INTERACTION BETWEEN ORDER AND CHAOS, AND THE EARTH WAS READY ACCORDING TO THE PRINCIPLE. THE TOWNS TRACED, FOLLOWING A COSMIC GUIDELINE, INCLUDED DELIBERATELY AN ARCHITECTURE AND THEIR SOCIETIES. THE ROADS WERE SACRED PLACES WHERE NO CRIMINAL WAS EVER DETAINED. IN EVERY CITY THERE WERE WIDE PLACES UNDER THE DOMAIN OF CHAOS, LIKE THE BLACK AVENUES OF DORCHESTER, AS DESCRIBED IN MAYOR OF CASTERBRIDGE BY HARDY.”

OLIVE PIXLEY, FOSTER FORBES´ FRIEND AND COLLABORATOR IN THE TRAIL (1934) SAID THIS IN RELATION TO STONEHENGE: “…THESE PEOPLE WORSHIPPED LIGHT AND KNEW HOW TO ATTRACT THE SUN RAYS TOWARDS THEM. THEY WORSHIPPED LIGHT WITH THEIR MINDS AND THEIR RITUAL ALSO INCLUDED THE KNOWLEDGE OF HOW TO ATTRACT THE CREATIVE ENERGY OF THE SOLAR FORCE TO THE INSIDE OF THEIR BODIES”. AS OLIVE PIXLEY POINTED OUT, IT´S CONTRADICTORY THESE PREHISTORIC PEOPLE, WHO WERE ABLE TO BUILD STRUCTURES WHICH REQUIRE A HIGH DEGREE OF TECHNICAL AND SCIENTIFIC KNOWLEDGE, DID NOT BUILD ANY OF THE NECESSARY BUILDINGS, SUCH AS BIG STONE HOUSES, PALACES, PORTS, WAREHOUSES, PRISONS AND FORTRESSES. THESE PREHISTORIC PROPHETS AND PHILOSOPHERS KNEW THE GEOGRAPHY OF THE INVISIBLE WORLD SO THOROUGHLY, PEOPLE TRUSTED THEIR WISDOM SO MUCH  THE WHOLE WORLD WAS MODELLED ACCORDING TO THAT PIETOUS AND SPLENDOROUS SCHEME. THE NEW JERUSALEN, THE GREAT PYRAMID, STONEHENGE, GLASTONBURY ABBEY AND ALL THE GREAT ANCIENT MONUMENTS WERE BUILT IN RELATION TO GUIDELINES AND NUMBERS WHOSE ORIGIN LIES IN DIVINE REVELATIONS.” (NUEVA VISIÓN SOBRE LA ATLÁNTIDA BY JOHN MICHELL).

IN THIS BEAUTIFUL PHOTO OF HEREFORDSHIRE,  img_1262

NEAR ABBEY DORE, WE SEE PART OF A STRAIGHT TRACK WHICH LEADS UP TO THE TOP OF A DISTANT HILL, AND THE FIRST THING THAT COMES TO OUR MIND LOOKING AT IT IS THE MESSAGE THE ANCIENT LOST CIVILIZATIONS ASTRONOMER PRIESTS, PILGRIMS AND EREMITES WANTED TO SHARE WITH ALL OF US. LET´S IMAGINE THAT KEY MESSAGE THEY WANTED TO PASS ON WAS ALL THOSE MILES OF STRAIGHT TRACKS PASSING THROUGH PATHS, STONE PILLARS, LAKES, EMBANKMENTS TO CROSS SWAMPY AREAS, OPENING WAYS THROUGH THE MOUNTAINS, EXCAVATING TUNNELS THROUGH CLIFFS AND BUILDING HUGE BRIDGES DID NOT ELUDE THE OBSTACLES, BUT INSTEAD WORKED THEIR WAY THROUGH THEM. ALL THIS WAS A SYMBOL TO REMIND US OUR GOAL IN THIS LIFE IS TO HEAD TOWARDS GOD, LIVING AN ANGEL LIFE TO DESERVE THE REAL THING AFTERWARDS. THE TOP OF THE MOUNTAIN SYMBOLIZES THE LIGHT, THE TRUTH, GOD ITSELF. THE STRAIGHT TRACK SYMBOLIZES THE WAY WE´RE ALL SUPPOSED TO LEAD OUR LIVES, HUMBLY FOLLOWING GOD´S RULES, LIVING A LIFE OF PRAYER, LOVE, GENEROSITY AND AUSTERITY . THAT MEANS ALL THE OTHER MULTIPLE PATHS AROUND US, THOSE OF VANITY, GREED, PRIDE , EGOTISM…ARE NOT PART OF THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACK, THAT IS, THEY´RE NOT PART OF THE KEY WAY OF LIVING THIS LIFE BEFORE THE TIME OF TRUTH COMES. ALL THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS SYMBOLIZE OUR GOAL HERE IS GET ENLIGHTENED, GET CLOSE TO GOD AND UNDERSTAND OUR LIFE HERE AS A TRANSITION TO OUR LORD, WHO IS WAITING FOR US, AND WANTS US TO DO WELL ON THE SERIES OF TESTS THIS LIFE INVOLVES, TOWARDS THE SUBLIME LIFE. ALFRED WATKINS WAS ABLE TO SEE ALL THAT BECAUSE HE WAS ONE OF THOSE FEW HUMAN BEINGS WITH SUCH A HIGH DEGREE OF HUMBLENESS AND ADMIRATION THAT BEAUTIFUL HIDDEN MESSAGES SUCH AS THOSE WERE REVEALED TO HIS NOBLE SOUL.

MANY OF THOSE OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS CAN´T BE SEEN TODAY DUE TO NEW PAVING MADE ON TOP OF THEM, AND THEREFORE THE PRINCIPLES BEHIND SUCH PREHISTORIC ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS ARE NOT VISIBLE, UNLIKE IT WAS IN ALFRED WATKINS´ TIME. THIS WONDERFUL ANCIENT LOST CIVILIZATION, WHOSE OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS ALWAYS LED PEOPLE TO THE TOP OF A MOUNTAIN MEANT THEM AS A SYMBOL OF THE REAL THING WAITING FOR US RIGHT AFTER THIS BRIEF PHYSICAL STAY ON PLANET EARTH. ONCE AGAIN, MY BROTHERS, IT ALL BOILS DOWN TO HUMBLENESS WHEN WE TALK GOD. OUR LORD DOESN´T UNDERSTAND GREED NOR VANITY. GOD´S WAYS ARE ALWAYS HUMBLE BECAUSE HE WANTS US TO BE EXACTLY THAT, AND THAT´S WHY HE LED THE ANCIENT LOST CIVILIZATION TO BUILD THE OLD STRAIGHT TRACKS SO THAT EVERYONE COMING AFTER THEM WOULD KNOW THERE´S SOMETHING ELSE BESIDES THIS PHYSICAL WORLD. THEY WANTED TO MAKE IT CLEAR OUR GOAL MUST BE GOD, IN ORDER TO REACH THE REAL LIFE THAT IS YET TO COME, AND BE SHARED BY JUST THOSE FEW ONES, WHO DESPITE ALL THE ODDS GOING AGAINST THEM, MANAGED TO PRESERVE THEIR FAITH AND LOVE FOR GOD.

EACH OF US HAS GOT TO INVOKE GOD FOR THAT CELESTIAL ENERGY ALL OF US NEED TO GO ON WITH OUR LIVES, TO MAKE THE MOST OF THEM KNOWING THE RIGHT TRACK TO TAKE, KNOWING WHICH IS THE STRAIGHT TRACK TO GOD, RATHER THAN ALL THE MILLION TWISTED ONES IN DISGUISE, WHICH COME UP TO US MAKING US BELIEVE THOSE ONES WILL GRANT US THE HAPPY INSIDE FEELING ONLY GOD´S ENERGY PROVIDES.

“JESUS SAID THIS ABOUT THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN: “IT´S IDENTICAL TO A MUSTARD GRAIN, WHICH ONCE IT´S SOWED IN THE SOIL IS THE SMALLEST OF ALL GRAINS ON EARTH, BUT IT GROWS AND BECOMES BIGGER THAN ALL THE REST OF VEGETABLES. IT BLOOMS BRANCHES, WHOSE SHADE HOSTS BIRDS” (MARK 4, 31-32)” .” (NUEVA VISIÓN SOBRE LA ATLÁNTIDA BY JOHN MICHELL). JESUS CHRIST LEFT A LEGACY BEHIND FOR US TO FOLLOW, AND THAT´S EXACTLY WHAT JESUS WANTS EACH OF US TO DO WITH OUR LIVES. HE WANTS US TO LEAVE SOMETHING BEHIND. LEAVING SOMETHING BEHIND IMPLIES DOING GOOD DEEDS ON EARTH, WHICH WILL BRING ITS REWARDS TO US AND TO THE OTHERS, AND THAT WILL BE OUR PERSONAL LEGACY FOR THE REST OF OUR BROTHERS HERE ON EARTH. AT THE SAME TIME IT´LL ALSO BE OUR PASSPORT TO PARADISE, FOR HAVING COMPLIED TO THE GLORIOUS MISSION OF SPREADING JESUS CHRIST´S LEGACY, THROUGH OUR DAILY PRACTICE OF GOOD ACTS DURING OUR TIME HERE. WE NEED TO PRAY FOR WISDOM ALL OVER THE WORLD. THIS WISDOM WILL BE THE ONLY ONE ABLE TO SPREAD PEACE AND PROSPERITY AMONG ALL OUR BROTHERS.

THE 2016 MOVIE THE ACCOUNTANT BY GAVIN O´CONNOR, STARRING BEN AFFLECK, SHOWS US HOW SOMEONE CAN CHANGE HIS LIFE AND LEAVE SOMETHING WORTHWHILE BEHIND. THE SOUNDTRACK AT THE END OF IT REMINDS US OF LEAVING SOMETHING BEHIND, AND THIS AMAZING IDEA IS WHAT OUR ANCIENT PREHISTORIC PREDECESSORS DID FOR ALL OF US. THEY LEFT SOMETHING BEHIND FOR US WORTH OF OUR ATTENTION AND CARE, AND IT´S GOT TO DO WITH THE ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACKS IN GREAT BRITAIN AND OTHER PLACES AROUND THE GLOBE.

MOST TIMES WE SEE THINGS  WE DON´T INTERPRET  RIGHT. THAT´S PART OF OUR IMPERFECT HUMAN NATURE. IN THE MOVIE DOCTOR STRANGE BY SCOTT DERRICKSON WE SEE HOW THIS GREAT NEUROSURGEON, WHO WAS THE BEST AT HIS JOB, DID NOT REALLY KNOW HOW TO INTERPRET LIFE UNTIL A TERRIBLE ACCIDENT HAPPENED TO HIM. INDEED HIS LIFE  REACHED BREAKING POINT, AND FROM THEN ON HE STARTED SEARCHING FOR HEALING WAYS. FINALLY HE DECIDED TO BE OBEDIENT, HUMBLE AND COHERENT, AND ENDS UP DISCOVERING THE SPIRITUAL WORLD INSIDE HIMSELF, THAT ONE HE HAD BEEN IGNORING ALL HIS LIFE. HE FINALLY REALIZES NOONE BUT HIMSELF TOGETHER WITH GOD CAN HELP HIM. IT´S THEN WHEN HE REALIZES HIS SPIRIT NEEDS DAILY ATTENTION TO HELP HIMSELF BE ON GOD´S TRACK.

THIS PRESENT TIME WE ARE LIVING IS NOT THE BEST FOR JESUS CHRIST´S FOLLOWERS, AND YET THERE´S NOTHING AS TRUE AND WORTH AS BEING PART OF GOD. ALL THAT ELECTROMAGNETIC ENERGY THAT SURROUNDS THE EARTH  IS UNDERMINED BY WORLD LEADERS, SINCE THEY IGNORE IT. THE SAME AS SOCIETY IGNORES GOD THE POWER OF THESE MAGNETIC POINTS ALL OVER THE GLOBE IS ALSO IGNORED. THESE MAGNETIC POINTS ARE OUR OLD CHURCHES AND CATHEDRALS. THEY ARE WAITING FOR US TO GO IN AND TALK TO GOD LIKE PURE CHILDREN. LET´S FEEL THE AMAZING ENERGY FROM GOD IN THE CLOSEST OLD CHURCH TO US!  IT´S TIME TO REVISE AND TO LEAVE SOMETHING BEHIND. LET´S NOT WRIGGLE OUR WAY OUT OF GOD´S ANCIENT STRAIGHT TRACK!, LET´S START TODAY! 

THE ARK RULES!

THE MORE I LIVE  THE MORE  I  REALIZE  THERE´S NOTHING LIKE LOVING EVERYONE. THERE SOMETIMES COMES THE TIME WHEN WE LOVE OURSELVES THAT MUCH THAT LOVING ALL OUR BROTHERS BECOMES NOTHING BUT A NOBLE ASPIRATION FULL OF JOY FOR OUR SOUL. THIS OVERJOY OF LOVE WE FEEL SOMETIMES MAKES US EVEN OPEN UP OUR HEART SO MUCH AS TO ADMIT WRONGS WE DID SOME TIME IN OUR LIFE, MAKING IT CLEAR IT´S OKAY TO CONFESS SOME WRONGS DONE OPENLY. AND NOW, IT´S MY TURN TO DO IT. YES, OH YES, I´M GUILTY TOO. I WAS IN MY EARLY TWENTIES WHEN I STOLE A COUPLE OF T-SHIRTS, AND NOW IT FEELS GOOD TO SAY THE TRUTH, TO ADMIT I WASN´T THE WAY I AM TODAY, AND FEEL THAT COMFORT AND PEACE I GET ONCE I SAY IT ALL. THE MOMENT ONE WANTS TO STEP INTO ONE OF THE MOST IMPORTANT SUBJECTS, LIKE THE ARK OF THE COVENANT, IS THE MOMENT WHEN OUR EGO, OUR SOUL, OUR VERBAL AND WRITTEN EXPRESSION HAVE TO UNDERGO A TOTAL CLEANUP OPERATION.

HAVING DONE STEP ONE LET´S GO AHEAD AND START DOING WHAT GOD WANTS US TO. ONE OF THOSE THINGS OUR LORD WANTS IS TO MAKE US AWARE OF THE EXISTENCE OF HIS PRESENCE IN THE ARK OF THE COVENANT (THE TABOT, “ETHIOPIAN ORTHODOX CHURCH WORD REFERRING TO THE TABLETS OF LAW”(WIKIPEDIA) ), WHICH STILL EXISTS TODAY IN AKSUM (ETHIOPIA) TO MAKE US MEDITATE FOR SOME TIME ON HOW KEY THIS ARK IS IN ORDER TO UNDERSTAND PURITY IS THE WAY, THE ONLY ONE TO WIN GOD OVER. YES, MY BROTHERS.

“AN ETHIOPIAN TRADITION SAYS THAT THE ARK OF THE TESTIMONY IS KEPT IN A CHAPEL IN ETHIOPIA. THIS ARK WAS A GOLD-PLATED CHEST WHERE MOSES KEPT THE 10 COMMANDMENTS IN TWO STONE TABLETS. MOSES LED THE ISRAELITES TO THE PROMISED LAND AND THEY CARRIED THE ARK DURING THAT TRIP THROUGH THE DESERT. THEY ACHIEVED VICTORY BY VIRTUE OF THE ARK WHEREVER THEY WENT TO. FINALLY, ONCE HIS REQUIREMENT WAS MET KING SOLOMON PLACED IT IN THE SANCTUM OF THE TEMPLE WHICH HE HAD BUILT IN JERUSALEM. AND FROM THERE, NOT MUCH AFTER THAT, IT WAS BROUGHT TO ETHIOPIA. BACK THEN THE PERSON IN CHARGE OF SAFEGUARDING THE ARK HAD TO HAVE THE FOLLOWING MORAL QUALITIES: LOVE FOR GOD AND PURITY OF HEART, MIND AND BODY. ONLY ONCE A YEAR IN JANUARY THE ARK IS DISPLAYED ON A RELIGIOUS PARADE, THE TIMKAT, WHICH RESEMBLES OUR HOLY EPIPHANY IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY. ”

“SOME LEGENDS SAY WHEN ETHIOPIAN QUEEN SHEBAH TOOK A FAMOUS TRIP TO JERUSALEM SHE GOT PREGNANT FROM KING SOLOMON AND GAVE HIM A SON, A HEIR PRINCE, WHO YEARS AFTERWARDS STOLE THE ARK. HIS NAME WAS MENELIK, WHICH IN ETHIOPIAN LANGUAGE MEANS “THE WISE MAN´S SON”. MENELIK WAS BORN IN ETHIOPIA AND WHEN HE TURNED 20 HE WENT TO ISRAEL AND SHOWED UP AT HIS FATHER´S COURT. HIS FATHER QUICKLY RECOGNIZED HIM AND AWARDED HIM WITH ALL KINDS OF HONORS. HOWEVER, ONE YEAR LATER THE ELDERS STARTED TO GET JEALOUS. THEY COMPLAINED ABOUT THE EXCESSIVE PREFERENCE FOR MENELIK BY THE KING, AND THEY INSISTED ON HIM GOING BACK TO ETHIOPIA. THE KING ACCEPTED IT BUT ON CONDITION THAT ALL ELDERS´ FIRST-BORNS HAD TO ACCOMPANY MENELIK. AMONG ALL THOSE FIRST-BORNS WAS AZARIUS,  SADOK´S SON  –  PRIEST OF ISRAEL.” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

“REGARDING THE BIBLE, THE ARK IS ALSO MENTIONED DURING THE TIME THE ISRAELITES WANDERED AROUND THE DESERT, RIGHT AFTER PROPHET MOSES HAD FREED THEIR ISRAELI PEOPLE FROM THEIR CAPTIVITY IN EGYPT, AROUND 1250 BC.” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

“ACCORDING TO THE BOOK OF EXODUS, GOD INSTRUCTED MOSES ON MOUNT SINAI DURING HIS 40-DAY STAY UPON THE MOUNTAIN WITHIN THE THICK CLOUD AND DARKNESS WHERE GOD WAS, AND HE WAS SHOWN THE PATTERN OF THE TABERNACLE AND FURNISHINGS OF THE ARK TO BE MADE OF SHITTIM WOOD TO HOUSE THE TABLETS OF STONE. MOSES INSTRUCTED BEZABEL AND OHOLIAB TO CONSTRUCT THE ARK.Image 1-9-16 at 8.24 (4)

THE BOOK OF EXODUS GIVES DETAILED INSTRUCTIONS ON HOW THE ARK IS TO BE CONSTRUCTED. IT´S TO BE 2 ½ CUBITS IN LENGTH, 1 ½ IN BREADTH, AND 1 ½ IN HEIGHT (APPROXIMATELY 131 X 79 X 79 CM, OR 52 X 31 X 31 IN). THEN IT´S TO BE GILDED ENTIRELY WITH GOLD, AND A CROWN OR MOLDING OF GOLD IS TO BE PUT AROUND IT. FOUR RINGS OF GOLD ARE TO BE ATTACHED TO ITS FOUR CORNERS, TWO ON EACH SIDE – AND THROUGH THESE RINGS STAVES OF SHITTIM-WOOD OVERLAID WITH GOLD FOR CARRYING THE ARK ARE TO BE INSERTED; AND THESE ARE NOT TO BE REMOVED. A GOLDEN LID, THE KAPPORET (TRADITIONALLY “MERCY SEAT” IN CHRISTIAN TRANSLATIONS) WHICH IS COVERED WITH 2 GOLDEN CHERUBIM, IS TO BE PLACED ABOVE THE ARK. INSTRUCTIONS MISSING FROM THE BIBLICAL ACCOUNT INCLUDE THE THICKNESS OF THE MERCY SEAT, THE THICKNESS OF ITS SIDES AND BOTTOM, AND DETAILS CONCERNING THE CHERUBIM. THE ARK IS FINALLY TO BE PLACED UNDER THE VEIL OF THE COVERING.” (THE ARK. WIKIPEDIA).

“THESE WERE GOD´S WORDS TO MOSES: “ONCE YOU BUILD THE ARK, COVER THE INSIDE AND THE OUTSIDE WITH PURE GOLD, AND ON THE TOP YOU´LL MAKE A GOLD CORNISE ALL AROUND IT. YOU´LL ALSO MAKE A PROPITIATORY WITH 2 CHERUBIMS ON THE SIDES. YOU´LL PLACE THE PROPITIATORY ON TOP OF THE ARK…HERE I´LL COME TO MEET YOU, ON TOP OF THE PROPITIATORY, BETWEEN THE 2 CHERUBIMS WHICH ARE OVER THE ARK”.

“RIGHT AFTER GETTING THIS MESSAGE FROM GOD MOSES WENT TO BESALEL, A MAN FULL OF GOD´S SPIRIT, WISDOM, INTELLIGENCE AND EXPERTISE FOR ALL KINDS OF TRADES, AND SHARED WITH HIM “THIS DIVINE PROJECT”. BESALEL BUILT THE ARK EXACTLY AS GOD ASKED. WHEN IT WAS FINISHED MOSES PLACED THE 2 STONE TABLETS OF THE LAW INSIDE THE ARK. AFTERWARDS, THE ARK WAS PLACED BEHIND A “VEIL” IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM OF THE TABERNACLE, THE SORT OF MOBILE TENT WHICH ISRAELITES USED AS A CULT PLACE WHILE THEY WONDERED AROUND THE DESERT”.

“THE BIBLE AND OTHER ARCHAIC SOURCES SAY THAT THE ARK RELEASED FIRE AND LIGHT, ABLE TO INFLICT CANCEROUS TUMORS, SERIOUS BURNTS, FLATTEN MOUNTAINS, STOP THE COURSES OF RIVERS, ANNIHILATE WHOLE ARMIES AND DESTROY TOWNS. IT WAS THE CORNERSTONE OF THE EVOLUTION OF THE JEWISH FAITH FOR A LONG TIME. WHEN KING SOLOMON BUILT THE 1ST TEMPLE IN JERUSALEM HIS ONLY GOAL WAS TO BUILD A HOUSE WHERE HE COULD HOUSE YAHVEH´S ARK.” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

“THIS GOLD-PLATED ACACIA CHEST WAS CARRIED BY ITS STAVES WHILE EN ROUTE BY THE LEVITES APPROXIMATELY 2,OOO CUBITS (APPROXIMATELY 800 METERS OR 2,600 FEET) IN ADVANCE OF THE PEOPLE WHEN ON THE MARCH OR BEFORE THE ISRAELITE ARMY, THE HOST OF FIGHTING MEN. WHEN CARRIED, THE ARK WAS ALWAYS HIDDEN UNDER A LARGE VEIL MADE OF SKINS AND BLUE CLOTH, ALWAYS CAREFULLY CONCEALED, EVEN FROM THE EYES OF THE PRIESTS AND THE LEVITES WHO CARRIED IT. GOD WAS SAID TO HAVE SPOKEN WITH MOSES “FROM BETWEEN THE TWO CHERUBIM” ON THE ARK´S COVER. WHEN AT REST THE TABERNACLE WAS SET UP AND THE HOLY ARK WAS PLACED UNDER THE VEIL OF THE COVERING THE STAVES OF IT CROSSING THE MIDDLE SIDE BARS TO HOLD IT UP OFF THE GROUND”. (THE ARK. WIKIPEDIA).

“IN THE OLD TESTAMENT WE FIND MORE THAN 200 REFERENCES OF THE ARK UP TO THE TIMES OF SOLOMON (970-931 BC). AFTER SUCH A WISE AND SPLENDID KING´S RULE IT´S ALMOST NEVER MENTIONED AGAIN. AND THIS IS THE CAPITAL PROBLEM, THE TRUE HISTORICAL ENIGMA, GIVEN THE SUPREME RELIGIOUS MEANING IT HAD.” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK). WHY SUCH SILENCE? IN THE NEW TESTAMENT THERE IS NO MENTION OF IT. THERE´S A TOTAL VOID AS IF IT HAD NEVER EXISTED.

“IT´S PROBABLE THAT THERE WAS SOME KIND OF DEVISED COVER UP PLAN BY PRIESTS AND SCRIBES TO ENSURE THAT THE LOCATON OF THE ARK WAS KEPT SECRETLY. THE FOLLOWING INFORMATION WAS GIVEN TO GRAHAM HANCOCK BY A GUARD MONK IN 1983 IN AKSUM – THE ETHIOPIAN SACRED TOWN – WHICH IS IN THE NORTHWEST OF THE PROVINCE OF TIGRÉ, DEVASTATED BY WAR. IT WAS IN THE CHAPEL´S GARDEN BUILT BY EMPEROR HAILÉ SELASSIÉ, WHERE THE MONK TOLD G.H. ALL THIS AND MORE. HERE´S THE DIALOGUE BETWEEN G.H. AND THE GUARD MONK IN CHARGE OF PROTECTING THE ARK:

 G.H.: “HOW POWERFUL IS THE ARK?”

THE MONK: “WHAT DO YOU MEAN WITH THAT?”. THE MONK´S POSTURE BECAME MORE RIGID AND ALL OF A SUDDEN WAS ON GUARD. THERE WAS SOME SILENCE. THEN HE MURMURED UNDER HIS TEETH, AND IT WAS HIM WHO ASKED ME A QUESTION: “DID YOU SEE THE STELLASIMG_1163 ? “

G.H.: “YES, I HAVE.”

THE MONK: “AND HOW DO YOU THINK THEY WERE ERECTED?”

G.H.: “I HAVE NO IDEA HOW IT WAS DONE”.

THE MONK: THEY USED THE ARK – MUTTERED EERILY THE MONK. THE ARK AND THE CELESTIAL FIRE. MEN ALONE WOULD HAVE NEVER BEEN ABLE TO DO SUCH A THING “. 

“AT THAT TIME (1983) THE LIBERATION POPULAR FRONT – FPLT – WAS A COALITION OF REBEL FORCES. HOWEVER IT WAS STILL A SMALL GUERRILLA FORCE AND THE SACRED TOWN OF AKSUM WAS ALSO STILL UNDER THE GOVERNMENT. CHRISTIANISM STARTED IN AKSUM IN ETHIOPIA IN THE 4TH CENTURY AC. AKSUM WAS THE CAPITAL OF ETHIOPIA FOR MANY YEARS. IT BECAME THE BIGGEST POWER AMONG THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND PERSIA, SENDING ITS MERCHANT SHIPS TO EGYPT, INDIA, CEYLON AND CHINA. ACCORDING TO SOME ETHIOPIAN LEGENDS THE ARK WAS KEPT IN A SMALL CHAPEL NEXT TO A VENERATED CHURCH, NEAR DOWNTOWN.  THE NEW MODERN CATHEDRAL WAS BUILT BY THE LAST ETHIOPIAN EMPEROR – HAILE SELASSIE – IN 1965. BEFORE THAT THE ARK HAD BEEN KEPT IN THE TABERNACLE OF ST. MARY OF ZION CHURCH FOR HUNDREDS OF YEARS. HAILE SELASSIE WAS EMPEROR NUMBER 200, DESCENDANT OF MENELIK.” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HAYCOCK).”THE CHURCH OF OUR LADY MARY OF ZION IS THE MOST IMPORTANT CHURCH IN ETHIOPIA AND CLAIMS TO CONTAIN THE ARK OF THE COVENANT.Image 1-9-16 at 8.26 (1) IT IS LOCATED IN  THE TOWN OF AKXUM IN THE TIGRAY PROVINCE. THE ORIGINAL CHURCH IS BELIEVED TO HAVE BEEN BUILT DURING THE REIGN OF EZANA, THE 1ST CHRISTIAN RULER OF THE KINGDOM OF AXUM (PRESENT-DAY ERITREA AND ETHIOPIA) DURING THE 4TH CENTURY AD., AND HAS BEEN REBUILT SEVERAL TIMES SINCE THEM. EMPEROR FASILIDES WAS ONE OF THOSE WHO REBUILT AND ENLARGED IT IN THE 17TH CENTURY. ST. MARY OF ZION WAS THE TRADITIONAL PLACE WHERE ETHIOPIAN EMPERORS CAME TO BE CROWNED” (CHURCH OF OUR LADY OF ZION-WIKIPEDIA).

“SOMETIME IN BETWEEN THE 10TH AND 6TH CENTURIES BC THE ARK DISAPPEARED FROM THE SANCTUM OF THE TEMPLE. THE HOLY SCRIPTS DON´T SHOW ANY LAMENTS NOR ANY CHANTS FOR THE LOSS OF THE ARK, AS IF IT HAD NOT EXISTED. ACCORDING TO RESEARCH THE ARK WAS MISSING MUCH EARLIER THAN WHEN NABUCODONOSOR´S ARMIES BURNT DOWN JERUSALEM IN 587 BC, AND SURELY THE ARK WASN´T IN THE 2ND TEMPLE, BUILT ON TOP OF THE 1ST ONE´S RUINS, WHEN THE JEWISH PEOPLE CAME BACK FROM THEIR EXILE IN BABYLON IN 538 BC. RESEARCH SUGGESTS THAT BABYLONIANS DIDN´T TAKE IT AS THEIR LOOT. SO FAR THE ARK, THE MOST PRECIOUS AND ENIGMATIC RELIC FROM THE OLD TESTAMENT, HAS BEEN LOST FOR ALMOST 3000 YEARS“.  

“ACCORDING TO SOME LEGENDS THE ARK MUST HAVE GOT TO AKSUM MUCH EARLIER THAN JESUS CHRIST´S BIRTH, AND WAS LATER ON HOUSED BY THE CHRISTIAN HIERARCHY, ONCE THE NEW RELIGION WAS OFFICIALY ADOPTED BY THE AKSUMITA STATE. HOWEVER, THE ARK WASN´T HOUSED THERE FOR A LONG TIME SINCE THE INVADING ARMIES OF AHMED GRAÑ WERE NEAR THERE AND SO IT HAD TO BE MOVED SOMEWHERE ELSE TO PROTECT IT FROM DESTRUCTION AND PILLAGING. IT WAS DESTROYED IN 1531 BY THAT FANATIC MUSLIM INVADER, WHOSE FORCES TROUNCED THE HORN OF AFRICA, FROM HARAR ONWARDS, AND THREATENED EVERYONE TO PUT AN END TO ETHIOPIAN CHRISTIANISM. IN 1535 AHMED GRAÑ DESTROYED AND SACKED AKSUM.”

“IN 1635 ONCE PEACE WAS RESTORED IN AKSUM THE ARK WAS BROUGHT BACK AGAIN TO BE HOUSED IN THE 2ND CHURCH OF ST. MARY – BUILT BY FASILIDES – WHERE IT WAS UNTIL 1965, WHEN HAILE SELASSIE HAD IT MOVED TO THE SAFER NEW CHAPEL BUILT AT THE SAME TIME AS ITS SPLENDID CATHEDRAL, AND ADJACENT TO THE 17TH CENTURY CHURCH.”

“IN 1983 G.H. WENT TO ADDIS ABEBA TO LOOK INTO THE MATTER AND CHECK WHAT THE MONK HAD TOLD HIM. G.H. MANAGED TO TALK TO PROFESSOR RICHARD PANKHURST, WHO WAS AND STILL IS THE BEST ETHIOPIAN HISTORIAN. THIS SCHOLAR FOUNDED THE RESPECTED INSTITUTE OF ETHIOPIAN STUDIES IN THE UNIVERSITY OF ADDIS ABEBA, AND TALKED ABOUT THE COLLABORATION BETWEEN G.H. AND HIM ON THIS TOPIC IN THE ROYAL ASIATIC SOCIETY OF LONDON. RICHARD PANKHURST TOLD G.H THAT THE OLDEST VERSION OF THE STORY BETWEEN SOLOMON AND QUEEN SHEBAH, MENELIK AND THE ROBBERY OF THE ARK OF THE ALLIANCE FROM THE 1ST TEMPLE OF JERUSALEM IS FOUND IN A 13TH CENTURY AC MANUSCRIPT, KEBRA NEGAST (“THE GLORY OF THE KINGS”), REALLY VENERATED, AND WHICH MOST ETHIOPIANS THOUGHT TOLD “THE TRUTH, ALL TRUTH AND NOTHING BUT THE TRUTH”.

“G.H. DID A LOT OF RESEARCH VISITING MANY CHRISTIAN CHURCHES, BUT IT WAS THE ONES NEAR LAKE TANA, NEAR BAHAR DAR, WHICH MADE HIM NOTICE THE REAL MEANING OF THEIR TABERNACLES, OF THEIR TABOTS. HE FOUND OUT A CHURCH WITHOUT A TABOT IS NOTHING. THE FACT THAT THE ARK WAS A PRECHRISTIAN RELIC – HAVING NOTHING TO DO WITH JESUS CHRIST – AND THAT ON TOP OF THAT THE ARK HAD BEEN GIVEN SO MUCH RELEVANCE AS TO HAVING ONE ARK REPLICA IN EACH OF THE ETHIOPIAN CHURCHES´ TABOTS BLEW HIM AWAY, AND MADE IT MORE INTRIGUING TO SAY THE LEAST”.

“G.H. WANTED TO VISIT FALASHA VILLAGES. FALASHAS ARE BLACK JEWISH NATIVE ONES. HOWEVER, AN IMPORTANT CIVIL SERVANT, AN INTERPRETER, BALCHA, WARNED HIM AND OTHERS THAT THEY SHOULD NOT INTERVIEW NOR PHOTOGRAPH ANY JEWISH ETHIOPIANS. BALCHA SAID THAT THE ETHIOPIAN GOVERNMENT TOLD PEOPLE TO SAY THAT FALASHAS DO NOT EXIST. THEREFORE, BALCHA TOLD G.H. THAT IF THE GOVERNMENT SAYS THAT FALASHAS DON´T EXIST – THOUGH THEY DO – THAT MEANS NEITHER YOU NOR ANYBODY CAN PHOTOGRAPH NOR TALK TO THEM. G.H. WAS TOLD THAT THE YEAR BEFORE BALCHA WAS ARRESTED BY THE POLICE, FOR TAKING A CANADIAN RESEARCH CREW TO SEE THE FALASHAS, SINCE THEY WERE INTERESTED IN THE JEWISH PEOPLE AND HAD ALL THE OFFICIAL PERMITS. BALCHA WAS ENCARCERATED FOR SEVERAL WEEKS, GUILTY OF PROPAGANDA AGAINST THE STATE. BALCHA SAID ADDIS ABEBA WAS THE HOME TO THE ORGANIZATION OF THE AFRICAN UNITY (OAU), AND THAT ETHIOPIA HAD JOINED THE OTHER AFRICAN STATES WHICH SUSPENDED DIPLOMATIC RELATIONS WITH ISRAEL RIGHT AFTER THE LAST ARAB-ISRAELI WAR. HOWEVER, CLANDESTINE CONTACT BETWEEN BOTH COUNTRIES STILL EXISTED. INDEED, ISRAELITES WERE SUPPLYING ARMS TO THE ETHIOPIAN REGIME IN EXCHANGE FOR LETTING HUNDREDS OF FALASHAS EMIGRATE TO ISRAEL EVERY YEAR. THE ETHIOPIAN GOVERNMENT FEARED THAT THE UNDERCOVER ARM BARTER FOR ISRAELITES COULD BE KNOWN TO THE OUA, WHICH COULD BE QUITE EMBARRASING.”

“IN THE AUTUMN OF 1983 G.H. WENT TO LONDON TO VISIT RICHARD PANKHURST AND ASKED HIM IF HE KNEW SINCE WHEN TABOTS WERE USED IN CHRISTIAN ETHIOPIAN CHURCHES, AND HE SAID HE HAD NO IDEA. AT THAT MOMENT RICHARD TOOK ONE BOOK FROM HIS BOOKSHELF, THE ETHIOPIAN ORTHODOX CHURCH AND IN THE CHAPTER “THE CONSECRATION OF A CHURCH” THEY FOUND THIS KEY DEFINITION: “THE CONSECRATION OF A CHURCH IS A SOLEMN AND IMPRESSIVE CEREMONY, WITH RITES SYMBOLIZING THE SACRED USES WHICH THE BUILDING WILL BE DEDICATED TO. ITS DIVERSE PARTS DATE BACK TO A LONG TIME AGO. THE TABOT OR ARK, PREVIOUSLY CONSECRATED BY THE PATRIARCH, IS PLACED WITH GREAT POMP, AND CONSTITUTES THE MAIN FEATURE OF THE CEREMONY.” IN ANOTHER CHAPTER, “THE ECCLESIASTIC BUILDINGS”, HE FOUND THIS LINE: “IT´S THE TABOT WHICH CONFERS SANCTITY TO A CHURCH WHERE IT´S PLACED.” FINALLY, IN THE GLOSSARY HE FOUND THE WORD “TABOT” SIMPLY DEFINED AS “ARK OF THE COVENANCE”.”

“IN 1989 G.H. WENT WITH HIS FAMILY ON HOLIDAYS TO CHARTRES IN FRANCE AND VISITED THE NEW GOTHIC CATHEDRAL THERE: IMG_1167
.WHILE WALKING AROUND IT HE SAW MANY STATUES, LIKE AN ENIGMATIC REPRESENTATION OF THE QUEEN OF SHABAH, NEXT TO SOLOMON, THE ARK AND THE HOLY GRIAL. HOWEVER, WHAT REALLY CAUGHT HIS EYE WAS THAT UNDER THE STATUE OF QUEEN SHABAH´S FEET THERE WAS AN AFRICAN GUY ( AN ETHIOPIAN SLAVE). THAT MEANT THAT THOSE SCULPTORS AND BUILDERS OF CHARTRES CATHEDRAL KNEW ABOUT THE ETHIOPIAN TRADITIONS AND ABOUT THE QUEEN OF SHABAH BEING ETHIOPIAN, AND NOT FROM YEMEN AND CONSEQUENTLY ARAB, LIKE SOME BELIEVED. WELL, IF THAT WASN´T ENOUGH SOMETHING ELSE STILL THAT DAY AT CHARTRES CATHEDRAL BLEW HIS MIND, AND IT WAS AMINIATURE BOX OR CHEST, WHICH WAS MOVED BY AN OXEN CART:IMG_1174, GOING IN THE DIRECTION OF QUEEN OF SHABAH, AND THE WORDS ARCHA CEDERIS, IN CAPITAL LETTERS, WERE INSCRIBED BELOW IT: IMG_1175.

THEY MEAN YOU´VE GOT TO PAVE YOUR WAY THROUGH THE ARK”. THERE WAS ALSO A MAN BENT OVER THE SAME BOX OR CHEST, AND BELOW IT THERE WAS THE FOLLOWING INSCRIPTION, SOMEHOW DIFFICULT TO DECODE: “HIC AMIGITUR ARCHA CEDERIS”, WHICH MEANS “HERE THINGS STAY ON COURSE: YOU´VE GOT TO PAVE YOUR WAY THROUGH THE ARK”.”

“G.H. SAW IN CHARTRES CATHEDRAL THE MIXTURE OF 2 CULTURES: THE CHRISTIAN AND THE ETHIOPIAN ONE:IMG_1189

THREE KEY EXAMPLES IN THE NORTH PORTICO OF CHARTRES CATHEDRAL ILLUSTRATING THIS DIVERSITY ARE THESE:

1.”THE STATUE OF MELQUISEDEC, PRIEST AND KING IN SALEM WHICH SOME RESEARCHES IDENTIFY WITH JERUSALEM, WITH HIS CUP, WHICH COULD REPRESENT ISRAEL AS DEPICTED IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. MELQUISEDEC IS IDENTIFIED WITH CHRIST IN THE BOOK OF HEBREWS”:

IMG_1169

IMG_1176

IMG_1177

2.”THE QUEEN OF SHABAH WITH THE AFRICAN SLAVE, REPRESENTING ETHIOPIA”:IMG_1172

3.”AND BETWEEN BOTH WE SEE THE ARK OF THE ALLIANCE. THIS MEANS THAT THE ARK HAD TRAVELLED FROM JERUSALEM TO ETHIOPIA, WHICH IS EXACTLY WHAT KEBRA NEGAST STATES” “.

“THE NORTH PORTICO OF CHARTRES CATHEDRAL REPRESENTS MAINLY CHRIST´S PRECURSORS IN THE OLD TESTAMENT. MELQUISEDEC, HOLDING A CUP WHERE WE SEE A CYLINDRICAL OBJECT, PROBABLY SYMBOLIZES THE BREAD AND WINE OF THE EUCHARIST”. “G.H. THINKS THE REASON WHY BUILDERS AND SCULPTORS OF THE 12TH AND 13TH CENTURIES DID SUCH NORTH PORTICO WITH SUCH ENIGMATIC STATUES IS BECAUSE THEY WANTED TO COMMUNICATE ALL OF US THE KEY HISTORICAL ENIGMA OF ALL TIMES: THAT THE ARK OF THE COVENANCE, THE ARK OF GOD´S LAWS, WAS TAKEN FROM JERUSALEM TO ETHIOPIA.

“DURING A TRIP TO ISRAEL G.H. FOUND A BEAUTIFUL SMALL DOMINICOS CHURCH BUILT IN 1924, AND DEDICATED TO THE VIRGIN MARY ARK OF THE COVENANT. THIS CHURCH IS LOCATED BETWEEN TEL AVIV AND JERUSALEM, AND ITS BELL TOWER IS FINISHED OFF BY A REPRESENTATION OF THE ARK LIFE-SIZE”.

THE FOLLOWING  7 FACTS BACK UP THE EXISTENCE OF THE ARK:

1.”THE OLD TALMUDIC COMMENT DESCRIBING THE ARK AS A SOURCE OF BLESSINGS:

“WHEN SOLOMON BROUGHT THE ARK TO THE TEMPLE, ALL THE GOLD TREES AROUND THERE BLEW UP WITH HUMIDITY AND GAVE ABUNDANT FRUIT TO THE PRIESTS THERE” “

IMG_1162

2.”THE ARK EMITTED IMPRESSIVE LUMINESCENCE. THE ARK WAS PLACED IN THE DARK, IN THE SANCTUM OF SOLOMON´S TEMPLE, AND ACCORDING TO TALMUD SOURCES THE PRIEST OF ISRAEL WENT IN AND OUT OF THERE BY THE LIGHT THE HOLY ARK BEAMED. THAT WAS A COMPORTABLE STATE WHICH CHANGED ONCE THE RELIC MYSTERIOUSLY DISAPPEARED, AND FROM THAT MOMENT ON THE PRIEST WOULD GROPE ABOUT IN THE DARK. THEREFORE, THE ARK WAS A PARANORMAL SOURCE OF LIGHT, SINCE IT BEAMED A BLIND RADIATION, ACCORDING TO MANY BIBLICAL PASSAGES”:

IMG_1179

3.”THE ARK WAS A GOLD-PLATED CHEST WITH A  GOLD  LID,  BUT  IT  WASN´T THIS PRECIOUS METAL WHICH GENERATED SUCH POWERFUL LIGHT. RATHER THE GIFT HAD TO DO WITH THE FACT THAT THE ARK WAS SOAKED IN WITH BURNING CELESTIAL ENERGY, AND IT WAS THIS ENERGY THE 2 STONE TABLETS EMITTED, ONCE GOD WROTE THE 10 COMMANDMENTS ON THEM. AND THIS ALSO MADE MOSES´ FACE SPARKLE WITH A STRANGE SUPERNATURAL GLOW THE MOMENT HE DESCENDED MOUNT SINAI:   Image 1-9-16 at 8.25 (5) 

“WHEN MOSES DESCENDED MOUNT SINAI CARRYING THE 2 TESTIMONY STONE TABLETS HE DIDN´T KNOW THAT HIS FACE´S SKIN HAD TURNED RADIANT…, AND WHEN AARON AND ALL THE ISRAELITES SAW MOSES THEY NOTICED HIS FACE SPARKLED AND FEARED OF  GETTING  NEAR  HIM” “. (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

4.”THE FOLLOWING BIBLICAL DESCRIPTIONS OF THE ARK:

4.1. IN NUMBERS 10-33, FOR EXAMPLE, THE ARK CHOSE THE ROUTE THE ISRAELITES WERE GOING TO FOLLOW THROUGH THE DESERT, AND DECIDED AS WELL WHERE THEY WERE GOINT TO CAMP.

4.2. IN THE BOOK OF CHRONICLES THERE WERE ALSO EXAMPLES OF “PREDESTINED” INDIVIDUALS TO CARRY THE ARK:

“GOD´S ARK CAN ONLY BE CARRIED BY THE LEVITES, SINCE THOSE CARRYING THE ARK HAVE ALREADY BEEN CHOSEN BY GOD TO ENSURE PERPETUALLY THEIR SERVICE” “.

5.”IN THE AUTHORIZED ENGLISH TRANSLATION BY MR. E.A. WALLIS BUDGE G.H. FOUND THIS TEXT WHERE GOD´S ARK IS COMPARED TO A WOMAN FREE TO CHANGE HER MIND:

“AND AS TO WHAT YOU SAY ABOUT THE ARK OF THE ALLIANCE GOING TO ETHIOPIA, IF GOD WANTED AND SHE (=THE ARK) WANTED THERE WAS NOONE WHO COULD STOP IT FROM HAPPENING, BECAUSE BY HER OWN WILL IT WENT THERE, AND BY HER OWN WILL WILL COME BACK IF GOD WANTS TO.” G.H. FOUND OUT THAT THE ARK HAD A GREAT INTELLIGENCE, AND THAT THE HONOR OF WHOEVER WAS IN CHARGE OF SAFEGUARDING IT WAS CHOSEN BY CELESTIAL PREDESTINATION: “THE ARK GOES BY ITS FREEWILL WHEREVER SHE WANTS TO, AND CAN´T BE MOVED FROM HER PLACE IF SHE DOESN´T WANT TO”.

6.”WITHOUT GOD´S WILL GOD´S ARK WON´T STAY ANYWHERE. THE LORD´S CHOSEN ONES ARE ETHIOPIAN PEOPLE, BECAUSE THERE IS WHERE THE LORD´S HOME IS, THE CELESTIAL ZION, THE ARK OF HIS ALLIANCE. IN CHAPTER 60 OF KEBRA NEGAST THERE IS A LONG LAMENT BY SOLOMON WHEN HE KNEW THE ARK HAD BEEN SEIZED BY HIS SON MENELIK FROM JERUSALEM SANCTUM. DURING THE BEST MOMENT OF THAT LONG LAMENT AN ANGEL APPEARED TO HIM AND ASKED HIM THIS: “WHY ARE YOU SO SAD? THAT HAS HAPPENED BECAUSE GOD WANTED IT THAT WAY. THE ARK HAS BEEN GIVEN TO YOUR FIRST-BORN”. AND KING SOLOMON WAS CONFORTED WITH HIS WORDS AND SAID: “MAY GOD´S WILL BE DONE, NOT MAN´S”. LET´S IMAGINE THE FACT THAT IN BOTH THE GRIAL LITERATURE AND IN PARZIBAL PRESTER JOHN (“A LEGENDARY CHRISTIAN PATRIACH AND KING POPULAR IN EUROPEAN CHRONICLES AND TRADITION FROM THE 12TH THROUGH THE 17TH CENTURY” –WIKIPEDIA-) IS MENTIONED. IT´S IN 1145 WHEN HIS NAME IS HEARD FOR THE 1ST TIME IN EUROPE, IN THE CHRONICLE BY OTTO I, BISHOP OF FREISING (C.1114-1158). THE BISHOP TALKED ABOUT A PERSON CALLED JOHN, A REALLY RICH KING, PRIEST AND A CHRISTIAN WHO LIVED IN THE FARTHEST EAST, AND SENT HUGE ARMIES TO DEFEND JERUSALEM. IN 1165 PRESTE JOHN WROTE A LETTER WITH THREATENING FIGURES AS TO HIS ARMIES, RICHNESS AND POWER, ADDRESSED TO SOME CHRISTIAN KINGS, PARTICULARLY TO EMPEROR MANUEL I OF CONSTANTINOPLE (13TH CENTURY), AND TO THE HOLY ROMAN EMPEROR FEDERICK II (1194-1250). IN II77 POPE ALEXANDER III PUBLISHED AN ANSWER TO PRESTE JOHN´S LETTER, AND THIS RESPONSE ALSO REFERED TO A SUBSEQUENT PETITION BY PRESTE JOHN ASKING FOR AN ALTAR FOR THE CHURCH OF THE HOLY TOMB OF JERUSALEM. PRESTE JOHN MUST HAVE SURELY BEEN HARBE – ALIBALA´S OLDER BROTHER, WHO IN 1177 CAME TO THE THRONE OF ETHIOPIA. LET´S IMAGINE G.H. WAS TOTALLY RIGHT WHEN HE THOUGHT BOTH THE SCULPTURES OF CHARTRES AND THE RELEVANT NARRATIVE POEM BY WOLFRAM IMG_1182 WERE CREATED EXPLICITLY IN ORDER TO SERVE AS ESOTERIC MAPS OF THE ONE AND ONLY TREASURE, AND THAT THE HIDDEN PLACE OF THE ARK THOSE MAPS LED TO WAS ETHIOPIA. THESE FRENCH AND GERMAN ARTISTS´ GOAL WAS TO ENSURE THE TRANSMISSION OF THE SECRET TO FUTURE GENERATIONS”.

7.”THE KNIGHTS TEMPLAR (C. 1119-1312) WERE A WESTERN CHRISTIAN MILITARY ORDER OF MONKS WITH HEADQUARTERS IN JERUSALEM, IN THE OLD SITE OF THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON, THE SAME PLACE WHERE THE ARK OF THE COVENANT HAD INEXPLICABLY DISAPPEARED FROM IN THE TIMES OF THE OLD TESTAMENT:

IMG_1184 IMG_1183

IMG_1187

IMG_1190

8.IN 1896 WHEN KING MENELIK II FOUGHT AGAINST ITALIAN SOLDIERS IN THE BATTLE OF ADWA IN TIGRAY THE PRIESTS TOOK THE ARK OF THE COVENANT TO THE BATTLEFIELD TO FACE THE ITALIANS. FINALLY, MENELIK WON AND CAME BACK TO ADDIS ABEBA WITH ALL THE HONORS.

( EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

HERE´S A LIST OF PEOPLE AND FACTS BACKING UP THE ARK IS IN AKSUM TODAY:

1.”DOCTOR BELAI GEDAI, AN ETHIOPIAN SPECIALIST, RECOMMENDED BY RICHARD PANKHURST TO GRAHAM HANCOCK“.

2.”TODAY THERE ARE MORE THAN 20.OOO CHURCHES AND MONASTERIES IN ETHIOPIA AND ALL HAVE AT LEAST 1 TABOT (= A REPLICA OF THE ARK)”.

3.”AN ARMENIAN GEOGRAPHER NAMED ABU SALIH SAW THE ORIGINAL ARK. ABU SALIH LIVED DURING THE BEGINNING OF THE 13TH CENTURY AND WENT AROUND ALL THE CHRISTIAN CHURCHES AND MONASTERIES IN EGYPT, AND VISITED SOME NEIGHBORING COUNTRIES LIKE ETHIOPIA. HIS BOOK, CHURCHES AND MONASTERIES OF EGYPT AND SOME NEIGHBORING COUNTRIES, HE MAKES REFERENCES TO THEM. IN PAGE 284 OF THE ENGLISH TRANSLATION OF HIS BOOK HE MENTIONS THIS:

“THE ABYSSINIANS HAVE THE ARK OF THE COVENANT WHICH HOUSE THE 2 STONE TABLES OF LAW WRITTEN BY GOD FOR THE ISRAELITES. THE ARK IS PLACED ON THE ALTAR, BUT IT ISN´T AS WIDE AS THE ALTAR; IT´S ABOUT 23-INCH HIGH AND IT´S COVERED IN GOLD.” “(EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

4.”ABU SALIH PROVIDES US WITH PRECISE DETAILS AS TO HOW THE ARK WAS USED BY CHRISTIANS IN AKSUM: “THE LITURGY WITH THE ARK WAS 4 TIMES A YEAR IN THE KING´S PALACE, AND THEY SPREAD ONE CANOPY OVER IT BEFORE IT WAS TAKEN OUT OF ITS CHURCH AND TAKEN TO THE ONE THAT IS IN THE PALACE. THESE FESTIVITIES WERE THE FOLLOWING:

-THE NATIVITY

-THE GLORIOUS BAPTISM

-THE SACRED RESURRECTION

-THE INSPIRATIONAL CROSS.

BOTH THE DIMENSIONS AND THE LOOK, TOGETHER WITH WHAT ABU SALIH SAID ABOUT THE ARK BEING COVERED BY A CANOPY WHEN IT WAS DISPLAYED ON A RELIGIOUS PARADE WAS IN ACCORDANCE WITH THE RULES MENTIONED IN THE BIBLE: “WHENEVER BREAK CAMP TIME COMES THEY WILL DESMANTLE THE CANOPY AND THEY WILL COVER THE ARK WITH IT. AND… THEY WILL SPREAD A CLOTH OVER IT…” “

5.”ETHIOPIAN LANGUAGE, AMHARIC AND HEBREW ARE ALL SEMITIC LANGUAGES. IN BIBLICAL HEBREW THE MOST USED WORD TO REFER TO THE ARK IS   ´ARON. HOWEVER, THERE´S ANOTHER HEBREW WORD: TEBAH, WHICH ACCORDING TO LINGUISTS RESEARH TABOT HAD DERIVED FROM. THE WORD TEBAH APPEARS IN THE HEBREW OLD TESTAMENT TWICE AND THOSE 2 TIMES IT WAS USED TO REFER TO A SHIP-SHAPED CONTAINER:

NOAH´S ARK, WHICH HOUSED MANKIND´S SURVIVORS AFTER THE FLOOD.

THE ARK OF BULRUSHES, WHERE THE 3-MONTH-OLD BABY MOSES WAS LAID BY HIS MOTHER WANTING TO PROTECT HIM FROM THE EGYPTIAN MANDATE. MOSES´ MOTHER PLACED THE ARK IN REEDS BY THE NILE”.

6.”PROFESSOR EDWARD ULLENDORFF, FELLOW OF THE BRITISH ACADEMY AND THE FIRST HEAD OF THE DEPARTMENT OF ETHIOPIAN STUDIES OF THE UNIVERSITY OF LONDON, EXPLAINED WHY ETHIOPIANS ENDED UP CALLING WOOD OR STONE TABLETS ARKS OR TABOTS:

“SUPPOSEDLY THE ARK IS IN AKSUM; THE REST OF THE OTHER CHURCHES CAN ONLY HAVE REPLICAS, TABOTS. IN MOST CASES THEY AREN´T COPIES OF THE WHOLE ARK, BUT SIMPLY OF ITS CONTENT, THAT IS, OF THE TABLETS OF LAW…IN OTHER WORDS, CALLING THESE STONE TABLETS “TABOTAT” IS A “PARS PRO TOTO” REFERRED TO THE MOST IMPORTANT PART OF THE ARK, THE TABLETS OF THE COVENANT” “.

7.”IN THE GREAT EPIC POEM KEBRA NEGAST WE ARE TOLD THAT JEWISH RELIGION HAD BEEN INTRODUCED IN ETHIOPIA IN 950 BC, WHEN MENELIK AND HIS COLLEAGUES ARRIVED WITH THE ARK. EVEN QUEEN OF SHABAH CONVERTED INTO JUDAISM. 20TH CENTURY CHRISTIAN MISIONARIES, AFTER HEARING NEWS OF ABBYSINIAN JEWS IN ETHIOPIA, DECIDED TO TRAVEL THERE IN ORDER TO CONVERT THEM. ONE OF THESE EVANGELISTS WAS MARTIN FLAD, A GERMAN YOUNGSTER WHO GOT TO ETHIOPIA IN 1855 TO CONVERT JEWS INTO CHRISTIANS. HE WROTE THE FALASHAS FROM ABYSSINIA IN 1869 WHERE HE INSISTED ON THE IDEA THAT THERE MUST HAVE BEEN JEWS IN ETHIOPIA SINCE JEREMIAH TIMES (627 BC), AND PROBABLY SINCE SOLOMON´S REIGN TOO. FLAD BASED THAT ARGUMENT ON THIS STATEMENT:

“FALASHAS DON´T HAVE ANY NEWS NEITHER ABOUT THE TALMUD OF BABYLON NOR ABOUT THE ONE OF JERUSALEM, WHICH WERE BOTH WRITTEN DURING THE CAPTIVITY AND AFTERWARDS. THEY DON´T OBSERVE THE JEWISH PURIM HOLIDAY NOR THE REDEDICATION OF THE HOLY TEMPLE, ONE WHICH CONTINUES BEING COMMEMORATED SOLEMNLY BY JEWS TODAY. THE REDEDICATION OF THE HOLY TEMPLE (THE 2ND ONE) KNOWN AS HANUKKAH WAS INTRODUCED IN 165 BC. THE NON-OBSERVANCE OF HANUKKAH MEANT THAT FALASHAS MUST HAVE BECOME JEWS BEFORE 164 BC, NOT THROUGH YEMEN BUT THROUGH OTHER SOURCES. REGARDING PURIM FESTIVITY, WHICH WAS ALSO IGNORED BY ETHIOPIAN JEWS, IT HAS BEEN OBSERVED AT LEAST SINCE THE 2ND CENTURY BC”.

ACCORDING TO FLAD, FALASHAS ENDED UP STRANDED FROM THE WORLD EVOLUTION BODY OF JUDAISM DURING THE 6TH CENTURY BC. GRAHAM HANCOCK WAS ALMOST SURE FALASHAS´ JUDAISM HAD COME TO ETHIOPIA DURING THE TIMES OF THE OLD TESTAMENT, LIKE KEBRA NEGAST, AND FALASHAS HAD SAID SO”.

8.”A 19TH CENTURY MISSIONARY, HENRY AARON STERN, A GERMAN JEW CONVERTED INTO CHRISTIANISM, HAD WORKED AND TRAVELLED WITH FLAD IN ETHIOPIA AND PUBLISHED HIS WANDERINGS AMONG THE FALASHAS IN ABYSSINIA IN 1862. REGARDING THE ENCLOSURE DESTINED TO THE SLAUGHTERING OF ANIMALS STERN SAID THIS:

“THIS SANCTUARY IS KEPT ZEALOULY FROM ANY ILEGITIMATE INTRUSION…AND POOR THE STRANGER WHO, IGNORANT OF THE FALASHA CUSTOMS, DARES COME TOO NEAR THE FORBIDDEN AREAS… ONCE AFTER SEVERAL HOURS WALKING WE ARRIVED AT A FALASHA VILLAGE. EAGER TO GET SOME REST I LOOKED FOR A COOL AND QUIET PLACE WHEN I SAW A PLACE COVERED IN GRASS AND A BLOCK OF STONE, WHICH SEEMED TO HAVE BEEN CHARITABLY PUT TO INVITE ANYONE TIRED TO TAKE A REST. THE THORNY FENCE GAVE WAY EASILY TO THE IRON SPEAR, AND I WAS ABOUT TO SIT ON THAT FLAT STONE WHEN A CHOIR OF ANNOYED VOICES… MADE ME REALIZE MY MISTAKE AND IT URGED ME TO LEAVE HASTILY” THIS SACRIFICE OF ANIMALS STARTED TO EVOLVE AFTER THE EXODUS OF EGYPT, AROUNG 1250 BC. DURING THE TIME HEBREWS WERE IN THE SINAI DESERT, THE ARK OF THE COVENANT WAS BUILT AND HOUSED IN A PORTABLE TENT OR TABERNACLE. FROM THAT MOMENT ON ALL SACRIFICES HAD TO BE MADE BEFORE THIS TABERNACLE´S DOOR, AND WHOEVER DISOBEYING THAT LAW WOULD BE PUNISHED WITH EXILE: “EVERY ISRAELITE…WHO OFFERS AN HOLOCAUST OR A SACRIFICE WITHOUT TAKING IT TO THE ENTRANCE OF THE TENT OF THE REUNION TO OFFER IT TO YAHVEH WILL BE BLOWN AWAY”. G.H FOUND THAT PROHIBITION WAS NOT AS ABSOLUTE AS IT SEEMED. THEIR MAIN AIM WAS TO GET PEOPLE TO CARRY OUT SACRIFICES EXCLUSIVELY IN A CENTRALIZED NATIONAL WORSHIP PLACE WHEN IT REALLY EXISTED. FROM 1200 TO 1000 BC THE NATIONAL SANCTUARY IN SILO BECAME THE NEW SACRIFICE CENTER, AND AROUND 950 BC SOLOMON´S TEMPLE IN JERUSALEM REPLACED SILO AS A NATIONAL RELIGIOUS CENTER. THIS PROHIBITION WAS TAKEN SO SERIOUSLY THAT NO SACRIFICE WAS CARRIED OUT BY ANY JEWS ONCE THE TEMPLE WAS DESTROYED BY NABUCODONOSOR IN 587 BC. THEREFORE, AS LONG AS THERE WAS NO TEMPLE THERE COULD NOT BE ANY SACRIFICES. AFTER THE RETURN OF THE EXILED IN BABYLON THE 2ND TEMPLE IN JERUSALEM WAS BUILT AND SUCH PROHIBITION OF LOCAL OFFERINGS WAS REINFORCED AND LASTED FROM 520 BC TO 70 AC, WHEN THE 2ND TEMPLE WAS DESTROYED BY THE ROMAN EMPEROR TITO. AFTER MUCH RESEARCH ON FALASHAS PRACTICE OF SACRIFICES G.H. CAME TO THESE CONCLUSIONS:

8.1.THE ANCESTORS OF TODAY´S FALASHAS MUST HAVE CONVERTED TO JUDAISM DURING THE TIMES WHEN PRACTICE OF LOCAL SACRIFICES WERE PERMITTED: Image 1-9-16 at 8.22 .

THESE PRACTICE OF LOCAL SACRIFICES WAS CARRIED OUT BY PEOPLE WHO LIVED FAR FROM THE CENTRALIZED NATIONAL SANCTUARY. THE CONVERSION COULD HAVE EASILY TAKEN PLACE BEFORE THE PROHIBITION OF THE PRACTICE OF LOCAL SACRIFICES BY KING JOSIAH, THAT IS, NOT LATER THAN THE 7TH CENTURY BC, OR EVEN BEFORE THAT.

8.2.HYPOTHESIS: AT SOME TIME AFTER THE CONSTRUCTION OF SOLOMON TEMPLE (MID 900 BC), BUT BEFORE JOSIAH (MID 600 BC) A GROUP OF JEWS EMIGRATED FROM ISRAEL AND SETTLED DOWN IN ETHIOPIA. THEY SET UP LOCAL ALTARS WHERE THEY CARRIED OUT SACRIFICES TO GOD, AND STARTED CONVERTING NATIVE PEOPLE TO THEIR RELIGION. IT´S UNLIKELY THEY COULD KEEP IN CONTACT WITH THEIR FAMILIES IN ISRAEL DUE TO THE BIG DISTANCE SO THEY FINALLY WOUNDED UP TOTALLY STRANDED. THAT´S WHY THEY HADN´T BEEN AFFECTED BY THE GREAT REVOLUTIONS ON THE THEOLOGIAN THINKING WHICH HAPPENED IN THE JEWISH WORLD DURING LATER CENTURIES. THIS EXPLAINS WHY FALASHAS ARE THE ONLY JEWS WHO CONTINUE PRACTISING SACRIFICES. THEY ARE THE ONLY SURVIVORS OF THE AUTHENTIC JUDAISM OF THE 1ST TEMPLE.Image 1-9-16 at 8.23 (1) Image 1-9-16 at 8.23 (2)

8.3.QUESTION: WHY WOULD A GROUP OF JEWS WANT TO EMIGRATE FROM ISRAEL TO A FAR PLACE IN ETHIOPIA SOME TIME BETWEEN THE 10TH AND THE 7TH CENTURY BC? THEY MUST HAVE HAD SOME VERY GOOD REASON TO DO SUCH A LONG DISTANCE TRIP.

8.4.ANSWER:

8.4.1 ACCORDING TO KEBRA NEGAST THERE´S NO DOUBT ABOUT IT. THE EMIGRANTS WERE THE ISRAEL ELDERS´ FIRST-BORNS, AND CAME TO ETHIOPIA AS MENELIK´S ENTOURAGE, PROTECTING THE SACRED ARK OF THE COVENANT WHICH HAD BEEN STOLEN FROM THE TEMPLE.

8.4.2 THE BOOK TRAVELS TO DISCOVER THE SOURCE OF THE NILE IN THE YEARS 1768-1773 BY THE SCOTCH ADVENTURER JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD, TOGETHER WITH THE “REAL CHRONICLES” WERE RECOMMENDED TO G.H. BY PANTEHURST. THESE CHRONICLES BACKED UP, WITH DOCUMENTARY EVIDENCE, A SERIES OF WARS BETWEEN CHRISTIANS AND JEWS. JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD HAD RESEARCHED THE RELIGION, CUSTOMS AND HISTORICAL ORIGINS OF THE BLACK JEWS FROM ABYSSINIA. BY MEANS OF INTERVIEWS TO ELDERS AND RELIGIOUS PERSONALITIES HE WAS ABLE TO COLLECT MANY OLD TRADITONS THAT WOULD HAVE BEEN LOST OTHERWISE. ONE OF THOSE IS WHEN KING EZANA OF AKSUM WAS READING THE PSALMS BY DAVID AND HE IS INTRODUCED TO FRUMENCIO, A SYRIAN YOUNG MAN WHO LATER ON CONVERTED HIM TO CHRISTIANISM. BESIDES THIS, BRUCE MADE IT CLEAR THE KNOWLEDGE THE KING HAD ON THE OLD TESTAMENT VERSES OF THAT BOOK WAS DUE TO THE WIDESPREAD PREVALENCE OF JUDAISM IN EHTIOPIA AT THAT TIME, THAT IS, IN THE 1ST HALF OF THE 4TH CENTURY AC. ALL THIS BACKS UP G.H.´S HYPOTHESIS OF THE EXISTENCE OF A JEWISH RELIGION WHICH INCLUDED THE BLOODY SACRIFICES AND WHICH REACHED ETHIOPIA AT LEAST 1000 YEARS BEFORE FRUMENCIO APPEARED TO PREACH CHRIST´S GOSPEL

8.5.MORE CONFIRMATION ON THAT COMES FROM AN ETHIOPIAN MANUSCRIPT FOUND IN THE TIGRAY FORTRESS OF MAGDALA, ATTACKED AND SACKED BY BRITISH ARMIES, WHOSE BOSS WAS GENERAL NAPIER, IN THE 19TH CENTURY: A HISTORY AND GENEALOGY OF THE ANCIENT KINGS WHERE WE FIND THIS TEXT:

CHRISTIANISM WAS INTRODUCED IN ABYSSINIA 331 YEARS AFTER CHRIST WAS BORN. IT WAS ABUNA SALAMA – WHOSE EARLIER NAME WAS FRUMENTOS OR FRUMENTIUS – WHO DID IT. AT THAT TIME ETHIOPIAN KINGS REIGNED IN AKSUM. BEFIRE CHRISTIAN RELIGION BECAME KNOWN IN ETHIOPIA, HALF THEIR INHABITANTS WERE JEWS WHO OBSERVED THE LAW, AND THE OTHER HALF FOLLOWED WORSHIPPERS OF SANDO DRAGON”.

THE EXISTENCE OF THESE WORSHIPPERS OF SANDO DRAGON SUGGESTED JUDAISM HAD NEVER BECOME THE OFFICIAL RELIGION OF ETHIOPIA, AND THAT IN THE PRECHRISTIAN TIMES FALASHAS HAD ACCEPTED TO COEXIST WITH MULTIPLE PAGAN CREEDS.THE CONVERSION OF THE KING OF AKSUM COULD HAVE SEEM DISTURBING THEIR BELIEFS, AND FROM THEN ON JEWS AND CHRISTIANS COULD HAVE VERY WELL BEEN INVOLVED IN HEATED FIGHTS. BRUCE SAID THIS ABOUT FALASHAS: “THEY WERE REALLY POWERFUL WHEN THE CONVERSION TO CHRISTIANISM TOOK PLACE. THEY SAID THEIR KING WAS A PRINCE FROM THE JUDAH TRIBE, SOLOMON´S LINEAGE AND MENELIK. THAT PRINCE…REFUSED TO ABANDON HIS  ELDERS´ RELIGION”. 

“ACCORDING TO BRUCE SUCH THINGS SET THE GROUND FOR CONFLICTS, GIVEN THE FACT CHRISTIANS ASSURED THEY WERE GOVERNED BY A KING DESCENDANT OF SOLOMON´S LINEAGE: “ALTHOUGH THERE WAS NO BLOODSHED DUE TO THE DIVERSITY OF RELIGION, HAVING EACH RELIGION A DIFFERENT KING WITH THE SAME AMBITIONS, MANY BATTLES WERE FOUGHT DUE TO GREED AND RIVALRIES AS TO THE SOVEREIGN POWER”. BRUCE DIDN´T GIVE MUCH INFORMATION ON ALL THOSE BATTLES AND CONFLICTS. HOWEVER, HE DID SAY IN THE 6TH CENTURY AC, KALEB, A CHRISTIAN KING FROM AKSUM, GATHERED TOGETHER A BIG ARMY AND CROSSED THE RED SEA TO FIGHT A JEWISH MONARCH IN YEMEN. AT THE END OF THE GREAT EPIC POEM KEBRA NEGAST WE FIND A CHAPTER FULL OF ANTI JEWISH FEELINGS. ALL OF A SUDDEN ETHIOPIAN JEWS ARE DESCRIBED AS GOD´S ENEMIES, AND SO THE TEXT STOOD UP FOR THE DISMEMBERMENT, AND THE ARK DEVASTATION OF THEIR LANDS. ALL THIS WAS SAID IN A CONTEXT WHERE WE´RE TOLD KALEB HAS 2 SONS: ISRAEL AND GEBRE-MASKAL (ETHIOPIAN TERM WHICH MEANS “CROSS SLAVE”). IT´S NOT HARD TO NOTICE HERE THE SYMBOLISM OF A DIVISION WHERE THE CHRISTIAN PART IS REPRESENTED BY GEBRE-MASKAL AND THE JEWISH ONE BY ISRAEL. THIS ARGUMENT SEEMED MORE SOLID THE MOMENT G. H. REMEMBERED FALASHAS NEVER REFERRED TO THEMSELVES AS “FALASHAS” BUT AS “BETA ISRAEL”, THAT IS, “HOUSE OF ISRAEL” “.

8.6.THE WORDS “CART” AND “ZION” ARE MENTIONED SEVERAL TIMES. G.H. KNEW ZION WAS ONE OF THE EPITHETS OF THE ARK OF THE COVENANT, VERY OFTEN USED IN THE EPIC POEM KEBRA NEGAST. IT ALL BECAME CRYSTAL CLEAR WHEN G.H. READ THESE 2 TEXTS:

-“GOD WILL TELL GEBRE-MASKAL: “CHOOSE BETWEEN THE CART AND ZION”, AND HE´LL CHOOSE ZION AND WILL REIGN OPENLY IN HIS FATHER´S THRONE. AND GOD WILL HAVE ISRAEL CHOOSING THE CART, AND HE´LL REIGN SECRETLY AND WON´T BE VISIBLE.”

-“THE EPIC POEM KEBRA NEGAST FINISHED THIS WAY: “THE JEWS REIGN WILL BE FINISHED AND THE REIGN OF CHRIST WILL BE ESTABLISHED…THIS WAY GOD HAS GIVEN THE KING OF ETHIOPIA MORE GLORY, GRACE AND MAJESTY THAN TO THE OTHER KINGS ON EARTH, ALL DUE TO THE GLORY OF ZION, THE ARK OF GOD´S LAW” “.

9.”THE ARK OF THE COVENANT HAD BEEN THE CORE OF THE FIGHTS BETWEEN JEWS AND CHRISTIANS. THE FOLLOWERS OF THE NEW RELIGION, CHRISTIANITY, WERE THE MEEKLY WINNERS. HOWEVER, FALASHAS DIDN´T ACCEPT THEIR INVISIBILITY AND THEIR SUBORDINATE CONDITIONS WHICH CHRISTIANS HAD TRIED TO IMPOSE ON THEM. G.H. RESEARCHED ON THAT AND FOUND JEWS COUNTERATTACKED DECIDEDLY AND FOR A LONG TIME. THE FIRST SIGN OF A LASTING FIGHT BETWEEEN JEWS AND CHRISTIANS IN ABYSSINIA WAS IN A WRITTEN STORY BY A 19TH CENTURY TRAVELLER BY THE NAME OF ELDAD HA-DANI, KNOWN AS ELDAD THE DANITE BECAUSE HE CLAIMED DESCENT FROM THE ISRAELITE TRIBE OF DAN. HE TRAVELLED TO ETHIOPIA AND DESCRIBED JUDAISM THERE IN THE MID 19TH CENTURY AC. IN A LETTER HE WROTE IN 833 AC HE SAID THE DANITES AND 3 MORE “LOST” JEWISH CLANS LIVED IN ETHIOPIA, WHERE THEY GOT ENTANGLED IN A PERMANENT ANTAGONISM WITH THE CHRISTIAN RULERS OF THAT COUNTRY: “AND THEY KILLED ETHIOPIAN MEN, AND STILL TODAY THEY FIGHT AGAINST THE CHILDREN OF ETHIOPIA”. WHAT ELDAD SAID ABOUT THE ABYSSINIAN JEWS WAS SIMILAR TO WHAT WAS WRITTEN ABOUT FALASHAS. HE INSISTED ON THE FACT THAT THEY HAD EMIGRATED FROM THE HOLY LAND TO ETHIOPIA WHEN THE 1ST TEMPLE STILL EXISTED, JUST A BIT AFTER THE DIVISION BETWEEN THE REIGNS OF JUDAH AND ISRAEL, THAT IS, AROUND 931 BC. THAT´S WHY ABYSSINIAN JEWS DIDN´T CELEBRATE FESTIVITIES SUCH AS PURIM OR HANUKKAH. THEY DIDN´T HAVE RABBIS EITHER, “BECAUSE THEY APPEARED WITH THE 2ND TEMPLE AND THEY DIDN´T GET TO THEM”. HIS RELIGIOUS CIVIL SERVANTS WERE CALLED KAHEN, WORD DERIVED FROM HEBREW KOHEN, MORE FAMILIAR LIKE THE COMMON LAST NAME COHEN, WHICH MEANS “PRIEST” AND DATES BACK TO THE 1ST TEMPLE. ELDAD STATED THE ETHIOPIAN JEWISH TRIBES HAD BEEN SUCCESSFUL IN THEIR FIGHTS, SO POWER WAS IN BOTH CHRISTIANS´ AND JEWISH´S HANDS IN THE 9TH CENTURY AC AND IN THE BEGINNING OF THE 10TH CENTURY. IT WAS AT THIS TIME WHEN THE CHRISTIAN SOLOMONIC DYNASTY WAS OVERTHROWN AND THIS COUP DE ETAT HAD BEEN CARRIED OUT BY A JEWISH MONARCH, A QUEEN NAMED GUDIT, OR JUDIT, OR MAYBE YEHUDIT. AFTER GUDIT, THE ZAGWE DYNASTY WAS ENTHRONED AND KING LALIBALA BELONGED TO THE ZAGWE DYNASTY, WHICH WAS A JEWISH ONE WHO CONVERTED TO CHRISTIANISM. 50 YEARS AFTER KING LALIBALA´S DEATH THE ZAGWE DYNASTY ABDICATED IN FAVOR OF A SOLOMONIC MONARCH. HOWEVER, THE ZAGWE DYNASTY DID NOT PUT AN END TO THE CHRONIC STATE OF WAR BETWEEN JEWS AND ABYSSINIAN CHRISTIANS. BENJAMIN DE TUDELA, A SPANISH TRADER AND TRAVELLER WHO LIVED IN THE 12TH CENTURY, TELLS US ABOUT THE EXISTENCE IN JERUSALEM OF JEWS WHO “WEREN´T UNDER THE GENTILES´ OPPRESSION, WHO HAD CITIES AND CASTLES ON THE TOP OF MOUNTAINS.” HE TALKED ABOUT WARS BETWEEN CHRISTIANS AND FALASHAS WHERE FALASHAS USED TO WIN, SACKING AT THEIR PLEASURE, BECAUSE NOBODY COULD CONFRONT THEM.

IN THE 15TH CENTURY, A JEWISH TRAVELLER, ELIJAH DE FERRARA, SAID HE HAD MET IN JERUSALEM A YOUND FALASHA MAN WHO TOLD HIM HIS CO-RELIGIONISTS “KEPT THEIR INDEPENDENCE IN A MOUNTAINOUS REGION, FROM WHERE THEY STARTED CONTINUOUS WARS AGAINST THE CHRISTIAN EMPERORS OF ETHIOPIA.” SARSA DENGEL, THE SOLOMONIC EMPEROR WHO REIGNED FROM 1563 TO 1594, CARRIED OUT A WAR CAMPAIGN AGAINST THEM, A CAMPAIGN WHICH A RESPECTED SPECIALIST DESCRIBED AS “A TRUE CRUSADE”. IN 1984 THE NUMBER OF FALASHAS IN ETHIOPIA WAS 28,000 PEOPLE. THEREFORE THE REASON WHY FALASHAS HAD BECOME POOR WAS BECAUSE EMPEROR SUSNEYOS (1607) AND OTHER CHRISTIAN EMPERORS HAD SUBMITTED FALASHAS TO MASSACRE AND SLAVERY”.

10.”THE STORY OF THE THEFT OF THE ARK WAS RULING IN THE EPIC POEM OF KEBRA NEGAST, AND THAT LEADS US TO BELIEVE THE ARK IS IN AKSUM, ETHIOPIA. G.H. COMES TO THE CONCLUSION TEMPLAR KNIGHTS WENT TO ETHIOPIA AT THE END OF THE 12TH CENTURY TO LOOK FOR THE ARK AND FOUND THE PRECIOUS RELIC, JUST AS DESCRIBED AS WOLFRAM DOES. HOWEVER, SOMEONE TOOK THE ARK AWAY FROM THEM AND THEY HAD TO LEAVE ETHIOPIA WITHOUT IT.

FROM THE 1ST TO THE 6TH CENTURY AC ETHIOPIA WITH ITS KEY TOWN AKSUM COULD HAVE ASPIRED TO FIGURE AMONG THE MOST PROSPEROUS COUNTRIES IN THE WORLD, SINCE IT TRADED WITH ROME AND PERSIA, AND SENT ITS SHIPS TO FAR PORTS SUCH AS EGYPT, INDIA, CEYLON AND CHINA. IT BECAME THE FIRST IMPORTANT CHRISTIAN BASTION IN THE SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA AND TOOK THE NEW FAITH AS THE OFFICIAL RELIGION IN THE BEGINNING OF THE 4TH CENTURY BC, ALMOST COINCIDING WITH THE MIRACULOUS CONVERSION OF CONSTANTINO THE GREAT. HOWEVER, IN THE 7TH CENTURY AKSUM STARTED ITS DECADENCE WHICH LED TO ITS TOTAL ISOLATION. THIS CHANGE HAD TO DO WITH THE ADVANCE OF THE WARLIKE ARMIES OF ISLAM AND ITS SIEGE OF THE ABYSSINIAN CHRISTIANISM DURING AND AFTER THE TIME OF PROPHET MAHOMA (570-632 AC). SO FROM THE 7TH TO THE 16TH CENTURY ALMOST EVERYONE FORGOT ABOUT ETHIOPIA”.

11.”THE ETHIOPIAN HISTORIAN BELAI GEDAI TOLD G.H. THE ARK WAS MOVED FROM AKSUM TO AN ISLAND OF LAKE ZWAI BY PRIESTS TO PROTECT IT FROM QUEEN GUDIT WHOSE INTENTION WAS TO ESTABLISH THE FALASHA RELIGION ALL OVER AKSUM AND ETHIOPIA, AND PUT AN END TO CHRISTIANISM. GUDIT WENT OVER AKSUM IN ORDER TO BURN AND ROB THE CHURCHES IN AKSUM. GUDIT WAS QUEEN OF ETHIOPIA FOR SOME YEARS ONCE THE SOLOMON DESCENDANTS WERE DEPOSED. THE ARK WAS IN ZWAI FOR 70 YEARS, AND THEN IT WAS TAKEN BACK TO AKSUM AGAIN, AND THE ARK PROBABLY REMAINED THERE ONCE LALIBALA GOT TO THE THRONE. IN THE BOOK CHURCHES AND MONASTERIES OF EGYPT AND SOME NEIGHBORING COUNTRIES THE ARMENIAN GEOGRAPHER ABU SALIH SAYS THE ARK WAS TAKEN BY WHITE CARRIERS WITH RED HAIR, WHO LOOKED LIKE EUROPEAN NORDIC MEN, DURING CERTAIN CEREMONIAL EVENTS AT THE TIME OF KING LALIBALA”.

12.”THE PRIEST LIQA BERHANAT SOLOMON GABRE SELASSIE, ARCHBISHOP OF THE ETHIOPIAN ORTHODOX ST. MARY OF ZION IN GREAT BRITAIN, WAS A MISSIONARY FOR SOME YEARS IN ETHIOPIA. HE WAS SENT TO GREAT BRITAIN SOME YEARS AGO BY THE PATRIARCHY OF ADDIS ABEBA IN ORDER TO SPREAD THE ORTHODOX MESSAGE, AND HAD SOME CONVERTS MOSTLY YOUNG LONDONERS OF WEST INDIAN ORIGIN. HE TOLD G.H. THE ARK WAS AT THE FOOT OF MOUNT SINAI IN AKSUM”.

13.”ACCORDING TO RAPHAEL HADANE, A JEWISH ETHIOPIAN AND AN OLD WISE FALASHA PRIEST IN JERUSALEM, AFTER HIS ISRAELI ANCESTORS LEFT ISRAEL AND HEADED TO EGYPT THEY STAYED THERE FOR A HUNDRED YEARS, AND BUILT THERE A JEWISH TEMPLE IN ELEPHANTINE IN THE MIDDLE OF THE HIGH NILE. THIS TEMPLE WOUNDED UP BEING DESTROYED IN THE 5TH CENTURY BC  DUE TO DISCREPANCIES WITH THE EGYPTIANS, AND THE JEWISH COMMUNITY WHO HAD LIVED THERE MYSTERIOUSLY DISAPPEARED TOO.THEREFORE THEIR ISRAELI ANCESTORS HAD TO FLEE TO SUDAN WHERE LATER ON THEY HAD TO LEAVE TOO DUE TO ANOTHER WAR. THEY FINALLY GOT TO ETHIOPIA. RAPHAEL HADANE ALSO THINKS THE ARK IS IN AKSUM. HE WAS THERE SOME YEARS BEFORE THIS INTERVIEW WITH G. HANCOCK, AND WAS NOT ALLOWED TO GO INTO THE CHAPEL TO SEE THE ARK”.

“SINCE TODAY THERE ARE NO LEFT RUINS OF THE TEMPLE OF ELEPHANTINE THE EVIDENCE FOR THE FACT THAT THERE WAS A TEMPLE IN ELEPHANTINE (EGYPT) WAS THE FLUID CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN THE ISLAND OF ELEPHANTINE AND JERUSALEM. THE LETTERS WERE WRITTEN ON SEASHELLS, CERAMIC PIECES AND ON ROLLS OF PAPER. THAT CORRESPONDENCE STOPPED AROUNG 400 BC, AND THEN THE JEWS LEFT ELEPHANTINE. WHEN THE TEMPLE OF ELEPHANTINE WAS DESTROYED A NEW ROMAN TEMPLE WAS BUILT ON THAT SAME PLACE”.

THE FOLLOWING ARE FACTS BACKING UP THE EXISTENCE OF GOD´S ENEMIES TRYING TO DESTROY ANYTHING OR ANYONE FOLLOWING GOD IN ETHIOPIA:

1.”IN 1520 WHILE THE PORTUGUESE EMBASSY WAS STILL AT THE EMPEROR LEBNA DENGEL´S COURT IT WAS CLEAR ETHIOPIA WAS GOING TO BE ATTACKED BY MUSLIM ARMIES LED BY THE SCARY AND CHARISMATIC AHMED IBN IBRAHIM, GHAZI, NICKNAMED “GRAÑ” (THE LEFT-HANDED ONE). AFTER A FEW YEARS GRAÑ DECLARED THE HOLY WAR IN 1528, AND DROVE HORDES OF WILD SOMALI TROOPS, BACKED BY ARAB MERCENARIES AND TURKISH MOSQUETEERS TO A BRUTAL ATTACK AGAINST THE HIGH CHRISTIAN LANDS. CITIES AND VILLAGES WERE BURNT, CHURCHES DESTROYED, PRICELESS TREASURES SACKED AND MILLIONS OF PEOPLE WERE BEHEADED. IN 1535 MUSLIMS ATTACKED AKSUM AND DESTROYED THE OLD AND VENERATED CHURCH OF ST. MARY OF ZION, FROM WHERE SOME PRIESTS TOOK THE ARK WITH THEM TO PROTECT IT FROM DESTRUCTION AND SACKING. LEBNA DENGEL ASKED FOR MILITARY HELP TO PORTUGAL IN 1535 BUT IT WASN´T UNTIL 1541 THAT 450 PORTUGUESE MOSQUETEERS ARRIVED IN ETHIOPIA AND SAW THE ABYSSINIAN ARMY WAS KNOCKED DOWN AND DEMORALIZED. AFTER YEARS OF GOING FROM ONE PLACE TO ANOTHER LEBNA DENGEL HAD ALREADY DIED OF EXHAUSTION, AND HIS SON, CLAUDIUS, A YOUNGSTER THEN, TOOK OVER. LET´S IMAGINE THOSE 450 PORTUGUESE MEN WHO SAVED ETHIOPIA WERE LED BY CRISTOBAL DE GAMA, VASCO DE GAMA´S SON, KNIGHT OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST TOO. CRISTOBAL WAS MADE PRISONER IN 1542 AND BEHEADED BY THE MOOR GRAÑ. A YEAR LATER THE MUSLIM GENERAL WAS SHOT DEAD BY THE PORTUGUESE PEDRO LEON. THE PORTUGUESE AND ABYSSINIANS KILLED ALL THE MUSLIMS LEFT. THAT WAS THE END OF THE MUSLIM SUBJUGATION TO THE CHRISTIAN EMPIRE IN ETHIOPIA. MORE THAN HALF OF THE 450 PORTUGUESE WERE KILLED AND MANY CHURCHES AND TREASURES SACKED, BUT THE ARK WAS TAKEN TO ONE OF THE MANY MONASTERY-ISLE OF LAKE TANAImage 1-9-16 at 8.21. THERE IT WAS UNTIL MUCH AFTER GRAÑ´S DEATH. IN THE MID 17TH CENTURY EMPEROR FASILIDAS ABOUT WHOM BRUCE SAID HE WAS THE GREATEST KING THAT EVER SAT DOWN ON AN ABYSSINIAN THRONE, BUILT A NEW CATHEDRAL OF ST. MARY OF ZION ON THE OLD RUINS, AND THERE, THE ARK WAS FINALLY REINSTALLED”.

2.”SOME SAY ONE OF THE MOST DARING AND DECISIVE FOREIGNERS INVESTIGATING ETHIOPIA WAS JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD. HOWEVER, G.H. FOUND OUT HE WAS A LIAR IN 2 OCCASIONS. JAMES BRUCE TRIED TO FOOL US ALL MAKING US BELIEVE THE STORY OF MENELIK AND SOLOMON WAS FALSE, AND THAT THE ARK DIDN´T EXIST ANYMORE BECAUSE HE SAID GRAÑ HAD DESTROYED IT. JAMES BRUCE SAID THAT “THE ARK WAS DESTROYED …BY GRAÑ, ALTHOUGH SOME TRY TO PRETEND THAT IT STILL EXISTS. THIS I KNOW BY THE KING HIMSELF”. G. H. STATES THAT´S A LIE BECAUSE IN 1690, MUCH AFTER GRAÑ´S CAMPAIGNS AND ONLY 80 YEARS BEFORE BRUCE´S VISIT, AN ETHIOPIAN MONARCH ENTERED THE TABERNACLE OF THE NEW ST. MARY, WHERE HE SAW THE ARK, GIVING CONFIRMATION IT WAS STILL THERE. THE ETHIOPIAN MONARCH WAS YASSU THE GREAT, WHO HAD BEEN PRIEST AND KING, AND THAT´S WHY HE WAS ALLOWED TO SEE THE SACRED RELIC, OPEN IT AND LOOK INSIDE IT. G.H. FOUND OUT JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD HAD LIED FOR A THIRD TIME WHEN HE SAID THE REASON WHY HE WENT TO ETHIOPIA WAS TO FIND THE SOURCES OF THE NILE. G.H. RE-READ ATTENTIVELY HIS DESCRIPTION OF AKSUM AND NOTICE ONE KEY PIECE OF INFORMATION: THE DATE OF JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD´S VISIT IN AKSUM: JANUARY 18 AND 19. DURING THESE DAYS TIMKAT IS CELEBRATED, WHICH MEANS ONLY DURING THOSE 2 DAYS THE ARK ALL WRAPPED UP IN RICH BROCADES IS DISPLAYED ON A RELIGIOUS PARADE. BRUCE HAD CHOSEN TO BE IN AKSUM ON THOSE UNIQUE DAYS OF THE YEAR, WHEN AS A LAY PERSON, HE COULD HAVE THE OPPORTUNITY TO GET NEAR THE SACRED ARK. THAT TOGETHER WITH BRUCE´S EXCUSES AND SECRECY ON THE ARK´S QUESTIONS WHENEVER G.H. ADDRESSED HIM ANY, PLUS THE FACT THAT HE MASTERED OLD HEBREW, ARAMAIC AND SYRIAC – ALL DEAD LANGUAGES WHICH NOBODY WOULD BE INTERESTED IN LEARNING UNLESS THEY WERE REALLY INTERESTED IN DOING A DEEP RESEARCH INTO THE OLD BIBLICAL TEXTS. AND IT WAS CLEAR FROM HIS BOOK: TRAVELS TO DISCOVER THE SOURCES OF THE NILE FROM 1768 TO 1773, HE HAD STUDIED THE OLD TESTAMENT THOROUGHLY.

HISTORIAN BELAI GEDAI CONFIRMED JAMES BRUCE OF KINNAIRD IMG_1193 WAS A LIAR, AND ADDED HIS GOAL IN ETHIOPIA WAS TO STEAL ETHIOPIAN TREASURES. JAMES BRUCE TOOK MANY PRECIOUS MANUSCRIPTS LIKE AN OLD VERSION OF KEBRA NEGAST AND THE BOOK OF ENOC, THE IMPERIAL DEPOSIT OF GONDER, AND TOOK THEM TO EUROPE. G.H. CONFIRMED ALL THAT BELAI GEDAI SAID WAS TRUE, AND BESIDES THAT HE FOUND OUT JAMES ALSO TOOK A COPY OF KEBRA NEGAST THAT HE MADE HIMSELF. LATER ON JAMES DONATED BOTH MANUSCRIPTS TO THE BODLEIANA LIBRARY IN OXFORD, WHERE THEY STILL EXIST AS “BRUCE 83” AND “BRUCE 97” “.

“IN 1989 G.H. WENT BACK TO ADDIS ABEBA, AND BEARING IN MIND ALL THE TURMOIL GOING ON IN THE NORTH OF ETHIOPIA IT WAS LIKELY TO THINK MAYBE THE ARK HAD BEEN TAKEN FOR A 2ND TIME TO DAGA STEPHANOS MONASTERY, ON AN ISLAND OF LAKE TANA, TO KEEP IT FROM DESTRUCTION AND SACKING, AS ARCHBISHOP SALOMON TOLD US IT HAD ALREADY HAPPENED BEFORE THAT”.

HERE ARE SOME SUPERNATURAL PHENOMENA CONCERNING THE ARK WHICH TOOK PLACE IN THE PAST:

1.”SOMETHING TERRIBLE STARTED TO HAPPEN. IT HAD TO DO WITH NADAB AND ABIHU, AARON´S SONS. AS THEY BOTH WERE MEMBERS OF THE PRIEST FAMILY THEY WERE ALLOWED TO GO IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM. ONCE THEY DID GO IN, CARRYING SOME METAL INCENSARIOS. THE LEVITICUS TELLS US “THEY OFFERED TO YAHVEH AN IRREGULAR FIRE WHICH GOD HAD NOT ASKED FOR” THE DEVASTATING CONSEQUENCE WAS THAT FROM THE ARK CAME A FLAME WHICH DEVOURED THEM, ENDING UP DEAD:Image 1-9-16 at 8.25 (2) .

AFTER AARON´S SONS´ DEATH YAHVEH SAID TO MOSES THIS: “TELL YOUR BROTHER AARON NOT TO EVER ENTER THE INSIDE PART OF THE VEIL IN THE SANCTUARY, OPPOSITE THE PROPITIATORY, WHICH IS ON THE ARK, TO PREVENT HIM FROM DYING, SINCE I APPEAR ON THE CLOUD ON THE PROPITIATORY” .THE PROPITIATORY WAS THE PURE GOLD PLATE WHOSE AIM WAS TO PROTECT THE ARK. THE CLOUD OVER THE PROPITIATORY THREATENED TO KILL THE IMPURE ONES. AARON MUST HAVE BEEN VISIBLE AMONG THE CHERUBIMS. THE CLOUD WAS NOT ALWAYS PRESENT ALTHOUGH SOMETIMES IT WAS, AND NOT EVEN MOSES DARED GET NEAR IT”.

2.”A FEW DAYS AFTER THE DEATH OF AARON´S SONS, MOSES WENT INTO THE SANCTASANCTORUM OF THE TABERNACLE, INSTALLED AT THE FOOT OF MOUNT SINAI. INSIDE THERE MOSES HEARD THE VOICE OF SOMEONE WHO TALKED TO HIM FROM HIGH ABOVE OF THE PROPITIATORY BETWEEN BOTH CHERUBIMS. VERY OLD JEWISH LEGENDS STATE THAT VOICE CAME FROM HEAVEN IN A FIRE TUBE-SHAPED ONE. FIRE, ONE WAY OR ANOTHER, WITH OR WITHOUT A LETHAL CLOUD, SEEMS TO HAVE ALWAYS BEEN OFTEN ASSOCIATED TO CHERUBIMS. FOR EXAMPLE, ACCORDING TO AN UNFORGETTABLE TRADITIONAL MEMORY 2 SPARKS, DESCRIBED AS BLAZING FLAMES IN OTHER PLACES, EMERGED FROM THE CHERUBIMS SAFEGUARDING THE ARK, SPARKS WHICH SOMETIMES BURNT AND DESTROYED NEAR OBJECTS. THE TIME CAME WHEN ISRAELITES HAD TO LEAVE THE CAMP AT MOUNT SINAI (MOUNT OF YAHVEH): “…WHEN THE ARK LEFT MOSES SAID: “COME YAHVEH AND DISPERSE ALL EMEMIES …”. WHENEVER MOSES STOPPED HE SAID: “LAY YOUR EYES, OH YAHVEH, ON THE MYRIADS OF ISRAEL!”. THE ARK WAS CARRIED ON THE KAATITAS´ SHOULDERS (KAAT´S SONS, A LEVI TRIBE´S SUBCLAN). MOSES AND AARON BELONGED ALSO TO THIS LEVI TRIBE´S SUBCLAN, THE KAATITAS. ACCORDING TO SEVERAL LEGENDS AND RABBINIC COMMENTS ON THE OLD TESTAMENT, THOSE CARRIERS ENDED UP DEAD BY THE SPARKS COMING FROM THE ARK, AND FROM TIME TO TIME SOME OF THEM WERE LIFTED FROM THE GROUND, BECAUSE THE ARK COULD CARRY ALL THOSE WHO CARRIED IT AS WELL AS ITSELF. THE MIDRASH EXEGESIS GIVES ALSO TESTIMONY THAT SOMETIMES THE ARK LIFTED HIS CARRIERS FROM THE GROUND, RELIEVING THEM FROM A HEAVY LOAD”.

3.”A PARTICULARLY STRIKING JEWISH LEGEND TELLS US THE STORY OF SOME PRIESTS WHO TRIED TO CARRY THE ARK, WERE THROWN IN THE AIR BY AN INVISIBLE AGENT AND WERE KNOCKED DOWN TIME AND TIME AGAIN”.

4.”ANOTHER TRADITION TELLS US THAT ONCE THE ARK JUMPED BY ITSELF IN THE AIR. THE STORY OF ONE OF THE MANY BATTLES ISRAELITES HAD TO GO THROUGH TELLS US THE ARK EMITTED “A COMPLAINT SOUND”, AND AFTER THAT THE ARK LIFTED ITSELF FROM THE GROUND AND PLUNGED INTO THE ENEMY.

ACCORDING TO THE BIBLE, DURING THE 40 YEARS ISRAELITES SPENT IN THE DESERT THEY FOLLOWED MOSES ADVICE, AND WITH THE HELP OF THE ARK THEY MANAGED TO CONTROL THE WILD TRIBES OF THE SINAI PENINSULA, BESIDES CONQUERING TRANSJORDANIA, DEPRIVING THE MADIANITAS OF THEIR HOMELAND, AND DESTROY WHOEVER OPPOSED THEM. AFTER THE 40 YEARS THEY CAMPED IN MOAB PLAINS IN FRONT OF JERICHO. FROM THERE THEY COULD SEE THE JORDAN RIVER, THE PROMISED LAND. BY THAT TIME, MOSES´ BROTHER, AARON HAD ALREADY DIED AND ELEAZAR TOOK OVER AS PRIEST. HOWEVER MOSES WAS WARNED BY GOD THAT ELEAZAR WAS NOT SUPPOSED TO GO INTO CANAAN – THE PROMISED LAND – , AND SO MOSES  INVESTED  JOSHUA,  NUN´S SON, WITH THE RIGHT TO TAKE OVER. JOSHUA KNEW THE ARK WAS A DOUBLE-EDGED SWORD WHICH HAD TO BE HANDLED WELL IF HE WANTED IT NOT TO BE HARMFUL AGAINST THEM OR ANYBODY ELSE.  THAT´S WHY BEFORE CROSSING THE JORDAN RIVER JOSHUA SENT HIS OFFICERS TO THE CAMP TO WARN EVERYONE TO KEEP MORE THAN HALF A MILE DISTANCE BETWEEN THE ARK AND THEM. AND SO THEY DID. JOSHUA SAID TO THE PRIESTS: “CARRY THE ARK IN FRONT OF THE PEOPLE…” AND SO THE MOMENT THE PRIESTS CARRIED THE ARK AND GOT TO RIVER JORDAN…THE WATER STOPPED UP THE HILLS AND SO THE PRIESTS CARRYING THE ARK STOOD ON DRY GROUND IN THE MIDDLE OF THE JORDAN RIVER , AND WHEN THEY WENT OUT OF  IT AND THEIR FEET WERE STILL TOUCHING DRY GROUND, ONCE AGAIN RIVER JORDAN´S WATER CAME BACK AGAIN. AND JOSHUA SAID TO THE ISRAELITES THIS: “YAHVEH, OUR GOD, DRIED RIVER JORDAN´S WATER IN FRONT OF YOU SO THAT YOU CAN CROSS IT” “. (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

AS THE ARK HAS GOD´S POWER LET´S IMAGINE ITS OMNIPOTENT POWER UNMASKS EVERYONE´S SOUL. WHEN THE SOUL OF THE CARRIER, PRIEST OR OPPONENT IS PURE THE PERSON ENDS UP BEING A WINNER, AND IS LIFTED FROM THE GROUND. ON THE OTHER HAND IF THE ENEMIES, PRIESTS OR WHOEVER ARE FALSE OR CORRUPT THEY´LL BE KNOCKED DOWN AND EVEN KILLED. THAT´S GOD´S WAY! 

5.”THE ARK ALWAYS PLAYED AN IMPORTANT MILITAR ROLE EVEN UP TO JERICHO´S FALL. HOWEVER, BY THE 11TH CENTURY BC THE ISRAELITES THEMSELVES WERE ABLE TO CONQUER MOST PARTS OF THE PROMISED LAND, AND DIDN´T TAKE THE ARK WITH THEM. AS THEY THOUGHT THEY COULD GET BY WITHOUT THE ARK THEY KEPT IT IN THE SANCTUARY OF SILO. IT WAS IN THE BATTLE OF EBEN EZER WHEN THE ISRAELITES AFTER BEING ATTACKED BY THE PHILISTINES (4,OOO CASUALTIES) DECIDED TO GO TO SILO AND TAKE THE ARK WITH THEM TO BE PROTECTED AGAINST THE PHILISTINES. THE MOMENT THE PHILISTINES HEARD THE ISRAELITES SHOUTING FOR JOY THE PHILISTINES FELT FRIGHTENED OF WHAT MIGHT HAPPEN TO THEM. THE PHILISTINES SAID TO THEMSELVES:”COME ON, BE BRAVE AND FIGHT, NOT TO SERVE THE HEBREWS”. THIS WAS REALLY THE 1ST TIME ISRAEL WAS KNOCKED DOWN – 30,000 CASUALTIES – AND THE PHILISTINES TOOK THE ARK WITH THEM. THIS WAS SOMETHING NOBODY THOUGHT COULD HAPPENED AND YET IT DID. LET´S IMAGINE THAT AFTER JOSHUA DIED, ABOUT 45-50 YEARS AFTER IT, ISRAELITES STOPPED FOLLOWING GOD´S LAWS AND SO THE ARK, THAT IS, GOD DIDN´T LISTEN TO THEM. THE PHILISTINES TOOK THE ARK TO THE TEMPLE OF DAGON IN AZOTO, AND PLACED IT NEXT TO DAGON. THE FOLLOWING MORNING AS THEY FOUND DAGON´S HEAD AND HANDS CUT, THEY DECIDED TO MOVE THE ARK TO GAT AND THERE PEOPLE STARTED DEVELOPING TUMORS. FINALLY, THE PHILISTINES DECIDED TO TAKE THE ARK TO BET SEMES, THE CLOSEST ISRAELITE POINT TO THEM, AND THE ARK PUNISHED MORE THAN 50,000 PEOPLE FROM BET SEMES, SINCE ALL THOSE DIED. A GROUP OF LEVITES TOOK THE ARK BACK TO ABINADAD´S HOUSE, IN QUIRIATH JEARIM, WHERE IT WAS KEPT FOR ABOUT 50 YEARS. IT WAS DAVID, KING OF ISRAEL, WHO BEING SO POWERFUL WANTED TO STRENGTHEN HIS AUTHORITY BRINGING THE ARK TO JERUSALEM (BETWEEN 1000 AND 990 BC): “THEY PLACED THE ARK ON A NEW CART AND TOOK IT OUT OF ABINADAD´S HOUSE. OZA AND AJIO DROVE THE CART. OZA WAS NEXT TO THE ARK AND AJIO WAS IN FRONT OF IT. WHEN THEY GOT TO THE PLAIN OF NACON, OZA STRETCHED HIS HAND TO THE ARK AND TOUCHED IT BECAUSE THE OXEN WERE MOVING TOO MUCH. IT WAS THEN WHEN YHAVEH BECAME INFURIATED AGAINST OZA AND HE DIED RIGHT THERE NEXT THE ARK BECAUSE HE TOUCHED IT. THAT DAY KING DAVID FELT FRIGHTENED OF YHAVEH AND SO HE DIDN´T WANT TO TAKE THE ARK TO HIS HOUSE. INSTEAD HE ORDERED TO TAKE IT TO OBEDEDON´S HOUSE AND THERE OBEDEDON HIMSELF AND ALL HIS FAMILY WERE BLESSED WITH LOTS OF CHILDREN. AFTER THAT KING DAVID TOOK THE ARK TO JERUSALEM AND PLANNED TO BUILD A TEMPLE TO HOUSE IT. HOWEVER, GOD TOLD KING DAVID NOT TO BUILD IT, BECAUSE HIS SON SOLOMON WOULD BE THE ONE TO BUILD IT, AND THIS PROPHECY WAS FULFILLED (ABOUT 955 BC). SOLOMON PLACED THE ARK IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM, A DARK PLACE AS GOD HAD TOLD SOLOMON TO BE SO, IN THE NEW TEMPLE. THE ARK DISAPPEARED FROM THERE SOMETIME BETWEEN THE 10TH AND THE 7TH CENTURIES BC.

LET´S IMAGINE THE ARK, WITH THE STONE TABLETS, THAT IS, GOD HIMSELF, HELPED JUST PURE PEOPLE. LET´S IMAGINE THE PHILISTINES WERE THE PURE ONES AT THE BATTLE OF EBEN EZER, AND THE ISRAELITES AT THAT TIME HAD FORGOTTEN ABOUT GOD´S LAWS. LET´S IMAGINE OZA AND ABINADAD WERE IMPURE SOULS, AND THAT´S WHY THEY ALL DIED, OR SUFFERED FROM TUMORS LIKE MANY OTHERS TOO”.

6.”MOSES HAD A HARD TIME TRYING TO KEEP THE ISRAELITES´ TRUST AND MAKING THEM OBEY HIM. MOSES WAS CRITIZED BY THEM VERY OFTEN AND HE WAS FORCED TO DO MIRACLES TO REGAIN THEIR TRUST TIME AND TIME AGAIN. THERE WAS ONE TIME WHEN MOSES WAS FED UP OF THE ISRAELITES´ INSUBORDINATION THAT HE SUGGESTED THE 250 ISRAELITES TAKE A CENSER FULL OF INCENSE TO THE ARK, TO SEE IF THEY WERE AS SAINTLY AS MOSES WAS. THE 250 ISRAELITES ACCEPTED THE CHALLENGE AND WHEN THE 250 ONES WERE OVER THERE GOD TOLD MOSES AND AARON THIS: “SPLIT FROM THIS COMMUNITY, BECAUSE I WANT TO KILL THEM RIGHT AWAY”. SECONDS AFTER THAT, MOSES AND AARON FELL ON THEIR KNEES AND FIRE CAME OUT OF THE ARK AND WIPED OUT THE 250 ISRAELITES WHO WERE OFFERING THEIR INCENSE. LET´S IMAGINE THE 250 ISRAELITES WERE IMPURE ONES AND THAT´S WHY GOD GOT RID OF THEM. THAT SURELY WAS A BREAKING POINT FOR MOSES SINCE THE ISRAELITES NEVER AGAIN DECIDED TO ORGANIZE ANY MORE SIGNIFICANT REBELLIONS. THEY ALL LINED UP BEHIND MOSES AND DID WHAT HE TOLD THEM TO, DURING THEIR TIME LEFT IN THE DESERT”

7.”ACCORDING TO RABBI SHELOMO YITSHAKI (12TH CENTURY AC) THE COVER OF THE ARK WAS A GOLD-PLATED SHEET OF 9 INCH THICK. WE´RE TOLD THE ARK WAS WRAPPED UP IN 2 LAYERS OF CLOTH, AND ONE OF LEATHER, IN ORDER TO CARRY IT SAFELY AND PREVENT ANYONE FROM DYING. HOWEVER, THERE WERE TIMES WHEN DESPITE BEING WRAPPED UP THAT WAY SPARKS CAME OUT OF IT, AND THESE SPARKS KILLED SOME CARRIERS.   Image 1-9-16 at 8.24 (5)

8.”THE BIG MONOLITHS IN THE PARK OF THE STELAS ERECTED BY THE ARK AND THE CELESTIAL FIRE, ACCORDING TO THE GUARDIAN MONK OF THE ARK BACK IN 1983. EACH MONOLITH WEIGHTED HUNDREDS OF TONS. LET´S IMAGINE EACH MONOLITH WEIGHTED MORE THAN 200 TONS. THERE´S NO WAY IN THAT ANCIENT TIME WHEN THERE WAS NO TECHNOLOGY WHATSOEVER – THAT THOSE MONOLITHS WERE MADE BY MEN. THE ARK WITH ITS CELESTIAL FIRE MUST BE RESPONSIBLE FOR THOSE STONY SILHOUETTES.

IMG_1165

IMG_1164

9.IN ”THE BOOK OF ISAIAH, CHAPTER 37, WE´RE TOLD HOW KING HEZEKIAH ADDRESSED THIS PRAYER TO GOD ONCE HE ENTERED THE TEMPLE OF YAHVEH: OH YAHVEH SEBAOT, GOD OF ISRAEL, SAT BETWEEN THE CHERUBIMS, YOU´RE THE ONLY GOD FOR ALL REIGNS OF THE EARTH”. THE WORDS “BETWEEN THE CHERUBIMS, WHICH REFER TO THE ARK, WERE WRITTEN IN 701 BC. ISAIAH BECAME A PROPHET IN 740 BC – THE TIME WHEN KING UZZIAH DIED- AND CONTINUED HIS MINISTERY DURING THE REIGNS OF JOTAN (740-736 BC) , AJAZ (736-716 BC) AND EZEQUIAS (716-687 BC). 701 BC WAS ALSO THE TIME WHEN THE ASSYRIAN KING SENNACHERIB TRIED TO TAKE CONTROL OF JERUSALEM, BUT HE COULD NOT SUCCEED IN IT. IT WAS ISAIAH WHO ADVISED KING HEZEKIAH NOT TO GIVE IN JERUSALEM TO THE ASIRIANS. SENNACHERIB SENT THEM AN INTIMIDATING LETTER TELLING THEM JERUSALEM WOULD BE DESTROYED AND EVERYONE KILLED. THAT´S WHEN EZEQUIAS TOOK THE MENACING LETTER AND SAID THE PRAYER WE´VE JUST MENTIONED BEFORE TO GOD: “OH YAHVEH SEBAOT, GOD OF ISRAEL, WHO ARE SAT BETWEEN THE CHERUBIMS, YOU ARE THE ONLY GOD OF ALL REIGNS OF THE EARTH. LISTEN TO THE WORDS SENNACHERIB SENT US TO INSULT YOU, LORD:… THE ASIRIAN KINGS DEVASTATED ALL NATIONS…BUT NOW, OH YAHVEH, OUR LORD, FREE US FROM THEIR EVIL SO THAT OUR REIGNS OF THE EARTH CAN KNOW YOU´RE THE ONLY GOD”. MIRACULOUSLY YAHVEH AGREED. GOD SENT PROPHET ISAIAH TO EZEQUIAS WITH THIS MESSAGE: “THIS IS WHAT YAHVEH SAYS ABOUT THE ASSYRIAN KING: “HE WON´T ENTER THIS TOWN, NOR WILL HE SHOOT ANY ARROWS AGAINST IT…I´LL PROTECT THIS TOWN TO SAVE IT, FOR THE LOVE I FEEL AND FOR THE LOVE OF DAVID. YAHVEH KEPT HIS WORD THAT NIGHT: THE ANGEL OF YAHVEH WENT OUT AND HURT 185,000 MEN IN THE ASIRIAN CAMP. IN THE MORNING THEY WERE ALL DEAD, AND THAT´S WHEN SENNACHERIB, KING OF ASSYRIA, BROKE CAMP AND LEFT. IT WAS CLEAR THE ASIRIANS HAD SIEGED JERUSALEM IN 701 BC, AND ALL OF A SUDDEN THEY BROKE CAMP AND RAN AWAY”. LET´S IMAGINE THIS MASSIVE KILLING OF 185,000 ASSYRIANS WAS CARRIED OUT BY THE ARK, WHICH MEANS THE ARK WAS STILL IN THE TEMPLE IN 701 BC. SINCE THIS RELEVANT FACT OF HEZEKIAH PRAYING TO GOD, USING THE SIGNIFICANT WORDS OF “GOD OF ISRAEL WHO ARE SAT BETWEEN THE CHERUBIMSREFERRING TO THE ARK, WAS IMPORTANT EVIDENCE BACKING UP THE CONTINUED PRESENCE OF THE ARK IN THE TEMPLE MUCH LATER THAN SOLOMON´S REIGN, THIS WAS A SET BACK FOR THE ASPIRATIONS OF KEBRA NEGAST AS TO THE ARK HAVING BEEN STOLEN BY MENELIK DURING SOLOMON´S LIFE.

10.”THE SAFEGUARD OF THE ARK, WHO TALKED TO GRAHAM HANCOCK, TOLD HIM THIS ABOUT THE ARK: “IT DOES MIRACLES AND IT´S ITSELF A MIRACLE. IT´S THE MIRACLE COME TRUE” “.

“ONCE THE ISRAELITES CAMPED IN FRONT OF MOUNT SINAI, MOSES WENT UP MOUNT SINAI AND GOD TOLD HIM THIS: TELL THE ISRAELITES NOT TO CLIMB MOUNT SINAI NOR TOUCH ITS HILLSIDE, BECAUSE OTHERWISE THEY´LL DIE. IT WAS AFTER MOSES SPENT 3 DAYS ON MOUNT SINAI THAT THUNDER AND LIGHTING STARTED, TOGETHER WITH A CLOUD OVER MOUNT SINAI, WITH A STRONG TRUMPET SOUND, AND SMOKE FROM MOUNT SINAI, SINCE GOD DESCENDED ON IT IN THE MIDDLE OF THE FIRE. ALL THE ISRAELITES WERE SHAKING IN THE CAMP. MOSES SPENT ONLY SOME TIME ON MOUNT SINAI GOING DOWN TO THE CAMP ONCE IN A WHILE. IT ALL CHANGED WHEN GOD TOLD HIM THIS: “GO UP MOUNT SINAI AND STAY THERE. I´LL GIVE YOU THE STONE TABLETS WITH THE LAW AND THE COMMANDMENTS I´VE WRITTEN. MOSES WENT UP MOUNT SINAI AND A CLOUD COVERED IT FOR 6 DAYS, SINCE YAHVEH´S GLORY HAD LAID HIS EYES ON MOUNT SINAI. ON THE 7TH DAY GOD CALLED MOSES WHO WAS STILL IN THE MIDDLE OF THE CLOUD, AND MOSES WENT UP MOUNT SINAI, DESPITE THE CLOUD, AND STAYED UP THERE FOR 40 DAYS AND 40 NIGHTS. THE ISRAELITES SAW A BLAZING FIRE COMING OUT OF THE TOP OF MOUNT SINAI. LET´S IMAGINE DURING THOSE 40 DAYS AND 40 NIGHTS UP THERE MOSES WAS MAKING AND REFINING A COMPACT SOURCE OF ENERGY WITH A STONY APPEARANCE TO GET IT INTO THE ARK. MOSES MUST HAVE USED ALL THOSE 40 DAYS AND 40 NIGHTS TO CARRY OUT THE CHEMICAL PROCEDURES TO PROVIDE THE LAW TABLETS AND THE ARK WITH A POWERFUL WEAPON AS TO PROTECT, HELP AND PUNISH WHOEVER DESERVES IT”.

LET´S IMAGINE SHORTLY BEFORE THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON WAS DESTROYED THE ARK WAS “HIDDEN IN SOME CAVERNS UNDER THE SHETIYYAH, A BIG STONE, THE WORLDWIDE CORNERSTONE ON WHICH SOLOMON (THE 10TH CENTURY BC) PLACED THE ARK. THE MUSLIMS BUILT THE DOME OF THE ROCK ON THE PRIMITIVE SITE OF THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON:                 IMG_1185
IMG_1186

LET´S IMAGINE TEMPLAR KNIGHTS USED THE MEZQUITA AL-AQSA AS GENERAL HEADQUARTERS IN THE 12TH CENTURY AC. THE TEMPLAR KNIGHTS LIVED THERE FROM 1119-1187 AC, WHEN THEY WERE EXPELLED FROM JERUSALEM BY SALADINO. LET´S IMAGINE THE ARK WAS MOVED FROM THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON TO ETHIOPIA (SOME TIME BEFORE 598 BC) BEFORE THE EGYPTIAN ARMIES ATTACKED JERUSALEM. NABUCODONOSOR EXILED MANY INHABITANTS FROM JERUSALEM TO BABYLON. THIS EXILE LASTED UNTIL THE PERSIAN KING CIRO THE GREAT (539 BC) AND HIS ARMY ATTACKED THE BABYLONIANS. IT WAS CIRO WHO ORDERED TO RECOVER ALL THE PRECIOUS OBJECTS FROM THE TEMPLE OF SOLOMON TO LATER ON PUT THEM BACK PROBABLY IN MOUNT MOIRA, BEFORE THE 2ND TEMPLE WAS STARTED TO BE BUILT (537 BC), ON TOP OF THE DEVASTATED FOUNDATIONS OF THE 1ST TEMPLE. THE 2ND TEMPLE WAS FINISHED IN 517 BC AND DIFFERED FROM THE 1ST ONE LIKE THE TALMUD SAYS: “IN 5 THINGS, THE 1ST SANCTUARY DIFFERED FROM THE 2ND ONE: IN THE ARK, THE COVER OF THE ARK, THE CHERUBIMS, THE FIRE, THE URIM AND TUMMIN”. URIM AND TUMMIN WERE SOME MYSTERIOUS OBJECTS WHICH ARE CONSIDERED COLLECTIVELY AS IF THEY WERE ONE ALONE. IT´S POSSIBLE THEY COULD HAVE BEEN USED TO PREDICT EVENTS AND THAT IN MOSES´ TIMES THEY WERE HIDDEN IN THE HEAD PRIEST´S CHEST. ACCORDING TO A SUBSEQUENT LEGEND, SOLOMON HAD PLANNED THE DESTRUCTION OF THE TEMPLE ALREADY WHEN HE WAS BUILDING IT. THAT´S WHY HE HAD PLANNED HOW TO HIDE THE ARK IN DEEP TORTUOUS HIDEOUTS”.

ASIDE FROM LEGENDS  WHAT WE KNOW FOR SURE ARE THESE FACTS:

“AROUND 955 BC THE ARK WAS LEFT IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM OF THE 1ST TEMPLE BY KING SOLOMON. SOME YEARS LATER FROM THERE IT WAS TAKEN OUT BY FAITHFUL PRIESTS WHO TRIED TO PROTECT IT FROM DESECRATION BY MANASSES, AND TOOK IT TO A SAFE PLACE IN THE REMOTE EGYPTIAN ISLAND OF ELEPHANTINE. THERE A NEW TEMPLE WAS BUILT TO HOUSE IT, AND IT STAYED THERE FOR MORE THAN 2 CENTURIES. WHEN THE JEWISH TEMPLE IN THE HIGH NILE WAS DESTROYED IT WAS TAKEN TO DIFFERENT PLACES UNTIL IT WAS FINALLY TAKEN TO THE GREEN ETHIOPIAN ISLAND OF TANA KIRKOS, AND WAS THERE FOR 800 YEARS…THE CENTRE OF JEWISH WORSHIP. AFTER THAT CHRISTIANS CAME TO PREACH THE NEW RELIGION AND AFTER CONVERTING THE KING THEY MANAGED TO SEIZE THE ARK: IMG_1166

THEY TOOK IT TO AKSUM AND PLACED IT IN THE GREAT CHURCH OF SAINT MARY, JESUS CHRIST´S MOTHER. AS YEARS WENT BY MORE AND MORE LEGENDS ABOUT HOW THE ARK ARRIVED IN ETHIOPIA APPEARED. ALL THOSE LEGENDS WERE PUT TOGETHER IN THE KEBRA NEGAST, A DOCUMENT WHICH HAD SO MANY MISTAKES, ANACRONISMS AND INCONSISTENCIES THAT NONE OF THE SUBSEQUENT GENERATIONS OF SCHOLARS COULD DECODE THE ANCIENT TRUTH UNDER THOSE SYMBOLS IN SUCH EPIC POEM. IN THE TEXT OF WOLFRAM WE´RE TOLD THE PAGAN FLEGETANIS PENETRATED THE HIDDEN MYSTERIES OF THE CONSTELLATIONS AND STATED RESPECTFULLY THESE 3 RELEVANT TRUTHS:

1.“A THING CALLED GRIAL CERTAINLY EXISTS”.

2.“THIS PERFECT SPIRITUAL THING, THE GRIAL, WAS KEPT BY CHRISTIANS CONSECRATED TO PURITY”.

3.“THE HUMAN BEINGS WHO ARE CALLED TO PROTECT THE GRIAL ARE ALWAYS DIGNIFIED

“JANUARY 18, 1991 GRAHAM HANCOCK ATTENDED THE POPULAR CEREMONY OF TIMKAT, Image 1-9-16 at 8.26Image 1-9-16 at 8.25 (9)Image 1-9-16 at 8.23 (4)Image 1-9-16 at 8.23 (3)WHERE THE ARK IS DISPLAYED ON A RELIGIOUS PARADE. IT WAS A BIG RECTANGULAR CHEST COVERED WITH A THICK BLUE CLOTH WITH A DOVE EMBROIDERED ON IT. G. HANCOCK REMEMBERED THAT A SIMILAR DOVE WAS THE GRIAL´S EMBLEM IN PARZIVAL BY WOLFRAM” (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

HOWEVER GRAHAM HANCOCK KNEW AFTER ALL THE RESEARCH DONE THAT IT WAS NOT THE REAL ARK BUT A REPLICA, AND THAT THE REAL ONE WAS HIDDEN, SINCE THEY DIDN´T WANT ANYBODY TO BE KILLED, TAKING INTO ACCOUNT THE FEW PURE HUMAN BEINGS WHO ARE ANYWHERE IN THE WORLD. “HOW DID GRAHAM HANCOCK KNOW IT WAS A COPY OF THE REAL ONE? SIMPLY BECAUSE HE SAW GEBRA MIKAIL,Image 1-9-16 at 8.26 (2) GUARD MONK OF THE ARK, BEHIND THE BARS, SITTING AGAINST THE GREY GRANITE WALL OF THE CHAPEL, PLUNGED INTO A STATE OF MEDITATION. G.H. SAW GEBRA MIKAIL STAYED THERE EVERY SECOND OF THE 2 DAYS THAT THE CEREMONY OF TIMKAT LASTED”. (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HAYCOCK). “NO ONE HAS BEEN ALLOWED TO SEE THE HOLY OBJECT,  DESCRIBED IN SCRIPTURE AS BEING MADE FROM ACACIA WOOD, PLATED WITH GOLD AND TOPPED WITH 2 GOLDEN ANGELS, EXCEPT ONE SOLITARY ELDERLY MONK, WHO MUST WATCH OVER THE ARK FOR THE REMAINDER OF HIS LIFE, AND IS NEVER ALLOWED TO LEAVE THE CHAPEL GROUNDS” (MAILONLINE NEWS. COVENANT TO BE REVEALED AFTER LEAKING ROOF IN ETHIOPIAN CHAPEL…).

LET´S IMAGINE G. HANCOCK WAS RIGHT WHEN HE SAID KING SOLOMON COVERED UP THE FACT THAT HIS SON MENELIK STOLE THE ARK, TAKING IT TO ETHIOPIA, IN ORDER TO AVOID FOREIGNERS BOASTING IN FRONT OF THEM. THAT MASSIVE COVER UP WOULD EXPLAIN THE ABSENCE OF CONTENT AS TO WHERE THE ARK WAS KEPT ALL THIS TIME, HAVING NO NEWS NOR ANY COMMENTS ABOUT IT WHATSOEVER. GIVEN THE FACTS ETHIOPIA CONVERTED TO CHRISTIANISM IN 330 AC, AND THE PRESERVED TRADITION  IN TANA KIRKOS THE ARK MUST HAVE GOT TO ETHIOPIA IN 470 AC.

IN THE 2ND BOOK OF CHRONICLES JOSIAH (640-609 BC) TELLS THE LEVITES THIS: “PLACE THE HOLY ARK IN THE TEMPLE BUILT BY SOLOMON, KING OF ISRAEL. IT WON´T BE A WEIGHT ON YOUR SHOULDERS ANY MORE”. LET´S IMAGINE THE ARK HAD DISAPPEARED SHORTLY AFTER JOSIAH GAVE THAT SPEECH ABOVE (622 BC). THE ARK WAS PROBABLY MISSING SINCE 626 BC WHEN JEREMIAH MADE THIS PROPHECY: “WHENEVER YOU HAVE ALL MULTIPLIED THERE WILL COME THE TIME WHEN NOONE WILL SAY: “WHERE´S THE ARK OF THE COVENANT?”. NOONE WILL THINK OF IT, NOONE WILL REMEMBER IT NOR IT ´LL BE MISSED. JERUSALEM WILL BE CALLED YAHWEH´S THRONE AND NO NATION WILL BE AFTER ITS PERVERSE HEART OBSTINACY.

FROM 955 BC WHEN SOLOMON PUT THE ARK IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM AND 640BC (BEFORE JOSIAH´S REIGN) THERE ARE 315 YEARS OF SILENCE AS TO THE ARK DISAPPEARANCE. HOWEVER, THESE 315 YEARS OF SILENCE CAN BE REDUCED TO JUST 61 YEARS ACCORDING TO THE FOLLOWING EVENTS BACKING UP THE FACT THE ARK WAS STILL IN THE TEMPLE IN 740 BC:

1.CHRONICLES 26,2 TELLS US UZZIAH (REIGN:781-740 BC) REBELLED AGAINST YAHWEH GOING INTO THE TEMPLE IN ORDER TO OFFER INCENSE ON THE ALTAR OF THE PERFUMES. THE PRIEST AZARIAH AND OTHER ASSISTANTS TRIED TO PERSUADE HIM NOT TO ENTER THE SANCTASANCTORUM, BUT UZZIAH GOT ANGRY AGAINST THE PRIESTS, AND DURING THAT FIT OF RAGE LEPROSY ON HIS FOREHEAD STARTED TO APPEAR, IN THE PRESENCE OF THE PRIESTS IN THE TEMPLE OF YAHWEH, NEXT TO THE ALTAR OF THE PERFUMES: Image 1-9-16 at 8.24 (8).

AN ILLUSTRATION OF THE ENGLISH BIBLE OF THE 18TH CENTURY SHOWS THE UNFORTUNATE KING NEXT TO THE ARK WHEN HE´S PUNISHED. LET´S IMAGINE THE REASON BEHIND UZZIAH´S  LEPROSY ULCERS IS THE FACT OF HAVING BEEN EXPOSED TO THE ARK. THAT WOULD MEAN THE ARK WAS STILL IN THE SANCTASANCTORUM IN 740 BC, TIME WHEN UZZIAH´S REIGN ENDED DUE TO WHAT HAPPENED TO HIM, AND IT WOULD ALSO MEAN THE ARK COULD HAVE ONLY BE TAKEN OUT OF THE SANCTASANCTORUM BETWEEN 740-640 BC, THAT IS, DURING JOSIAH´S  REIGN. (EN BUSCA DEL ARCA DE LA ALIANZA PERDIDA BY GRAHAM HANCOCK).

ALL THIS KNOWLEDGE OF THE ARK OF THE COVENANT, OF THE GRIAL, THAT IS, OF OUR LORD, IS TO MAKE US STOP FOR A MINUTE AND THINK OF ALL THE WRONGS IN OUR LIFE WHICH MUST BE TURNED TO RIGHT AS SOON AS WE CAN, SO THAT WE CAN DESERVE OUR LORD´S ATTENTION AND LOVE. SMOKING CIGARETTES, CIGARS, TAKING DRUGS, DRINKING SOPHISTICATED COCKTAILS, WEARING THE TRENDIEST CLOTHES, HAVING THE MOST IMPRESSIVE CAREERS, BEING LOADED… ARE CONSIDERED COOL, AND YET ALL THOSE MEAN NOTHING TO GOD´S EYES, AND TO THE ONES WHO FOLLOW GOD´S LAWS, SIMPLY BECAUSE MOST OF THOSE ARE NOT WORTHY OF GOD, SINCE THEY ARE NOT PURE, BUT FULL OF THEMSELVES, EGOISTIC, MASOGISTIC, LIARS, ABUSERS…INFERIOR BEINGS WHO PREFER TO BE IN THEIR CONFORT ZONE, AND IGNORE WHAT THEY CAN´T PROCESS, THAT IS, SOMEONE SUPERIOR TO THEM, SOMEONE OMNIPOTENT AND OMNIPRESENT. THEY CAN´T STOMACH GOD, SINCE THEY SEE THEMSELVES AS GODS WHO MARVEL AT THEMSELVES, MOST EVERY LITTLE MINUTE OF THEIR EXISTENCE. THERE IS NOTHING LIKE FEELING PURE, LIKE FEELING DIGNIFIED OF OUR LORD.

THE 2015 MOVIE SPARROWS STARRING ATLI OSKAR FJALARSSON AS ARI AND DIRECTED BY  RÚNAR RÚNARSSON SHOWS US THE EPITOME OF PURITY. IT IS ARI´S PURITY WHICH LEADS HIM TO HELP LARA (RAKEL BJORK BJORNSDÓTTIR) AND ACCEPT HIS FATHER. DESPITE THE CRUEL WORLD ARI FACES HIS ANSWER IS LOVE AT THE END. THE TWO MEMORABLE SCENES ARE WHEN ARI DECIDES TO LAY DOWN NEXT TO LARA MAKING HER THINK HE´S THE ONE SHE HAD SEX WITH, AND THE SECOND ONE IS WHEN RIGHT AT THE END ARI TAKES HIS FATHER´S ARM AND EMBRACES HIMSELF WITH IT TO FEEL SOME KIND OF LOVE SOMEHOW, AT THE SAME TIME THAT HE SHOWS US WE´RE TO FORGIVE AND ACCEPT IMPURE ONES, WITHOUT LOSING OUR PURITY. CERTAINLY, FOLLOWING GOD CALLS FOR BRAVERY AND PURITY AS THE ARK OF THE COVENANT SUGGESTS SO. ARE YOU IN FOR THIS?

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

PURE CONSCIENCE

THE MOMENT WE ENTER THIS WORLD WE ARE GIVEN A NAME, A SURNAME, A FAMILY, A COUNTRY TO LIVE IN, A PARTICULAR SCHOOL TO GO TO, CERTAIN TRADITIONS AND BELIEFS, ETC., AND NONE OF THESE ARE CHOSEN BY ANY OF US. IT USUALLY TAKES US THOUSANDS OF LIVES BEFORE WE´RE AWARE OF WHAT THIS LIFE IS ALL ABOUT, MAKING US SEE WE NEED TO FREE OUR CONSCIENCE OF PHYSICAL, EMOTIONAL AND MENTAL ELEMENTS SO THAT OUR CONSCIENCE BECOMES A PURE, VIRGINAL ONE, READY TO JOIN OUR SOUL, JESUS CHRIST HIMSELF.

EACH ONE OF US HAS GOT VALUABLE QUALITIES THAT NEED TO BE SHARED WITH ALL OUR BROTHERS OUT THERE. LET´S IMAGINE AT SOME POINT IN OUR LIFE WE FINALLY FOUND OUT WHAT THIS LIFE WAS ALL ABOUT, AND AT THE SAME TIME WE SAW MOST PEOPLE WERE CONFUSED, AS TO WHAT TO DO OR NOT TO DO WITH THEIR DAILY LIVES, NOT KNOWING WHAT MEANING LIES BEHIND THEIR STAY HERE. LET´S IMAGINE THAT PERSON WITH THAT VALUABLE KNOWLEDGE DECIDED TO USE IT JUST TO BECOME WELL-KNOWN AND RICH, NOT SHARING IT ON A DAILY BASIS WITH ALL OUR BROTHERS. AND LET´S IMAGINE GOD WAS NOT HAPPY AT ALL WITH THAT PERSON´S ATTITUDE, SO GOD LET THAT PERSON KNOW THROUGH DIFFERENT CIRCUMSTANCES THAT WASN´T THE WAY TO EVOLVE TOWARDS BEINGS OF LIGHT WHOSE PURE CONSCIENCE JOINS OUR SOUL TO LATER ON CONNECT WITH JESUS CHRIST ON A DAILY BASIS FROM HERE TO ETERNITY.

ONE REALLY IMPORTANT EXAMPLE WHICH ILLUSTRATES WHAT HAPPENS TO PEOPLE WHO GET ON THE WRONG TRACK OF ARROGANCE AND EGOTISM IS THE TOWER OF BABEL, WHICH WAS LOCATED IN ASIRIA: Pieter_Bruegel_the_Elder_-_The_Tower_of_Babel_(Vienna)_-_Google_Art_Project_-_edited

“THE PROBLEM WITH THE PEOPLE FROM THE TOWER OF BABEL WAS THAT THEY INSISTED ON MAKING A NAME FOR THEMSELVES, INSTEAD OF SPREADING THE WORD OF GOD, THE MYSTERY OF OUR CONSCIENCE, THE WHEEL OF ENCHANTED LIVES, BEFORE WE REACH OUR ORIGIN, WHICH IS THE UNION WITH OUR SOUL, JESUS CHRIST.. BABYLON WAS THE CRÉME DE LA CRÉME OF THE SPIRITUAL AND INTELLECTUAL JEWISH PEOPLE. THERE WERE THE KEEPERS OF THE MOST IMPORTANT ANCIENT ESOTERIC KNOWLEDGE WORLDWIDE. THAT CONVERGENCE TOOK PLACE UNDER THE HIDDEN GUIDANCE OF THE SPIRITUAL CENTER WHOSE MISSION WAS TO PROMOTE THE EVOLUTION OF THE HUMAN BEING AND MANKIND AS A WHOLE, AND WHICH IS MENTIONED AS THE KINGDOM OF GOD IN THE GOSPELS”” ( LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY JUAN LUIS LLÁCER AND JESÚS DE BETANIA).   GOD´S PLAN WAS TO HAVE THE PEOPLE IN THE TOWER OF BABEL SHARING THAT VALUABLE KNOWLEDGE WITH ALL HUMAN BEINGS WORLDWIDE. ONCE GOD FOUND OUT THE OBJECTIVE OF THE TOWER WAS TO BECOME WELL-KNOWN HE DECIDED TO BLOCK THEIR ARROGANCE, CONFUSING THEIR LANGUAGE SO THAT THE TOWER COULDN´T BE FINISHED. THEY NEVER FINISHED IT OFF BECAUSE THEY COULDN´T UNDERSTAND EACH OTHER. FOR EXAMPLE THEY DIDN´T KNOW WHETHER THEY WERE ASKING FOR WATER OR FOR STRAW INSTEAD, OR WHEN THEY ASKED FOR A PICK THEY WOULD TAKE A SHOVEL, SO THERE WERE MANY ACCIDENTS FROM THE MOMENT THEY STARTED SPEAKING MULTIPLE LANGUAGES. IT WAS THEN WHEN THE TOWER OF BABEL WAS DOOMED AND WHEN THE PEOPLE, THE 10TH GENERATION AFTER THE FLOOD, STARTED CALLING THE CITY BABYLON. IN HEBREW “CONFUSE” IS TRANSLATED AS “BALBEL”. THIS WORD, WHEN IT´S VOCALIZED WITH AN “A” GIVES RISE TO “BLA-BLA” IN ORDER TO DESCRIBE VAIN, SENSELESS HOT AIR. BABYLON IS DEPICTED AS A BIG, STRONG AND CORRUPTED CITY WITH A LOT OF PROSTITUTION GOING ON, AS THE FOLLOWING 2 WELL-KNOWN PEOPLE DID:

1.”MARTIN LUTHER MENTIONS IT WHEN TALKING ABOUT ROME, PAPACY HEADQUARTERS, IN HIS COMMENTS ON GENESIS THIS WAY: “ROME, PAPACY HEADQUARTERS, ¿A NEW BABYLON?” ”.

2.”FYODOR DOSTOYEVSKY IN THE KARAMAZOV BROTHERS SAYS THE FOLLOWING: “BECAUSE SOCIALISM IS NOT JUST THE PROBLEM FOR UNEMPLOYMENT BUT ALSO A PROBLEM FOR ATEISM AND FOR THE TOWER OF BABEL, SINCE IT WAS BUILT WITHOUT A GOD, NOT TO REACH HEAVEN FROM HERE BUT TO BRING HEAVEN HERE”.

HISTORY AND FEAR GO HAND IN HAND THROUGHOUT TIME. THE MOST IMPORTANT HISTORICAL FACT RELATED TO FEAR IS WHEN THE THREE MARYS AT THE TOMB, MARY MAGDALEN, MARY OF COPLAS AND MARY SALOME BROKE THE PROMISE THEY MADE TO JESUS OF TELLING EVERYONE ABOUT JESUS´ RESURRECTION, ONCE THEY SAW HIM RESURRECTED, ALL DRESSED IN A WHITE TUNIC. ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF FEAR AND HISTORY IS THE ONE OF JOHN THE BAPTIST, WHO WAS BEHEADED, AND YET HE WAS A REALLY GOOD MAN WHOM JESUS LOVED. HE WAS A MAN WHO WAS BAPTIZING EVERYONE IN THE RIVER JORDAN AND JESUS WAS ONE OF THEM. “THE ACCOUNT DESCRIBES HOW; AS HE EMERGES FROM THE WATER, THE HEAVENS OPEN AND THE HOLY SPIRIT DESCENDS ON HIM “LIKE A DOVE”. A  VOICE  FROM  HEAVEN  THEN   SAYS:   YOU ARE MY SON, THE BELOVED; WITH YOU I AM WELL PLEASED” (JOHN THE BAPTIST. WIKIPEDIA) WHY THIS FEAR AND SECRECY? LET´S IMAGINE IT ALL HAD TO DO WITH THE FEAR POLITICIANS AND AUTHORITIES HAD EXPLAINING PEOPLE MESSAGES FROM THE SPIRITUAL WORLD, SINCE SACRED REALITIES CAN´T BE TRADITIONALLY DESCRIBED. AS MOST WORLDWIDE AUTHORITIES HAPPEN TO BE AGNOSTIC THEY ARE INCLINED TO OMIT ANYTHING RELATED TO THE ESOTERIC PANORAMA, SINCE THEY THEMSELVES REJECT IT, OR BECAUSE THEY CAN´T DESCRIBE IT, AND THEY FEAR THE UNKNOWN AND WHAT OTHERS MIGHT THINK OF THEM.

WHEN JESUS CHRIST TALKS ABOUT HIS JEWISH PEOPLE HE MEANS ANYONE – NOT JUST JEWISH PEOPLE – WHOSE “POWERFUL MINDS SAFEGUARD ONE OF THE GREATEST ENIGMAS OF OUR MANKIND” (LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY JUAN LUIS LLÁCER Y JESÚS DE BETANIA). JESUS CHRIST´S PEOPLE ARE ALL HIS FOLLOWERS, THAT IS, ALL OF YOU AND I ARE HIS JEWISH PEOPLE, SINCE WE FOLLOW HIS LAWS AND TALK ABOUT THEM TO OUR BROTHERS WHENEVER  CHANCES COME. WE, JESUS´ FOLLOWERS, TALK ABOUT THE 7 MOST IMPORTANT MIRACLES PERFORMED BY HIM:

1.“THE CONVERSION OF WATER IN WINE IN THE WEDDING AT CANA,

2.THE HEALING OF A ROYAL OFFICER´S SON,

3.THE HEALING OF A PARALYTIC,

4.THE MULTIPLICATION OF BREAD AND FISH,

5.JESUS WALKING ON WATER.

6.THE HEALING OF SOMEONE BLIND SINCE BIRTH

7.AND THE RAISING OF LAZARUS” (LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY JUAN LUIS LLÁCER AND JESÚS DE BETANIA).

“UP UNTIL THIS POINT IN THE BIBLE, THE WHOLE WORLD HAD ONE LANGUAGE – ONE COMMON SPEECH FOR ALL PEOPLE. THE PEOPLE OF THE EARTH BECAME SKILLED IN CONSTRUCTION AND DECIDED TO BUILD A CITY WITH A TOWER THAT WOULD REACH TO HEAVEN. TO BUILD, THE PEOPLE USED BRICK INSTEAD OF STONE, AND TAR INSTEAD OF MORTAR. THEY USED “MAN-MADE” MATERIALS, INSTEAD OF MORE DURABLE “GOD-MADE” MATERIALS. THE PEOPLE WERE BUILDING A MONUMENT TO THEMSELVES, TO CALL ATTENTION TO THEIR OWN ABILITIES AND ACHIEVEMENTS, INSTEAD OF GIVING GLORY TO GOD. BY BUILDING THE TOWER THEY WANTED TO MAKE A NAME FOR THEMSELVES AND ALSO PREVENT THEIR CITY FROM BEING SCATTERED. GOD CAME TO SEE THEIR CITY AND THE TOWER THEY WERE BUILDING. HE PERCEIVED THEIR INTENCTIONS, AND IN HIS INFINITE WISDOM, HE KNEW THIS “STAIRWAY TO HEAVEN” WOULD ONLY LEAD THE PEOPLE AWAY FROM GOD. HE NOTED THE POWERFUL FORCE WITHIN THEIR UNITY OF PURPOSE. AS A RESULT, GOD CONFUSED THEIR LANGUAGE, CAUSING THEM TO SPEAK DIFFERENT LANGUAGES SO THAT THEY WOULD NOT UNDERSTAND EACH OTHER. BY DOING THIS, GOD THWARTED THEIR PLANS. HE ALSO SCATTERED THE PEOPLE OF THE CITY ALL OVER THE FACE OF THE EARTH. SOME SCHOLARS BELIEVE THAT THIS MARKS THE POINT IN HISTORY WHERE GOD DIVIDED THE EARTH INTO SEPARATE CONTINENTS. GOD SAYS IN GENESIS 11:6 THIS: “IF AS ONE PEOPLE SPEAKING THE SAME LANGUAGE THEY HAVE BEGUN TO DO THIS, THEN NOTHING THEY PLAN TO DO WILL BE IMPOSSIBLE FOR THEM”. GOD REALIZES THAT WHEN PEOPLE ARE UNIFIED IN PURPOSE THEY CAN ACCOMPLISH IMPOSSIBLE FEATS, BOTH NOBLE AND IGNOBLE. THIS IS WHY UNITY IN THE BODY OF CHRIST IS SO IMPORTANT” (THE TOWER OF BABEL-BIBLE STORY SUMMARY).

“ONCE THE BABYLONIANS WERE SCATTERED AROUND THE WORLD THEY STOPPED BUILDING THE CITY. THUS THE CITY WAS CALLED BABEL, AS IT APPEARS IN THE KING JAMES VERSION OF THE BIBLE. THE STORY OF THE TOWER OF BABEL EXPLAINS THE ORIGINS OF THE MULTIPLICITY OF LANGUAGES – ABOUT 5.000 TODAY. GOD WAS CONCERNED THAT HUMANS HAD BLASPHEMED BY BUILDING THE TOWER TO AVOID A 2ND FLOOD, SO GOD BROUGHT INTO EXISTENCE MULTIPLE LANGUAGES. THUS, HUMANS WERE DIVIDED INTO LINGUISTIC GROUPS, UNABLE TO UNDERSTAND EACH OTHER. GENESIS 10:10 STATES THAT BABEL FORMED PART OF NIMROD´S KINGDOM. THE BIBLE DOES NOT SPECIFICALLY MENTION THAT NIMROD ORDERED THE BUILDING OF THE TOWER, BUT MANY OTHER SOURCES HAVE ASSOCIATED ITS CONSTRUCTION WITH NIMROD. GENESIS 11:9 ATRIBUTES THE HEBREW VERSION OF THE NAME, BABEL, TO THE VERB BALAL, WHICH MEANS TO CONFUSE OR CONFOUND IN HEBREW. THE FIRST CENTURY ROMAN-JEWISH AUTHOR FLAVIUS JOSEPHUS SIMILARLY EXPLAINED THAT THE NAME WAS DERIVED FROM THE HEBREW WORD BABEL, MEANING “CONFUSION”. THE GREEK FORM OF THE NAME IN THE SEPTUAGINT, BABYLON, IS ULTIMATELY FROM THE NATIVE AKKADIAN BAB-ILIM, “GATE OF THE GODS” IN REFERENCE TO THE GREAT TEMPLE-TOWERS (THE ZIGGURATS) OF ANCIENT SUMER (BIBLICAL SHINAR). THE RUINS OF THE CITY OF BABYLON STAND NEAR HILLAH, BABIL GOVERNORATE, IRAQ. THE ACCOUNT IN GENESIS MAKES NO MENTION OF ANY DESTRUCTION OF THE TOWER. IN THE MIDRASH (IN JUDAISM IT´S THE BODY OF EXEGESIS OF TORAH TEXTS. IT´S A METHOD OF INTERPRETING BIBLICAL STORIES THAT GOES BEYOND SIMPLE DISTILLATION OF RELIGIOUS, LEGAL OR MORAL TEACHINGS. IT FILLS IN GAPS LEFT IN THE BIBLICAL NARRATIVE) IT´S SAID THAT THE TOP OF THE TOWER WAS BURNT, THE BOTTOM WAS SWALLOWED, AND THE MIDDLE WAS LEFT STANDING TO ERODE OVER TIME” (TOWER OF BABEL-WIKIPEDIA). THE DUTCH CORNELIS ANTONISZ DREW THIS ETCHING SHOWING US HIS VISION AS TO FLAVIO JOSEFO´S DESCRIPTION OF THE TOWER OF BABEL BEING KNOCKED DOWN”:

FullSizeRender

(LA TORRE DE BABEL BY JACQUES VICARI).
the book of jubilees contains one of the most detailed accounts found anywhere of the tower: “and they began to build, and in the fourth week they made brick with fire, and the bricks served them for Stone, and the clay with which they cemented them together was asphalt which comes out of the sea, and out of the fountains of wAter in the land of shinar. And they built it: forty three years were they building it; its breadth was 203 bricks, and the height of a brick was the third of one; its height amounted to 5433 cubits and 2 palms, the extent of one Wall was thirteen stades (Jubilees 10:20-21, charles´ 1913 translation)” (the tower of babel-wikipedia).
“The jewish-roman historian flavius josephus, in his antiquities of the jews (c.94 ce), recounted history as found in the hebrew bible and mentioned the tower of babel. He wrote that it was nimrod who had the tower built and that nimrod was a tyrant who tried to turn the people away from god. In this account, god confused the people rather than destroying them because annihilation with a flood hadn´t taught them to be godly: “now it was nimrod who excited them to such an affront and contempt of god. He was the grandson of ham, the son of noah, a bold man, and of great strength of hand. He persuaded them not to ascribe it to god as if it were through his means they were happy, but to believe that it was their own courage which procured that happiness. He also gradually changed the government into tyranny, seeing no other way of turning men from the fear of god, but to bring them into a constant dependence on his power. now the multitude were ready to follow the determination of nimrod and to esteem it a piece of cowardice to submit to god; and they built a tower neither sparing any pains, nor being in any degree negligent about the work; and, by reason of the multitude of hands employed in it, it grew very high, sooner than any one could expect; but the thickness of it was so great, and it was so strongly built, that thereby its great height seemed, upon the view, to be less than it really was. It was built of burnt brick, cemented together with mortar, made of bitumen, that it might not be liable to admit wAter. When god saw that they acted so madly, he did not resolve to destroy them utterly, since they were not grown wiser by the destruction of the former sinners in the flood. “The flood took place 1656 years after the creation of this world. Therefore people feared the year 3312 to come since it meant 1656 years would have gone by after the flood, and that it would bring some kind of punishment together with it” (the tower of babel-wikipedia). That´s the reason why they started building the tower of babel so that they could be protected from any other floods or other kinds of punishments.
“There are several medieval historiographic accounts that attempt to make an enumeration of the languages scattered at the tower of babel. Because a count of all the descendants of noah listed by name in chapter 10 of génesis (lxx) provides 15 names of japheth´s descendants, 30 for ham´s, and 27 for shem´s, these figures became established as the 72 languages resulting from the confusion of the tower of babel” (the tower of babel-wikipedia).
Throughout history there HAVE always been people who were in charge of either hiding or distorting the truth. When it comes to the tower of babel, if we travel about “a hundred kms south of Bagdad we´ll SEe absolutely no piece left of such tower. However, there are facts backing up the existence of the tower of babel back then, and these are some of the well-known people´s texts and research regarding such tower:
1.“the text of Herodoto (460 bc) tells us about the measurements of the tower just as it was at the time. “in the middle of the temple there is a solid tower. On top of this one there is another tower, and on top of this a third one making 8 towers in all. The ramp which takes us to the 8 towers is built on the outside in a circle around all the towers, and towards the midst of the ramp there is a flat Area with seats to sit down and relax for a while, when going up to the top tower. In the last tower there´s a big temple” (the 9 books of history, book ii. Herodoto). “round the base of the tower of babel were small temples and chapels dedicated to the various gods of the babylonians. In the western chambers stood the couch of the god and the Golden throne mentioned by Herodoto, with other objects of great value. The couch was stated to have measured 9 cubits by 4 (15 ft. By 6 feet 8 inches)” (tower of babel-wikipedia).
2.In the 18th century, a general cOnsul from england in Bagdad, claudius james rich, drEW and describeD an overcrowding of bricks, made of clay and shred Straw. Every 5 or 6 courses cane mats were alternated with them at the joints.  The length of each side is about 90 metres, and the width is 3 times bigger than its height. This base of the tower of babel left was stripped off of hundreds of thousands of baked bricks, which had fallen apart from the different levels and which were used to build cities and villages around there”:  IMG_0824
(la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
3.“ANDRÉ PARROT –ARCHAEOLOGIST AND CHIEF CURATOR OF THE NATIONAL MUSEUMS IN FRANCE – IN ZIGGURATS ET TOUR DE BABEL (1949) SAW THE RUINS OF THE TOWER OF BABEL, AND TELLS US “THE DEMOLITION OF THE TOWER WAS A MIRACULOUS OPERATION: THE EARTH OPENED UP AND SWALLOWED ONE THIRD OF THE TOWER, AND FIRE FALLING DOWN FROM HEAVEN DESTROYED ANOTHER THIRD OF IT. WHAT´S LEFT OF IT STILL IMPOSES RESPECT, SINCE ITS SHADOW TAKES THE SPACE OF A 3-DAY-HIKE PATH. IF YOU GO UP TO THE TOP THE TREES IN THE FOREST CAN BE SEEN AS IF THEY WERE GRASSHOPPERS”” (LA EPOPEYA DE LAS GRANDES CONSTRUCCIONES BY RENÉ POIRIER.1965)
4.“CHALDEAN HISTORIAN BÉROSE (3RD CENTURY BC) ALSO SAW THE RUINS OF THE TOWER OF BABEL. HE BACKS UP THE IDEA THAT DUE TO THE ARROGANCE OF BABYLONIANS VIOLENT WINDS DESTROYED THE TOWER. MÁSPERO MENTIONS BÉROSE IN HISTOIRE ANCIENNE DES PEUPLES DE LÓRIENT (1886)” (LA EPOPEYA DE LAS GRANDES CONSTRUCCIONES BY RENÉ POIRIER.1965)
5.“SIR ROBERT KER PORTER (1777-1842), MAN OF LETTERS, PAINTER AND BRITISH CONSUL IN BAGHDAD IN 1820, ALSO SAW THE RUINS OF THE TOWER OF BABEL” (LA EPOPEYA DE LAS GRANDES CONSTRUCCIONES BY RENÉ POIRIER.1965)
6.“Antiquity narrators such as diodoro  SicULO  and his predecesSor estrabon GREEK HISTORIANS (1ST CENTURY B.C.). although NEITHER OF THEM SAW  ANY remains of the tower of babel, Estrabon ALLOWS   US to go back in time to when Alexander of macedon (356 B.C.- 323 B.C.) wanted to destroy the tower. Removing the debris meant having ten thousand men working for 2 months. However, Alexander THE GREAT could not finish it off because he soOn became ill and short after that died” (la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
7.“FlaviUS JOSEPH’S  the jewish historian at the end of the 1st century A.c. even contemplateD revenge AS A PLAUSIBLE REASON BEHIND THE TOWER OF BABEL: “Nemrod promiseD to protect the people against god´s second punishment, a second flood, and so he builT a tower so tall that wAter cOULDn´t reach it. Nemrod  even tOOK revenge against his parents´ DEATH, AND All of a sudden terrible winds knocked over the tower of babel”. Seudo filon, another historian from that time, says “god caused significant trembling, and fire swirls cameo out of blast furnaces“: 300px-Confusion_of_Tongues (la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
8.In the talmud (=the basis for all codes of jewish law. It translates literally as “instruction” (talmud-wikipedia) ) we find this significant testimony: “a third of the tower of babel was destroyed, a third was knocked down and another third still exists today” (la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
9.The english businessman John eldred rawwolf and, The rabbi benjamin of   Tudela (xii century) thought they saw the remains of the tower of babel.
“THE TOWER OF BABEL WAS PROBABLY BUILT IN THE 1ST CENTURY BC, AND THE CITY OF BABYLON BECAME HUGE IN THE 3RD CENTURY BC. MANY ARTISTS PAINTED THE TOWER OF BABEL, LIKE ST. SABINO, DUKE BEDFORD (15TH CENTURY), PIETER BRUEGHEL THE ELDER (C. 1525-1569), GUSTAVO DORÉ ” (LA EPOPEYA DE LAS GRANDES CONSTRUCCIONES BY RENÉ POIRIER.1965)
changes the destiny of mankind according to our acts. Corruption was King in babylon and the tower was the result of babylon´s arrogance.
“According to the midrash tradition, the tower of babel can also be a war machine against heaven forces: “they never slow down their work pace and from those really tall floors they shot arrow against heaven, which came down all covered in blood. Right after this, they regained hope and yelled: “ we ´ve massacred all that is in heaven”: . Right after this confusion of languages and the destruction of the tower took place. “linguists count 5.000 languages, live and dead, and could even double the number” (la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
Let´s imagine the 1st descent of god to the top of the tower and the city illustrates the state of pure conscience, of our soul. Let´s imagine the 2nd time god descended to the triple earthly world – physical, emotional and mental – creating multiple languages and spreading them out into their territories illustrates our multiple lives with our earthly ties before we´re finally aware of our pure conscience, so that it can join our soul. Let´s imagine the tower of babel was a symbol to help us understand the Wheel of enchained lIves before we reach awareness of what is pure and real, and what´s earthly and useless, in terms of reaching a pure conscience free of restraints to make it posible for us to meet our soul, that is, jesus christ. Let´s imagine the fact that the people spoke just one language meant that “they had reached some kind of connection between their mind sensitive to the external signs, and their abstract mind, sensitive to ideas” (LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY JUAN LUIS LLÁCER & JESÚS DE BETANIA). Let´s imagine those people wanted to use that valuable quality of unification as to what their will ordered. Let´s imagine that egoistic way of using that valuable quality of unification would deny them the opportunity of such quality and mystery being spread all over the world. The tower symbolizes an earthly personality. The gOspel of mark (7,6) puts into isaiah´s mouth one of jesus christ´s quotes, (29,13), which expresses clearly the way people from the tower of babel were right after they were scattered around: “these people honor me with their lips, but their hearts are far from me”. The lips are the external sign whereas the heart is the inner sign of the honor given to god. When our mind is enlightened our mental conscience wakes up to a true reality, and our perception becomes observation of reality as it really is. The tower represents the existencial world where the evolution of mankind takes place. The people described in the tower of babel is the remote precedent of what we historically know as the jewish people (isaiah 6,5): “I am a man of impure lips and among impure lips I live””.
“THERE ARE OTHER TOWERS, EVEN OLDER ONES THAN THE TOWER OF BABEL THAT STILL EXIST. THIS IS THE CASE OF TCHOGHA ZANBIL, IN ELAM, EASTERN MESOPOTAMIA, WHICH DATES BACK TO ABOUT 7 CENTURIES BEFORE THE RESTORATION OF THE TOWER OF BABEL. It was built by untash gal, King of Anshan and susa in the 3rd century b.c.” (la torre de babel by jacques vicari).   
IMG_0836
Let´s imagine the reason why tchogha zanbil is one of the best kept towers in the near east is because there was no corruption there.
Throughout history all the countries who rejected god were punished. Only god´s laws can keep us in line with moderation. The tower of babel would have existed today if it had had a noble goal while it was being built. “The tower of babel suggests an ascetic trip to the center of each one of us. It´s a convergent path for all mankind that moves forward through levels towards the main unity tucci talks about” (la torre de babel by Jacques vicari).
The book la torre de babel by Jacques vicari WAS FINALLY PRINTED IN 2006 IN MEXICO. THE FACT THAT IT´S TAKEN THIS BOOK SO LONG TO BE PRINTED SHOULD MAKE US ALL WONDER WHY. IS IT MAYBE THAT THERE ARE SOME PEOPLE OUT THERE WHO REALLY TRY TO DO ANYTHING THEY CAN TO OBSTRUCT THE PRINTING OF BOOKS SUCH AS THIS ONE, SINCE THEY´VE GOT IMPORTANT INFORMATION AS TO WHAT GOD EXPECTS FROM US?
“JURIS DOCTORS WERE ONE OF THE 3 GROUPS WHO ADDRESSED THE FOLLOWING WORDS TO JESUS CHRIST WHILE HE WAS ON THE CROSS: “HE SAVED OTHERS. IF HE´S KING OF ISRAEL HE SHOULD COME DOWN FROM THE CROSS RIGHT NOW, AND THEN WE WOULD BELIEVE IN HIM”. LUKE REFERS TO THEM IN LUKE 11,52: “YOU´RE IN BIG TROUBLE, JURIS DOCTORS, WHO HAVE TAKEN CONTROL OF THE DOOR KEY OF KNOWLEDGE. YOU   DIDN´T GET IN AND YOU DARED BLOCK ANYONE ELSE GETTING IN AS WELL”. THE DOOR KEY OF KNOWLEDGE IS THE SACRED KNOWLEDGE” (LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY JUAN LUIS LLÁCER & JESÚS DE BETANIA).
THE SAME AS PRIESTS, JURIS DOCTORS AND ELDERS BETRAYED JESUS CHRIST CONDEMNING HIM THE SAME MANY PRIESTS HAVE DONE ALREADY SINCE WE KNOW SOME PRIESTS BETRAY JESUS WHEN THEY BREAK OUR LORD´S LAWS, REQUESTING PROSTITUTION AND SEX-ABUSING CHILDREN. MANY TEXTS ABOUT JESUS CHRIST WRITTEN BY CORRUPT PRIESTS CHANGED JESUS´ LIBERATING MESSAGE FROM THE SACRED LEVEL TO THE EARTHLY ONE WHERE JESUS´ MESSAGE WAS LINKED TO POWER AND ALLIANCE.
MANY PEOPLE ARE LOST IN THEIR MILLION THOUGHTS, IN THEIR PILE OF WORK, IN THEIR GREED, ARROGANCE, LUST, ETC., NOT EVEN WONDERING WHETHER THAT KIND OF LIFE IS RIGHT OR NOT. HOW CAN ONE KNOW WHAT IS RIGHT AND WHAT IS NOT? WELL, EACH ONE OF US NEEDS TO GO BEYOND IT, SO THAT WE CAN “FEEL THE UPWARD ATTRACTION OF THE LIGHT CONSCIENCE OVER THE MOON CONSCIENCE” (LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY J.L. LLÁCER & J. DE BETANIA). HOW CAN THE INNER CHRIST CONSCIENCE ENLIGHTEN US? THERE IS ONLY 1 WAY AND IT´S THIS ONE: HAVING “A PURE CONSCIENCE, A CONSCIENCE NOT SUBJECTED TO ANYTHING, EQUALS A FLASHLIGHT” ( LA TORRE DE BABEL Y LA JARRA DE ALABASTRO BY J. L. LLÁCER & J. DE BETANIA).
JESUS TOLD HIS DISCIPLES TO SPREAD THE WORD OF OUR LORD LETTING ALL OUR BROTHERS KNOW ABOUT OUR LORD´S LAWS. Jesus´ disciples and we, jesus´ followers, are what jesus called “assembly of Israel” since we´re not afraid of giving testimony of the divine presence within us, and that presence together with the awareness of it is what gives us the real identity each of us should aim at during our time here. Having full mind enlightenment will only come from god. The ones granted with that enlightenment are the ones who can give testimony of jesus christ presence within us. Those are the ones who being part of the universal truth are the ones as well who enjoy being part of the universal freedom quite intensely TO SAY the least, because jesus christ is their spiritual identity. It´s time to talk about jesus christ in a universal way, it´s time to tell everyone that the real identity of each one of us is our true affinity for our lord, the divine essence inside us. We can “create within us the conditions which will let our lord, our soul, our real self appear and be healed once and for all. Only when our personality notices our soul, our source of life and of conscience can we heal our insatisfaction whose origin is the lack of sense in our own life”. Perceiving our soul will be our whole source of health and direction of life. Our soul is our pure conscience, able to act LUCIDLY AND powerfully. Our soul can reach that state of pure observation, and when that happens we´re able to hear the message our soul wants to share with us. “our soul´s goal here is learning to be in this world without belonging to this world”, that is, we´ve got to do something really good while we´re here in order “to get back that full conscience of our belonging to the spiritual kingdom (la torre de babel y la jarra de alabastro by j.l. llácer & j. De Betania).
When we´re aware of the restraints our society places on us making us value material things, prestige, fame and status, and leading us into underestimating the spiritual world is when we can start helping our conscience become independent of all those restraints. It´s our duty to make it happen. Only then we´ll give our soul the necessary opportunity of having a personal history. We need to transcend this temporary evolution. We need to go beyond “the physical, emotionAL and mental worlds. These 3 inferior worlds are submitted to time, at birth and death. Only our soul being present in our life can put an end to the chaining of lives and submission to the time factor. Our conscience needs to identify itself with our soul, not with our changing moODs. Our true soul is pure conscience, which doesn´t listen to any restraints. Our priority needs to be our soul, not our physical body, our emotions nor our thoughts. “that pure light of the conscience of the soul can only be born into an illuminated and virginal mind. That is the condition to be fully free of all ties. It´s then when our mind is ready for receiving the  spirit,  as   we´re told in the gospels (matthews & luke), which talk about jesus´ infancy” (la torre de babel y la jarra de alabastro by j.l. llácer & j. De Betania).
Each one of us needs to encounter consciously what is sacred inside us, our soul. That joy will take place once the process of getting rid of our false identities has been accomplished successfully. Rejecting all the false identities on us and going back to our spiritual origin, jesus christ, we´ll be on the right track to get where we most want to, our soul, our pure conscience, so that we can contact jesus christ, our inner divine presence. We need to go beyond our mind and connect with our abstract mind. God wants us to use the qualities we have to be shared with all our brothers. If the quality is having been granted the gift of knowing jesus christ god wants us to give testimony of our own soUL, through our words and acts on a daily basis. It´s not enougH if we, having been granted the gift of the holy spirit and of the love of jesus christ sit in our sofa, do our activities and keep the spiritual knowledge to ourselves, knowing most of our brothers out there are thristy for some kind of guidance, or are even unaware of their thirst and we need to remind them of it. We need to tell them our goal herE is to transcend our earthly mind in order to reach the abstract mind which will guide us to a higher level where we can meeT our peaceful true origin, our soul, jesus christ. It´s in jesus christ where we find ourselves, where we get to know our real identity, a pure soul full of love like jesus christ´s. 
Our society today tends to idolize football players, actors, singers, millionaires, etc., ignoring those attitudes are typical of earthly beings who have not evolved into spiritual ones. We ignore our soul since our conscience is dependent on the physical, emotional and mental factors around US. ACCORDING TO ST. THOMAS AQUINAS (1225-1274) THE 5 SENSES FAIL, AND ONLY FAITH CAN WORK WONDERS HELPING US CONNECT WITH THE SPIRITUAL ORIGIN WITHIN US. We are unaware that we aren´t free but puppets of this earthly world, and so we don´t lay the groundwork for our soul to join our conscience, since our conscience is not pure but subjective. We are all descendants of the people of the tower of babel, of the black sheep of Israel who get stuck in our material world and don´t care about what´s going on inside ourselves, where the divine presence is waiting to find the right conditons of our evolution as to our conscience, so that the connection with the spiritual world can be carried out, and we can irradiate spiritual strength to our brothers. Once we know that endless source of life within us,  because we travelled to the very center of ourselves, we need to tell the others all about it. This way we´ll be developing our humanity fully. Once we wake up to our pure conscience we´ll be using our third eye,”the speculative invisible eye which provides perception beyond ordinary sight” (third eye-Wikipedia). Then each of us will be god´s people who live here following jesus christ legacy.
The following two awsome 2015 movies sunset song by terence Davies, and the sense of wonder by Eric besnard show us two examples of two good people with a soul, the protagonists, chris guthrie (Agyness deyn), and Pierre (benjamín LAVERNE) RESPECTIVELY. CHRIS AND PIERRE DO A REALLY GOOD JOB TAKING ON THE ROLE OF PURE CONSCIENCES. HIGHLY RECOMMENDABLE!
The song innuendo by queen describes what we´re talking about as well:
While the sun hangs in the sky and the desert has sand,
While the waves crash in the sea and meet the land,
While there´s a wind & the stars & the rainbow,
´till the mountains crumble into the plain.
 
Oh yes, we´ll keep on trying,
Tread that fine line,
Oh, we´ll keep on trying,
Yeah,
Just passing our time.
 
Oh,oh,
While we live according to race,color or creed,
While we rule by blind madness & pure greed,
Our lives dictated by tradition,superstition,
False religiON,

THROUGH THE EONS AND ON AND ON.

 
Oh yes, we´ll keep on trying,yeah,
We´ll tread that fine line,
Oh, oh, we´ll keep on trying,
´till the end of time,
´till the end of time.
 
Through the sorrow all through our splendor,
Don´t take offence
At my innuendo…
In this great song FreddIE mercury is trying to tell us that we need to transcend thESE earthly ties, which prevent our conscience from being pure and therefore from connecting WITH our soul. We´re ready to fly now, but let´s fly high to CATCH A HIGH five when time comes from high christ. LET´S ALLOW JESUS CHRIST TO STEAL THE SHOW IN OUR HEARTS. Those two amazing movies, innuendo, the lord inside us, and so much, it all makes a total count of more grip to set about going for it! 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

STILL THE ONE!

WHEN WE READ ARTICLES LIKE SYNTHETIC TELEPATHY AND PSYCHOTRONIC WEAPON TORTURES BY 100,000 FBI AND NSA SECRET SPIES ON RUDY2´S MULTILINGUAL BLOG THAT IS WHEN WE SEE THIS WORLD IS NOT GOD´S BUT EVIL´S. EVIL IS THE KING IN THE WORLD SINCE MOST HEARTS IGNORE GOD, JESUS CHRIST AND OUR MISSION DURING OUR WALK AROUND HERE. WHEN GOD IS ABSENT IN OUR LIVES OUR EGO HAS A LOT OF CHANCES TO RUN THE SHOW AND SPOIL OUR COMPASSION, CHARITY, KINDNESS AND PATIENCE WHEN IT ALL COMES TO LISTENING  TO OTHERS. WHEN PEOPLE IGNORE GOD´S LAWS THEY CHEAT ON EACH OTHER AND THINK IT´S ALL RIGHT TO DO SO. IGNORING GOD´S LAWS PUTS PEOPLE ON THE WRONG TRACK, NOT SEEING WHAT THEY´VE GOT IN FRONT OF THEIR EYES AND SO THEY UNDERESTIMATE SEX AND SO THEY SHARE IT WITH ANYONE, ANYHOW, ANYTIME…SOONER THAN LATER THOSE ON THE WRONG TRACK RUIN THEIR LIVES, THEIR SEX, AND THEIR PERPETUAL PEACE AND JOY, WHICH ONLY COMES FROM OUR OMNIPOTENT FATHER ABOVE.

TODAY MOST PEOPLE DO NOT FEEL ANY ATTACHMENT TO ANYTHING NOR TO ANYONE, AND SURELY ENOUGH THIS IS A SYMPTOM OF BEING ON THE WRONG TRACK. THE MOMENT WE GROW APART FROM OUR SUPREME LORD, THE BIGGEST SOURCE OF LOVE, OUR HEARTS BECOME COLD AND NOTHING GOOD COMES OUT OF THEM. NO JOY, NO LOVE, NO NOTHING. PEOPLE RUN FROM ONE PLACE TO ANOTHER WITHOUT LISTENING TO ANYONE REALLY. IT´S EGOCENTRICISM MAINLY. OUR EGO MAKES US THINK OF OURSELVES ALL THE TIME, VERY OFTEN LEAVING OUR DEAR ONES OR PEOPLE IN NEED ASIDE. ONCE WE GET TO KNOW GOD IT´S EASY FOR US TO FEEL DETACHED FROM SHALLOW ACQUAINTANCES OR PEOPLE WHO ARE CONCERNED ABOUT THEIR EGO, AND WHO BEHAVE AS IF THEIR EGO RULED THEIR LIVES. THESE DAYS GOD IS ALMOST ABSENT IN MOST TV PROGRAMMES, EXCEPT FOR SUNDAY MASS AT LEAST IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY. THE FEW OF US WHO BELIEVE IN GOD TALK TO GOD ON A DAILY BASIS, PRAYING AND FOLLOWING HIS RULES AND TURN TO THE BIBLE AS A MEANS OF GETTING CLOSE TO GOD AND HIS WORD.

THE SACRED BIBLE IS THE MOST READ BOOK IN THE HISTORY OF MANKIND, THE MOST COPIED, PUBLISHED AND TRANSLATED BOOK THROUGHOUT THE CENTURIES FOR ITS ETHICAL AND TRANSFORMING POWER, WHICH ANSWERS ALL QUESTIONS HUMAN BEINGS BRING UP. IT CAN BE READ IN 2.287 LANGUAGES, AND SO 90% OF MANKIND CAN UNDERSTAND IT. FIRST IT WAS TRANSLATED TO HEBREW, FROM THERE TO GREEK AND THEN TO LATIN BY ST. GREGORY SEVERAL CENTURIES AFTERWARDS. THE GENRE WE CAN FIND IN THE BIBLE ARE VARIED: FROM HISTORICAL, MORAL, POETIC, PHILOSOPHICAL TO LEGAL AMONG OTHERS. THE CATHOLIC BIBLE IS COMPOSED OF 73 BOOKS – 43 OF THE OLD TESTAMENT AND 27 OF THE NEW ONE -, AND THEY ARE THEOLOGICAL HISTORY WHOSE MAIN CHARACTERS ARE GOD AND THE CHOSEN ONES.. THE AUTHORS AND THE CHARACTERS IN THESE 73 BOOKS ARE OF VERY DIFFERENT ORIGINS:

1.SOME ARE UNKNOWN AUTHORS.

2.OTHERS ARE FROM A DISTANT PAST (18TH BC-2ND AC), FROM WHOM WE´LL NEVER HAVE A RELIABLE BIOGRAPHY.

MANY OF THE UNKNOWN AUTHORS AND OF THE ANCIENT ONES NEVER MET EACH OTHER, BECAUSE THEY EITHER LIVED IN DIFFERENT TIMES, DIFFERENT PLACES OR SPOKE DIFFERENT LANGUAGES. SOME OF THE AUTHORS WERE LEARNED PEOPLE, LIKE KING DAVID, KING SALOMON, ST. PAUL, ST. LUKE AND SOME PROPHETS. OTHER AUTHORS WERE ORDINARY FELLOWS LIKE THE APOSTLES – HUMBLE FISHERMEN -, CHOSEN BY JESUS, BEING AWARE OF THE FACT THAT THEY KNEW MORE OF NETS THAN OF SPIRITUALITY”.

“FROM THE VERY START, THE VERY FIRST LINES IN THE BIBLE SHOW US THE HOLY SPIRIT DOES NOT PASS UNNOTICED, USING MANY PEOPLE AS INTERMEDIARIES, SIMPLY BECAUSE GOD LOVES US IMMENSELY. EVEN THOUGH GOD GIVES US HIS LOVE FOR FREE WE GO ON REJECTING HIS PROTECTION. AS WE REJECT GOD WE ARE UNPROTECTED AGAINST EVIL FORCES. AS WE ARE UNPROTECTED FROM EVIL FORCES GOVERNMENTS MAKE PEOPLE GET INTO FIGHTS WHICH TAKE MANY INNOCENT LIVES. DESPITE ALL, GOD IS STILL ALIVE IN THE MIDDLE OF THE XXI CENTURY, LOVING US LIKE THE CHOSEN ONES, AND FORGIVING US TIME AND TIME AGAIN. IT´S THIS FACT WHICH MAKES OF THE BIBLE SUCH A CURRENT MANUSCRIPT SINCE ITS MORAL TEACHINGS ARE ABSOLUTELY VALID FOR TODAY´S MAN. WHENEVER WE FEEL LET DOWN IF WE RESORT TO GOD, TALKING TO HIM WITH PRAYERS OR READING THE BIBLE HE WILL COME TO US SOONER THAN WE THINK. THE BIBLE ALSO TELLS US ABOUT WHAT WILL COME AFTER EACH ONE OF US DIES.”( BOTH QUOTES ABOVE ARE FROM CIELO E INFIERNO: VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA).

“READING THE BIBLE IS DIFFICULT FOR THE FOLLOWING REASONS:

1.THE HERETICS VERY OFTEN DISTORTED THE MEANING TO FAVOR THEIR OWN INTERESTS.

2.THE HERETICS OFTEN INTERPRETED  COMPLEX TEXTS SUPERFICIALLY.

3.THE RABBIS WERE NOT INTERESTED IN FINDING OUT THE BIBLICAL AUTHORS´ INTENTIONS NOR IN TAKING INTO CONSIDERATION THE HISTORICAL CONTEXT OF THESE SACRED TEXTS.

4.ALLEGORIES.” (HISTORY OF THE BIBLE BY KAREN ARMSTRONG).

THERE ARE PEOPLE WHO HAVE NEVER READ ANY ALLEGORIES AND SO WHENEVER THEY LISTEN TO A BIBLE´S TEXT THEIR MINDS CAN´T MAKE ANY SENSE OF WHAT THAT TEXT IS TRYING TO SAY TO THEM. AS MANY PEOPLE FIND ALLEGORIES DIFFICULT TO INTERPRET, THE GOAL OF KNOWING GOD, OUR FATHER IS AN IMPOSSIBLE MISSION. GIVEN THE FACT THAT LANGUAGE ITSELF CAN BE SOMETIMES SUBJECT TO NUMEROUS INTERPRETATIONS, IF WE ADD ALLEGOREIS TO OUR LANGUAGE THEN THE NUMEROUS INTERPRETATIONS TURN INTO FAR TOO MANY CHANCES FOR GOD´S COMPETITION´S FOLLOWERS TO COME IN, UNDO AND DISTORT AS MUCH OF GOD´S DIVINE MESSAGE FOR OUR SALVATION. THE BOOK IS PACKED WITH ALLEGORIES AND THAT´S WHY WE DON´T UNDERSTAND SOME OF THEM. WHAT WE DO UNDERSTAND AND MUST BE AWARE OF IS THAT GOD ALWAYS KEEPS HIS WORD LIKE WHEN HE TOLD LOT AND HIS WIFE NOT TO LOOK BEHIND THEM WHEN FLEEING SODOM. AS LOT´S WIFE FAILED TO COMPLY WITH GOD´S LAW SHE TURNED INTO A PILLAR OF SALT. SODOM AND GOMORRAH WERE DESTROYED AS IT WAS FORETOLD. ANOTHER EXAMPLE OF GOD´S MESSAGE USING ALLEGORIES IS IN AMOS 8 WHERE GOD SHOWS AMOS A BASKET FULL OF FRUIT AND ASKS HIM THIS: “WHAT CAN YOU SEE, AMOS?” AND AMOS ANSWERED: “A BASKET FULL OF RIPE FRUIT”. AND GOD TOLD HIM THIS:” MY ISRAELI PEOPLE ARE RIPE. I WON´T FORGIVE THEM ANYMORE. WHEN THAT DAY COMES MUSIC WILL TURN INTO LAMENT, CADAVERS AND SILENCE WILL FLOOD EVERYWHERE, THE LORD´S ORACLE”.

THE LACK OF FAITH WORLDWIDE IS ROOTED ON THE FOLLOWING FACTS:

1.LET´S IMAGINE THAT THINGS STARTED GOING WRONG MANY CENTURIES BEFORE JESUS CHRIST WAS BORN, WHEN PEOPLE STARTED COMPLAINING ABOUT COMPLYING WITH THE FULFILLMENT OF THE TORAH, AND SO SOME PRIESTS STARTED FEELING INTIMIDATED AS WELL, DUE TO THE MANY COMPLAINTS. VERY SOON ALL THE OTHER PRIESTS STARTED DOING THE SAME IN ORDER TO PLEASE PEOPLE, SINCE PRIESTS FEARED PEOPLE MUCH MORE THAN GOD, AND THAT´S WHY THEY DECIDED TO CHANGE GOD´S LAWS.

2.THE FACT THAT MANY PRIESTS REQUESTED PROSTITUTES MANY CENTURIES BEFORE JESUS CHRIST WAS BORN, AND THE FACT THAT MANY PRIESTS DID NOT TEACH GOD´S KNOWLEDGE PAVED THE WAY TO SECTS AGAINST GOD.

3.THE SPREAD OF SECTS TOOK PLACE SPECIALLY IN THE LATE MIDDLE AGES IN GERMANY, THE NETHERLANDS, FLANDERS, GREAT BRITAIN, FRANCE, CATALONIA AND DURANGO (BASQUE COUNTRY). DURANGO HERESY (1442-1444) IS ONE OF THE MANY EXAMPLES. IN DURANGO IN 1444 THIRTEEN PEOPLE WERE BURNT BY THE AUTHORITIES OUTSIDE  ST. MARY CHURCH, BECAUSE THEY WERE AGAINST THE 10 COMMANDMENTS AND THE SACRAMENTS. FRAY ALONSO DE MELLA – A FRANCISCAN PREACHER – AND FRAY GUILLÉN LED THE SECT AGAINST GOD, INTERPRETING THE BIBLE AGAINST ESTABLISHED AUTHORITY . FRAY ALONSO WOUND UP BEING STABBED TO DEATH BY THE MUSLIMS IN GRANADA, AND FRAY GUILLÉN ENDED UP BURNT IN LEKEITIO. PEOPLE LIKE FRAY ALONSO, FRAY GUILLÉN AND OTHERS WERE IN CHARGE OF MOCKING THE BIBLE, GOD´S 10 COMMANDMENTS AND THE SACRAMENTS. THEIR GOAL HAS ALWAYS BEEN AND STILL IS TO MISLEAD PEOPLE BY MEANS OF AUDACITY. TODAY THERE ARE STILL DESCENDANTS OF THOSE PEOPLE BACK THEN WHO REPELLED GOD´S LAWS AND WHO THOUGHT THEY WERE FREE TO DO WHAT THEY WANTED TO.

LET´S IMAGINE THAT CORRUPT ONES THROUGHOUT HISTORY, THAT IS, CENTURIES BEFORE CHRIST AND AFTER CHRIST TOOK PART IN DISTORTING THE TRUTH, GETTING RID OF IMPORTANT   TEXTS       WHERE GOD´S LAWS AND ADVICE FOR US WERE TOLD, AND ALL THAT HAPPENED BECAUSE THERE WERE CORRUPT PRIESTS WHO PRETENDED TO BE ON  GOD´S SIDE TO FOOL GOD´S FOLLOWERS. LET´S IMAGINE MOST CORRUPT PRIESTS PROBABLY WERE GOOD ONES WHEN THEY STARTED OFF AS PRIESTS, BUT THEIR FAITH WASN´T STRONG ENOUGH AND FLESH TEMPTATIONS TOOK OVER. NO WONDER ONE OF GOD´S MESSAGES IS THAT PRIESTS WILL BE THE MOST SEVERELY PUNISHED OF ALL HUMAN BEINGS ON EARTH. WITH A FEW EXCEPTIONS, THE MAJORITY OF THE PEOPLE   DON´T HAVE FAITH IN GOD BECAUSE OF ALL THE EFFORTS MADE BY SO MANY CORRUPT PRIESTS, PROPHETS AND BILLIONS OF PAID-OFF ONES WHO MOCKED AND STILL GO AGAINST IT NOWADAYS. THIS LONG AND WINDING ROAD OF LIES ABOUT GOD, AND OF IMPORTANT DESTROYED TEXTS FROM OUR LORD RESULT IN OUR CURRENT WORLD AVID FOR MONEY, SEX AND READY TO SHOW DISPLEASURE WHENEVER SOMEONE MENTIONS GOD, JESUS CHRIST, THE HOLY MARY OR THE HOLY SPIRIT. WHEN SOMEONE BRINGS IN THE TOPIC OF GOD, THE HOLY MARY AND THE HOLY SPIRIT SOME PEOPLE´S REACTION IS LIKE NO WAY,I CAN´T TAKE THIS, THIS IS SOMETHING FROM THE PAST WHICH IS A LIE, I FEEL STRANGE, WHAT´S GOING ON?, I DON´T HAVE ANY CONTROL OVER THIS TOPIC ETC., AND THAT´S BECAUSE OF THE MANY CENTURIES OF MANIPULATION OF GOD´S MESSAGES BY BILLIONS OF CORRUPT ONES WHO DEVOTED THEIR LIVES TO DISTORTING, MOCKING AND DESTROYING GOD´S MESSAGES FOR ALL OF US.

ONCE WE SEE THAT THE BIBLE WAS DISTORTED, PRESENTING US INTERPRETATIONS WHICH WEREN´T THE AUTHOR´S INTENTION WE´LL BE IN A BETTER UNDERSTANDING POSITION TO ACCEPT THE BIBLE AS SOMETHING DEAR TO US, DESPITE ITS DISTORTIONS. LET´S IMAGINE THAT OUR PARENTS KEPT A GOLD MEDAL WITH SOME LOVING WORDS ENGRAVED IN IT AND THAT UNFORTUNATELY SOMEONE FOUND IT AND DECIDED TO REMOVE THE WORDS ENGRAVED IN IT SO THAT HE COULD SELL IT. LET´S IMAGINE SOMEHOW THE POLICE MANAGED TO CATCH THE PERSON TRYING TO SELL IT AND FINALLY WE GOT OUR PARENTS´ GOLD MEDAL WHICH WAS DESTINED FOR US. WOULD WE REJECT THE MEDAL SIMPLY BECAUSE SOME LOVING WORDS WERE REMOVED FROM IT?, OR WOULD WE KEEP IT AND LOVE IT JUST AS MUCH AS WE DID WHEN THE LOVING WORDS WERE ENGRAVED IN IT? SURE WE SHOULD VALUE IT AS MUCH AS IF IT WAS FIRSTLY DESIGNED, EVEN IF THERE´S NO WRITTEN MESSAGE, SINCE THE MEDAL ITSELF IS A LOVE MESSAGE. THE MEDAL IS IMBUED WITH LOVE. THE BIBLE TOO, DESPITE ITS REPETITIONS AND CONTRADICTIONS, MUST BE VALUED AS THE HOLY BOOK WITH HEALING POWER TO HELP US SINCE GOD´S ESSENCE IS IN THERE. GOD´S HOLY SPIRIT IS IN THE BIBLE. IN THE BIBLE THERE ARE TIMES WHEN WE SEE REPETITIONS, CONTRADICTIONS OR SIMPLY TOO MUCH MEASUREMENT INFORMATION AND NOT ENOUGH WISDOM IN A PARTICULAR TEXT, LIKE FOR EXAMPLE WE CAN SEE IN EZEKIEL 40-43, WHERE THE AUTHOR DESCRIBES THE NEW TEMPLE OF JERUSALEM, AND THE HEIGHT AND THE WIDTH ARE REPEATED UNTIL ONE´S BLUE IN THE FACE. ALSO TOO MUCH UNNECESARY INFORMATION IS GIVEN IN RELATION TO THE DESCRIPTION OF THE SURROUNDINGS OF THE TEMPLE, PROVIDING US WITH TOO MANY MINOR DETAILS AND PRECISE MEASURES AS TO PORTICOS, ATRIUMS, ETC., AS WE CAN SEE IN EZEKIEL 40, 48-49: HE TOOK ME TO THE VESTIBULE OF THE TEMPLE AND MEASURED ITS PILASTERS: 2 AND A HALF METRES EACH ONE. THE WIDTH OF THE PORTICO WAS A METRE AND A HALF ON BOTH SIDES. ALSO “IT WAS FIFTY CUBITS LONG AND TWENTY-FIVE CUBITS WIDE” IS REPEATED OVER AND OVER AGAIN IN RELATION TO THE NORTH GATE, THE SOUTH GATE AND THE GATES TO THE INNER COURT. THAT SHALLOW INFORMATION IS NOT SUITABLE FOR THE BIBLE, EVEN IF WE´RE TALKING ABOUT THE SACRED TEMPLE OF JERUSALEM. DURING THESE CHAPTERS 40-43 WE SEE TOO MANY MEASURES OF DIFFERENT PARTS OF THE TEMPLE WHICH MAKES US THINK SOMEONE PROBABLY DIDN´T LIKE LA TORAH´S LAWS AND DECIDED TO DO SOME HARM TO IT ADDING SUPERFICIAL INFORMATION LIKE THAT ONE.

ON THE OTHER HAND THERE ARE MEMORABLE BIBLICAL TEXTS LIKE FOR EXAMPLE THESE ONES:

1.IN THE YEAR 539 BC, CYRUS, PERSIAN KING, DEFEATED BABYLONIANS AND BECAME THE MOST POWERFUL MAN OF ALL EMPIRES. CYRUS PROMISED TO REPATRIATE ALL THE EXILES AND KEPT HIS WORD. BY THE END OF 539 BC, SOME MONTHS AFTER BEING CROWNED, A SMALL GROUP OF EXILES WENT TO JERUSALEM. MOST ISRAELITES CHOSE TO STAY IN BABYLON, WHERE THEY CONTRIBUTED TO THE HOLY HEBREW SCRIPTURES. THE EXILES WHO CAME BACK BROUGHT WITHIN THEMSELVES 9 ROLLS WHICH TOLD THE HISTORY OF THEIR PEOPLE, FROM THEIR CREATION TO THEIR DEPORTATION. THE FIRST 5 BOOKS ARE PART OF THE PENTATEUCH: GENESIS, EXODUS, LEVITIC, NUMBERS AND DEUTERONOMY, AND  TO THESE 5 BOOKS WE HAVE TO ADD JOSHUA, JUDGES, SAMUEL AND KINGS. THEY ALSO BROUGHT ANTOLOGIES OF THE PROPHETS´ ORACLES, AND THE PSALMS BOOK WHICH INCLUDED THEN PSALMS WRITTEN IN BABYLON. THE BIBLE WAS NOT FINISHED YET BUT THE EXILES HAD THE BASICS OF THE HEBREW BIBLE IN THEIR POSSESSION(HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG).

2.“WHEN THE ROMAN SOLDIERS BURST INTO THE PATIOS OF THE TEMPLE, THEY CAME ACROSS ABOUT 6,000 ZEALOT JEWS, READY TO FIGHT UNTIL DEATH. ONCE THEY SAW THE TEMPLE WAS BURNING A TERRIBLE ROARING ROSE INTO THE SKY. SOME OF THEM POUNCED ON THE ROMANS´ SWORDS, AND OTHERS JUMPED INTO THE FLAMES. WHEN THE TEMPLE WAS DESTROYED THE JEWS GAVE UP AND THEY RESTRICTED THEMSELVES TO SEE HELPLESS HOW TITO´S OFFICIALS DESTROYED WHAT WAS LEFT OF THE TOWN. ONCE AGAIN THE TEMPLE WAS DESTROYED BUT THIS TIME IT WOULD NOT BE REBUILT. ONLY 2 OF THE SECTS, WHICH HAD PROLIFERATED DURING THE LATE YEARS OF THE SECOND TEMPLE, WERE ABLE TO FIND A WAY TO GO ON. THE FIRST ONE WAS JESUS´ MOVEMENT, WHICH WAS INSPIRED BY THE DESTRUCTION OF THE TEMPLE, IN ORDER TO WRITE A COLLECTION OF HOLY TEXTS. MANY OF THE HOLY TEXTS IN THE NEW TESTAMENT WERE WRITTEN AS AN ANSWER TO THE DESTRUCTION OF THE TEMPLE BY THE ROMANS. ONE OF THE DEFENDERS OF THIS NEW ESCHATOLOGY WAS PAUL, A GREEK JEW FROM TARSO, IN CILICIA, WHO HAD JOINED THAT CHRISTIAN MOVEMENT ABOUT 3 YEARS AFTER JESUS CHRIST DIED. PAUL NEVER MET JESUS, AND AT THE BEGINNING HE WAS EVEN AGAINST JESUS´ MOVEMENT. HOWEVER, LATER ON PAUL BECAME A CHRISTIAN DUE TO A REVELATION WHICH WON HIM OVER. IT HAD TO DO WITH THE FACT THAT CHRIST HAD CALLED ON HIM TO BE THE GENTILES´ APOSTLE.

PAUL TRAVELLED AROUND THE DIASPORA AND FOUNDED CONGREGATIONS IN SIRIA, ASIA MINOR AND GREECE, DETERMINED TO SPREAD THE GOSPELS ALL AROUND THE WORLD, BEFORE JESUS CHRIST CAME BACK AGAIN. HE WROTE LETTERS TO THE CONVERSE TELLING THEM ABOUT FAITH. PAUL DIDN´T THINK HE WAS WRITING HOLY TEXTS SINCE HE WAS CONVINCED JESUS CHRIST WOULD COME BACK WHILE HE WAS ALIVE. HE NEVER IMAGINED FUTURE GENERATIONS WOULD BE STUDYING HIS EPISTLES. PAUL INSISTED THAT HIS CONVERTED GENTILES GIVE UP ALL PAGAN CULT AND THAT THEY ADORE GOD ONLY. BUT HE DIDN´T THINK THEY HAD TO CONVERT TO JUDAISM SINCE JESUS HAD ALREADY MADE THEM THEIR CHILDREN, WITHOUT CIRCUMCISION AND WITHOUT THE TORAH (HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG).

FOR SURE ST. PAUL AND MANY OTHER PROPHETS, SAINTS AND ORDINARY PEOPLE HAVE DONE AMAZING THINGS WHICH REVEAL THE DIVINE REVELATIONS THEY HAD FROM GOD. THOSE VISIONS´ GOAL WAS TO SHARE GOD´S MESSAGE WITH ALL OF US SO THAT WE, GOD´S CHILDREN, FOLLOW GOD´S RULES, DO GOD´S WILL AND IN THAT WAY BE PROTECTED FROM EVIL FORCES SURROUNDING US EVERY SINGLE DAY. MANY HUMAN BEINGS ARE SO ARROGANT THAT THEY THINK GOD HAS TO BE PROVING TO THEM TIME AND TIME AGAIN THAT GOD EXISTS. THESE EGOCENTRIC PEOPLE DO NOT REALIZE GOD SPEAKS ONCE AND THAT´S IT. HE ONCE SPOKE TO MOSES HIS WAY, USING THE BURNING BUSH TO GET HIS ATTENTION AND GAVE HIM THE 2 STONE TABLETS. “ACCORDING TO TRADITIONAL TEACHINGS OF JUDAISM IN THE TALMUD, THEY WERE OF BLUE SAPPHIRE STONE AS A SYMBOLIC REMINDER OF THE HEAVENS AND OF GOD´S THRONE” (TABLETS OF STONE-WIKIPEDIA). WHERE ARE THE 2 STONE TABLETS? DOES ANYBODY KNOW? LET´S IMAGINE CORRUPT ANCIENT BABYLONIAN PRIESTS WERE IN CHARGE OF DESTROYING THEM. “THE STONE TABLETS IN THE HEBREW BIBLE WERE THE 2 PIECES OF STONE INSCRIBED WITH THE 10 COMMANDMENTS WHEN MOSES ASCENDED MOUNT SINAI AS WRITTEN IN THE BOOK OF EXODUS. ACCORDING TO RABBINIC TRADITION, THEY WERE RECTANGLES, WITH SHARP CORNERS, AND INDEED THEY ARE SO DEPICTED IN THE 3RD CENTURY PAINTINGS AT THE DURA-EUROPOS SYNAGOGUE AND IN CHRISTIAN ART THROUGHOUT THE 1ST MILLENNIUM, DRAWING ON JEWISH TRADITIONS OF ICONOGRAPHY. FOR MICHELANGELO AND ANDREA MANTEGNA THEY STILL HAVE SHARP CORNERS (SEE GALLERY), AND ARE ABOUT THE SIZE FOUND IN RABBINIC TRADITION” (TABLETS OF STONE-WIKIPEDIA). THE ARK OF THE COVENANT WAS A WOODEN CHEST CLAD WITH GOLD CONTAINING THE 2 STONE TABLETS OF THE 10 COMMANDMENTS. THE BIBLICAL ACCOUNT RELATES THAT, APPROXIMATELY ONE YEAR AFTER THE ISRAELITES EXODUS FROM EGYPT, THE ARK WAS CREATED ACCORDING TO THE PATTERN GIVEN TO MOSES BY GOD WHEN THE ISRAELITES WERE ENCAMPED AT THE FOOT OF BIBICAL MOUNT SINAI. THE ARK WAS CARRIED BY THE ISRAELITES DURING THE 40 YEARS OF WANDERING IN THE DESERT. WHEN THE ARK WAS BORNE BY LEVITES IN THE BED OF THE JORDAN RIVER, THE WATERS PARTED AS GOD HAD PARTED THE WATERS OF THE RED SEA, OPENING A PATHWAY FOR THE ENTIRE HOST TO PASS. WHEN ABIATHAR (THE SOLE HISTORICAL INSTANCE OF THE DEPOSITION OF A HIGH PRIEST) WAS DISMISSED FROM THE PRIESTHOOD BY KING SOLOMON FOR HAVING TAKEN PART IN ADONIJAH´S CONSPIRACY AGAINST DAVID, HIS LIFE WAS SPARED BECAUSE HE HAD FORMERLY BORNE THE ARK (1 KINGS 2:26). IN 587 BC, THE BABYLONIANS DESTROYED JERUSALEM AND SOLOMON´S TEMPLE. THERE´S NO RECORD OF WHAT BECAME OF THE ARK IN THE BOOKS OF KINGS AND CHRONICLES. A LATE 2ND CENTURY RABBINIC WORK KNOWN AS THE TOSEFTA STATES THE OPINIONS OF THESE RABBIS THAT JOSIAH, THE KING OF JUDAH, STORED AWAY THE ARK, ALONG WITH THE JAR OF MANNA, AND A JAR CONTAINING THE HOLY ANOINTING OIL, THE ROD OF AARON WHICH BUDDED AND A CHEST GIVEN TO ISRAEL BY THE PHILISTINES” (ARK OF COVENANT-WIKIPEDIA). LET´S IMAGINE THAT JOSIAH STORED AWAY THE ARK, AND THAT THE BABYLONIANS FOUND IT AND TOOK IT TO BABYLON WHERE IT WAS FINALLY DESTROYED. 

BEING AWARE OF ALL THIS INFORMATION THE LEAST WE CAN DO IS TO FOLLOW THE 10 COMMANDMENTS. WE KNOW GOD GAVE THEM TO MOSES. THE 10 COMMANDMENTS ARE LISTED TWICE IN THE HEBREW BIBLE, FIRST AT EXODUS 20:1-17, AND THEN AT DEUTERONOMY 5.4-21. BOTH VERSIONS STATE THAT GOD INSCRIBED THEM ON 2 STONE TABLETS WHICH HE GAVE TO MOSES. IN THE NEW TESTAMENT, THE 10 COMMANDMENTS ARE CLEARLY ATTRIBUTED TO MOSES. THE 10 COMMANDMENTS INCLUDE INSTRUCTIONS TO WORSHIP ONLY GOD, TO HONOUR PARENTS AND TO KEEP THE SABBATH; AS WELL AS PROHIBITIONS AGAINST IDOLATRY, BLASPHEMY, MURDER, ADULTERY, THEFT, DISHONESTY AND COVETING (TEN COMMANDMENTS-WIKIPEDIA).

A MODERN ADVANCED SOCIETY AS WE ALL LIKE TO BE ADDRESSED AS   SHOULD BE COMPASSIONATE, RESPECTFUL AND HUMBLE IN ORDER TO DO WHAT´S IMPERATIVE IN MANY CIRCUMSTANCES. HOWEVER, SOME ADVANCED SOCIETIES FAILED TO DO SO. HERE ARE THESE 2 EXAMPLES:

GERMANS, WHO HAD DEVELOPED ONE OF THE MOST INTELLIGENT EUROPEAN SOCIETIES COMMITTED SOME OF THE WORST ATROCITIES. THE ENORMOUS MAGNITUDE OF THE NAZI HOLOCAUST AND OF THE SOVIET GULAG REVEALS ITS MODERN ORIGINS. THE HORRORS OF THE SECOND WORLD WAR (1939-45) ENDED UP WITH THE FIRST DETONATION OF THE FIRST ATOMIC BOMBS OVER HIROSHIMA AND NAGASAKI. MANY PEOPLE HAD DREAMT WITH AN APOCALIPSIS FOR CENTURIES. INSTEAD OF LETTING GOD DECIDE ON WHEN THE APOCALIPSIS WAS TO HAPPEN THEY USED THEIR PRODIGIOUS KNOWLEDGE TO FIND THE WAY TO CARRY IT OUT THEMSELVES EFFICIENTLY. THE EXTINCTION CAMPS, THE ENORMOUS MUSHROOM-SHAPED CLOUD AND – TODAY – THE DESTRUCTION OF THE ENVIRONMENT REVEAL A NIHILIST VIOLENCE IN THE HEART OF THE MODERN CULTURE (HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG).

THE BIBLE ITSELF IS A MIRACLE, DESPITE ITS MANY INTERPRETATIONS AND DISTORTIONS, TAKING INTO ACCOUNT THE MANY DIFFICULTIES THERE WERE DURING THOSE CENTURIES BACK WHEN THE ORAL TRADITION CALLED THE SHOTS, AND WHEN PRINTING DIDN´T EXIST AS TO THE TRANSMISSION OF GOD´S DIVINE ESSENCE. THE GOAL OF THE BIBLE IS TO AROUSE THE ACKNOWLEDGMENT OF WHAT IS RIGHT AND WHAT IS NOT. TODAY SOME PEOPLE HAVE DEVIATED FROM GOD AND SO WE SEE MANY COUPLES WHO ARE UNFAITHFUL. THEY CHEAT ON THEIR HUSBANDS AND WIVES AND IGNORE THE WRONG THEY DO TO THEMSELVES AND TO THEIR SPOUSES. SOME PEOPLE PUSH GOD´S BOUNDARIES CHEATING ON ANYONE THEY ENCOUNTER AND FIND THEMSELVES WITH HIV FACE TO FACE. WE SEE SOME PEOPLE ON TV SUDDENLY THEY SAY GOODBYE, AND IF WE LOOKED INTO WHY THAT SUDDEN GOODBYE HAPPENED ALL OF A SUDDEN WE WOULD OFTEN FIND OUT IT WAS BECAUSE OF IGNORING GOD, OF CHEATING ON THEIR SPOUSES AND BEING UNPROTECTED, SPIRITUALLY SPEAKING AND THEREFORE BEING UNPROTECTED PHYSICALLY SPEAKING AS WELL. THE BIBLE INSISTS ON THE IDEA THAT GOD WILL GIVE HIS SENTENCE ON ALL PEOPLE ON EARTH AND WE MUST BE HUMBLE AND ACCEPT IT. THE PEOPLE OF DARKNESS TRY TO MOCK THE BIBLE, GOD AND GOD´S FOLLOWERS. THIS IS THE TEST EACH ONE OF US HAS TO PASS. WHEN SOMEONE ISN´T HUMBLE, FAITHFUL NOR HONEST HE IS A PERSON OF DARKNESS. THERE IS NO PLACE IN THE MIDDLE. EACH ONE OF US IS EITHER BRAVE AND GO FOR GOD, OR A COWARD WHO PREFERS TO BE SITTING ON INERTIA ENJOYING THE CONFORT ZONE OF FOLLOWING WHAT MOST PEOPLE DO, NO MATTER HOW SENSELESS MIGHT THAT ALL BE. WHEN READING THE BIBLE WE  CAN´T HELP THINKING HOW MESSY SOME TEXTS ARE, AND YET WE KNOW IT´S THE ONE AND ONLY BOOK WHERE WE CAN FIND GOD´S WORD.  

TAKING INTO ACCOUNT THE EVIL EFFORTS TO DESTROY GOD´S WORD TOGETHER WITH THE POOR CONDITION OF MANY OF THE MANUSCRIPTS, TEXTS AND SCROLLS WHICH HAD GOD´S WORD WE CAN UNDERSTAND THAT IMPORTANT INFORMATION IS PROBABLY MISSING AND THAT´S WHY WE MUST FOLLOW THE RULES WE KNOW. THE PEOPLE WHO DON´T FOLLOW GOD´S RULES ARE DARKENED IN THEIR UNDERSTANDING AS FOR VIRTUES AND WISDOM. LET´S IMAGINE SOME OF GOD´S MESSAGES WERE REMOVED BY CORRUPT PRIESTS. LET´S IMAGINE THOSE ANCIENT CORRUPT PRIESTS BACK IN THE 7TH CENTURY BC ABUSED HIS POWER MISLEADING BELIEVERS AND NON BELIEVERS, IMPOSING THEIR LIES ON THE POPULATION, SINCE THEIR GOAL WAS TO SPREAD CONFUSION AS TO GOD AND HIS LAWS. THE FOLLOWING 3 EXAMPLES SHOW SOME OF THE SPREAD CONFUSION  WE ARE TALKING ABOUT:

1.THE FIRST CHAPTER OF GENESIS REFERS TO GOD AS ELOHIM (HEBREW), WHILE THE SECOND CHAPTER USES YAHWEH AS THE NAME OF GOD.

2.MANY OF THE TEXTS IN THE NEW TESTAMENT WERE WRITTEN IN ANCIENT GREEK.

3.WHEN WE´RE TOLD THE LORD SAID TO ADAM AND EVE NOT TO EAT OF THE TREE OF THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOOD AND EVIL (GENESIS 2:16,17), AS IT IS AN ALLEGORY THE INTERPRETATION IS THAT EACH ONE OF US MUST BE FAITHFUL. GOD WANTED TO SHOW US THAT INSIDE US WE HAVE THAT KNOWLEDGE, BOTH OF GOOD AND EVIL. THE SERPENT TALKING TO EVE IS OUR SECOND VOICE INSIDE US TELLING US TO ENVY OTHERS, CHEAT ON OUR PARTNER, CRITICIZE, BRIBE, LIE, MOCK OTHERS, BE GREEDY, INCOMPASSIONATE, EGOCENTRIC, ARROGANT, A PERVERT, AN ABUSER, ETC. THIS SECOND VOICE INSIDE US IS NOURISHED BY ALL THE DECEIVERS OUT THERE WHO LOVE PERVERSION AND ARE REGULARS AT WHORING HOUSES. THE ALLEGORY OF ADAM AND EVE EATING OF THE TREE OF KNOWLEDGE OF EVIL MEANS THAT THEY WERE DECEIVED THE SAME AS MANY CRIMINALS TRY TO FOOL US ALL EVERY DAY, AND GOD WANTS TO PREVENT US FROM ANY ABUSERS. THEREFORE IN THE SECOND CHAPTER OF GENESIS IS WHERE THE AUTHOR, PROBABLY MOSES AND 2 MORE AUTHORS TELLS US THAT GOD GAVE HIM THE MESSAGE OF TELLING US THAT WE ARE FREE TO CHOOSE BETWEEN GOOD OR EVIL. THIS IS THE REAL MEANING OF THE TREE OF KNOWLEDGE OF GOOD AND EVIL. LET´S IMAGINE THE AUTHOR OF THE FIRST CHAPTER OF GENESIS WAS CORRUPT, AND THAT´S WHY THEY DIDN´T MENTION THIS CHOICE HUMAN BEINGS HAVE BETWEEN GOOD AND EVIL. LET´S IMAGINE THAT ONLY IN THE SECOND CHAPTER SUCH KEY PIECE OF INFORMATION IS MENTIONED, AND NOT IN ANY OTHER CHAPTERS OF THE OLD TESTAMENT, NOR IN THE NEW TESTAMENT, SINCE THERE WERE ALWAYS SOMEONE CORRUPT NEXT TO THE GOOD PROPHETS TO GIVE THEM A HARD TIME AND DECEIVE THEM INTO CHANGING NAMES AND KEY INFORMATION, AND EVEN OMITTING PARAGRAPHS AND BOOKS, AND DESTROYING MANY OF THOSE AS WELL. TODAY THESE DECEIVERS ARE BIG MOUTHS FULL OF LIES AND THEIR TIME IS SPENT THIS WAY:

1.GIVING A HARD TIME TO GOD´S FOLLOWERS. THE MOMENT THEY SEE SOMEONE FOLLOWING GOD AND SEE THE POSSIBILITY OF DOING AS MUCH HARM TO HIM THEY GO AHEAD AND DO IT. THEY ARE RUTHLESS AND LOVE NOBODY BUT THEIR EGOS.

2.TELLING LIES ABOUT GOD.

3.MOCKING GOD´S MESSAGES.

4.SPREADING THEIR VICE PRACTICES AS IF THEY WERE NORMAL.

5.SPREADING DRUGS, SEX AND CREATING RECESSIONS SO THAT PEOPLE BECOME DEPENDENT ON ABUSERS. THEY KNOW THAT THE MORE FINANTIAL PROBLEMS PEOPLE HAVE THE MORE SUCEPTIBLE PEOPLE ARE TO BEING BOUGHT OFF, ENDING UP GIVING UP THEIR MORAL STANDARDS.

SOMETIMES WHEN WE READ THE BIBLE IT SEEMS AS IF WE WERE READING OVER AND OVER AGAIN THE SAME IDEA. OTHER TIMES IT SEEMS AS IF WHAT WE JUST READ WAS THE OPPOSITE OF WHAT´S BEEN SAID BEFORE. LET´S IMAGINE THAT YAHVE´S TRAITORS WERE INTERESTED IN COMMUNICATING AN UNREALISTIC CERTAINTY ON UNDESCRIBABLE QUESTIONS. LET´S IMAGINE “DEUTERONOMISTS RELIGION WAS STRIDENT SINCE THEY DESCRIBED MOSES PREACHING VIOLENT REPRESSION POLITICS” (HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG), WHICH WAS FALSE. LET´S IMAGINE THERE WERE GOOD DEUTERONOMISTS AND BAD DEUTERONOMISTS. LET´S IMAGINE MOST WERE GOOD ONES BUT IT WAS THE BAD ONES, ALTHOUGH FEWER, WHO CALLED THE SHOTS AND WHO DISTORTED THE CONTENT OF MANY PARAGRAPHS, MAKING SOME OF THEM SHORTER, OTHERS LONGER AND DESTROYING OTHERS. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT, IN EZEKIEL 24 THEY SAID MISTAKENLY THAT THE LORD SAID TO EZEKIEL NOT TO DRESS IN BLACK WHEN HIS WIFE DIES. ON THE OTHER HAND, BELOW THAT BIBLICAL TEXT, IN THE CORRESPONDING EXPLANATION FOR EZEKIEL 24 IT SAYS HE DRESSED IN BLACK WHEN HIS WIFE DIED. CONTRADICTIONS OF THIS SORT ARE SOMETIMES FOUND THROUGHOUT THE BIBLE TEXTS AND THE EXPLANATIONS BELOW THEM.

THE KIND OF CONFUSION WE SOMETIMES FEEL WHEN READING SOME BIBLICAL TEXTS WE ALSO FEEL IT WHEN WE WATCH THE NEWS AND THE SAME NEWS ABOUT THE DANGERS OF DRIVING FAST, ABOUT THE DANGERS OF TAKING THE SUN, ABOUT THE DANGERS OF EATING SUCH AND SUCH, ETC., THAT WE GET THE FEELING THAT THEY ARE  PISSING  HERE.  WE  DON´T WANT ANY MORE OF THOSE NEWS BECAUSE WE ALREADY KNOW THOSE. WE WANT TO LISTEN TO THOUSANDS OF INTERESTING NEWS WHICH ARE RELEVANT TO OUR LIVES. FOR EXAMPLE, THEY COULD DARE TELL US ABOUT THE AGONIES OUR DEAR ANIMALS HAVE TO GO THROUGH WHEN EGOCENTRIC HUNTERS CHASE THEM SO THAT PEOPLE BECOME AWARE OF THE EMOTIONS ANIMALS HAVE AND THE RESPECT THEY DESERVE FROM ALL OF US.

THE TORAH – WRITTEN IN THE FIRST 5 BOOKS OF THE BIBLE, ALSO CALLED LAW OF MOSES, – AND THE GOSPEL HAD BECOME DISTORTED THROUGH TIME. MUSLIMS THOUGHT THE TORAH WAS NOT VALID ANY MORE AND THAT´S WHY THEY CREATED THE CORAN. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT, IN EZEKIEL – WHEN BABYLONIANS TOOK OVER IN THE MIDDLE EAST IN 605 BC – WE´RE TOLD THAT PRIESTS WERE SO CORRUPT THEY REQUESTED PROSTITUTES. THAT MEANS CORRUPT PRIESTS BROKE GOD´S LAWS. IT ALSO MEANS CORRUPT PRIESTS LET THEMSELVES BE INFLUENCED BY THE PAGAN NATIONS NEXT TO THEM. 

THE PENTATEUCH INCLUDES THE BOOKS OF GENESIS, EXODUS, LEVITICUS, NUMBERS AND DEUTERONOMY. “DEUTERONOMIST MATERIAL IS FOUND IN THE BOOKS OF JOSHUA, JUDGES, SAMUEL, KINGS AND JEREMIAH. THE DEUTERONOMISTIC HISTORY ORIGINATED INDEPENDENTLY OF THE BOOKS OF GENESIS, EXODUS, LEVITICUS AND NUMBERS (THE 1ST 4 BOOKS OF THE TORAH, SOMETIMES CALLED THE “TETRATEUCH”, WHOSE SOURCES ARE THE PRIESTLY SOURCE, THE JAHWIST AND THE ELOHIST), AND THE HISTORY OF THE BOOKS OF CHRONICLES; MOST SCHOLARS TRACE ALL OR MOST OF IT TO THE BABYLONIAN EXILE ( 6TH CENTURY BC) AND ASSOCIATE IT WITH EDITORIAL REWORKING OF BOTH THE TETRATEUCH AND JEREMIAH. UNDER THE COVENANT YAHWEH HAS PROMISED ISRAEL THE LAND OF CANAAN, BUT THE PROMISE IS CONDITIONAL: IF THE ISRAELITES ARE UNFAITHFUL, THEY WILL LOSE THE LAND. THE DEUTERONOMISTIC HISTORY EXPLAINS ISRAEL´S SUCCESSES AND FAILURES AS THE RESULT OF FAITHFULNESS, WHICH BRINGS SUCCESS, OR DISOBEDIENCE, WHICH BRINGS FAILURE; THE DESTRUCTION OF THE KINGDOM OF ISRAEL BY THE ASSYRIANS (721 BCE) AND OF THE KINGDOM OF JUDAH BY THE BABYLONIANS (586) ARE YAHWEH´S PUNISHMENT FOR CONTINUED SINFULNESS” (DEUTERONOMIST-WIKIPEDIA).

“THE TORAH IMPLORES US TO REMEMBER AND TEACH THE EXODUS, YET SURPRISINGLY, SOME BIBLICAL PASSAGES SEEM UNAWARE OF THIS EVENT AND DESCRIBE AN ALTERNATIVE TRADITION: GOD FOUND ISRAEL IN THE WILDERNESS. THE EXODUS IS UNDENIABLY THE MOST IMPORTANT EVENT IN BIBLICAL MEMORY. IT´S MUCH MORE PROMINENT, FOR EXAMPLE, THAN THE GIVING OF THE TORAH AT SINAI. IT IS PREFIGURED IN ABRAHAM´S DESCENT TO EGYPT, FORETOLD TO HIM IN THE COVENANT BETWEEN THE PARTS, AND CONTINUALLY HIGHLIGHTED IN PASSAGES THAT RETELL GOD´S GRACIOUS ACTS ON BEHALF OF ISRAEL. GOD DOES NOT INTRODUCE HIMSELF TO ISRAEL IN THE DECALOGUE AS THE CREATOR OF THE WORLD, BUT AS THE GOD OF THE EXODUS, IMPLYING THAT GOD´S ACT OF FREEING THE ISRAELITES FROM SLAVERY IN EGYPT IS WHAT WON HIM THE RIGHT TO DEMAND ISRAEL´S ALLEGIANCE. INDEED, ACCORDING TO NUMBERS 15:41, THE VERY PURPOSE OF THE EXODUS WAS THAT THE LORD MIGHT BECOME ISRAEL´S GOD. THUS, THE ENTIRE RELATIONSHIP BETWEEN GOD AND ISRAEL IS FOUNDED UPON THE EXODUS EVENT. NOT ONLY DOES THE EXODUS SERVE AS THE BASIS FOR ISRAEL´S PRESENT RELATIONSHIP WITH GOD, BUT IT ALSO SERVES AS PROTOTYPE FOR GOD´S FUTURE ACTS OF REDEMPTION. JOES, ONE OF THE TWELVE MINOR PROPHETS OF UNCERTAIN DATE, SPEAKS OF A TERRIBLE PLAGUE OF LOCUST THAT GOD WILL SEND AGAINST JUDAH FOR HER SINS. IN LIGHT OF THE LENGTHY DESCRIPTION OF THIS PLAGUE AND THE GREAT DEVASTATION THAT IT BRINGS TO THE LAND IT IS STRIKING THAT NO ALLUSION IS MADE TO THE PLAGUE OF LOCUST   IN   EGYPT”   (EXODUS: NOT THE ONLY TRADITION ABOUT ISRAEL´S PAST – THE TORAH.COM. DR.RABBI DAVID FRANKEL). LET´S IMAGINE THAT BACK IN TIME SOME EGYPTIANS BRIBED AND THREATENED CORRUPT PRIESTS TO DISTORT HISTORICAL FACTS, BECAUSE THAT DATA EXPOSED THE SINS OF THE EGYPTIANS TORMENTING THE ISRAELITES. LET´S IMAGINE THAT ISRAEL´S PROPHETS WROTE ABOUT THE PLAGUES AGAINST EGYPT AND SOME EGYPTIANS BOUGHT OTHERS OFF TO DESTROY THOSE FACTS, SO THAT YOU, EVERYBODY IN THE WORLD AND I WOULD NOT BE AWARE OF THE REAL AND TRUE FACT THAT DIVINE PUNISHMENT EXISTED, EXISTS AND WILL EXIST AS LONG AS GOD WANTS TO. WHY? YOU SEE, BEING UNAWARE OF THE EXISTENCE OF DIVINE PUNISHMENT MAKES IT EASY FOR US TO TAKE THE BAIT OF LICENTIOUSNESS, GIVING PRIORITY TO OUR EGOCENTRICITY OVER ANY MORAL CONSIDERATIONS. LET´S IMAGINE EGYPTIANS WERE THE ONES WHO WERE INTERESTED IN SUPRESSING THE EXODUS SO THAT THEIR EVIL HISTORY AND SUBSEQUENT PUNISHMENT WOULD NOT BE RECALLED CONSTANTLY AS WE READ THE BIBLE. “IN SPITE OF THE REPEATED BIBLICAL CALL UPON PARENTS TO REHEARSE SPECIFICALLY THE EXODUS STORY TO THEIR CHILDREN (EXODUS 13:8-9, 14-16; DEUT. 6:20-23), THE STORY THAT THE ISRAELITE ANCESTORS OF THIS PSALM TELL THEIR CHILDREN CONCERNING GOD´S GREAT ACTS RELATES TO THE CONQUEST OF THE LAND ALONE. THE FACT THAT GOD BROUGHT THE ISRAELITES OUT OF EGYPT AND DESTROYED THE ENTIRE EGYPTIAN ARMY WITH HIS MIGHTY HAND AND OUTSTRETCHED ARM IS COMPLETELY ABSENT” (THE DEUTERONOMISTS AND THE SUPPRESSION OF ANCIENT TRUTHS/THE MILENNIAL STAR. MARCH 14, 2011 BY DAVID LARSEN). LET´S IMAGINE THE HISTORICAL REALITY OF LOCUSTS AGAINST EGYPTIANS ONCE WAS SUPRESSED, AND ONCE OTHER HISTORICAL EVENTS WERE SUPRESSED AS WELL, MAINLY BECAUSE CORRUPT ONES DID NOT WANT TO HAVE ANY MORAL RESTRICTIONS AND WANTED TO BE FREE TO DO WHATEVER THEY WANTED AND WHENEVER THEY WANTED, WE CAN STATE THAT IT ALL BOILED DOWN TO MISLEADING US, AND MAKING US IGNORE THE REALITY OF OUR TIME HERE, PROMPTING US TO MAKE MORAL MISTAKES, WHICH WILL BE DETRIMENTAL TO GET THAT VALIDATION TICKET FOR THE REAL LIFE WHICH ONLY SOME WILL HAVE THE CHANCE TO TASTE ONCE THIS BRIEF EPISODE IS OVER.LET´S IMAGINE THAT THE 70 TRANSLATORS – 6 OLD MEN FROM EACH OF THE 12 TRIBES – WERE ALL  HONEST AND DID FAIR PLAY AS TO TRANSMITTING THE EXACT MESSAGE GOD WANTED THEM TO SHARE WITH US, THE SAME AS GOD DID WHEN HE PASSED THE STONE TABLETS TO MOSES, AND MANY OTHER MESSAGES TO MANY OTHER PROPHETS TO REACH ALL OF US, GOD´S CHILDREN.

“A MESSIAH – LITERALLY “ANOINTED ONE” – IS A SAVIOUR OR LIBERATOR OF A GROUP OF PEOPLE, MOST COMMONLY IN THE ABRAHAMIC RELIGIONS. IN THE HEBREW BIBLE, A MESSIAH IS A KING OR HIGH PRIEST TRADITIONALLY ANOINTED WITH HOLY ANOINTING OIL. HOWEVER, MESSIAHS WERE NOT EXCLUSIVELY JEWISH, AS THE HEBREW BIBLE REFERS TO CYRUS THE GREAT, KING OF PERSIA, AS A MESSIAH FOR HIS DECREE TO REBUILD THE JERUSALEM TEMPLE” (MESSIAH-WIKIPEDIA,THE FREE ENCLYCOPEDIA). “THE TANAKH (HEBREW BIBLE) PROCLAIMS THE COMING MESSIAH WILL BE A DESCENDANT OF DAVID. WHEN WE COMPARE THE JEWISH AND CHRISTIAN UNDERSTANDING OF WHO THE MESSIAH IS, WE SEE TWO DIFFERENT PEOPLE. FROM A CHRISTIAN POINT OF VIEW, MANY OF THE QUALIFICATIONS FOR THE MESSIAH OF JUDAISM REACH FULFILLMENT AT THE SECOND COMING. THE MESSIAH WILL RULE FROM JERUSALEM OVER THE NATIONS, AND DURING HIS REIGN ISRAEL WILL BE BLESSED ABOVE THE NATIONS. LEADING UP TO HIS COMING, ISRAEL WILL SUFFER PERSECUTION BY THE NATIONS (GENTILES), AND AT THE END WHEN IT SEEMS LIKE ALL HOPE IS LOST, MESSIAH, SON OF DAVID, COMES TO ISRAEL´S RESCUE AND DEFEATS THE NATIONS. MANY OF THESE BELIEFS ARE SIMILAR BETWEEN THE JEWISH AND CHRISTIAN VIEWS ON THE ROLE MESSIAH WILL PLAY” (OBJECTIONS TO ISAIAH 7:14 AND ISAIAH 9:6-7). DESPITE DIFFERENCES BETWEEN RELIGIONS WE ALL AGREE THE FOLLOWING PEOPLE – WHETHER THEIR MESSAGES WERE DELIVERED OR NOT TO US – CONTRIBUTED , AND STILL DO TODAY, TO OUR MORAL GROUNDING, SO THAT WE CAN LOVE AND RESPECT EACH OTHER, SINCE THEY PROTECTED GOD´S WORD, FIGHTING FOR IT. HERE´S A LIST OF SOME OF THESE:

1.MOSES (1391 BC-C. 1271 BC). “ONE OF THE MOST PROMINENT HEBREW RELIGIOUS LEADERS, MOSES IS REGARDED AS THE MOST IMPORTANT PROPHET IN JUDAISM, CHRISTIANITY, ISLAM, THE BAHÁÍ´ FAITH, RASTAFARI AND CHRISLAM, AMONGST MANY OTHER FAITHS” (MOSES BIOGRAPHY-CHILDHOOD, LIFE ACHIEVEMENTS…).

2. JOSHUA (1355 EGYPT -1245 BCE CANAÁN). “THE BOOK OF JOSHUA BEGINS: “AND IT WAS AFTER THE DEATH OF MOSES, THAT THE LORD SAID TO JOSHUA…: “MOSES MY SERVANT HAS DIED AND NOW ARISE AND CROSS THE RIVER JORDAN. YOU AND ALL THIS NATION GO TO THE LAND WHICH I GIVE THE CHILDREN OF ISRAEL…JUST BE STRONG AND VERY COURAGEOUS TO OBSERVE AND DO IN ACCORDANCE WITH ALL THE TORAH THAT MOSES MY SERVANT HAS COMMANDED YOU. THEREFORE, DO NOT STRAY RIGHT OR LEFT IN ORDER THAT YOU WILL SUCCEED IN WHEREVER YOU GO”. JOSHUA IS ONE OF THE GREAT LEADERS OF JEWISH HISTORY. AFTER THE DEATH OF MOSES JOSHUA LEADS THE JEWISH PEOPLE FOR 28 YEARS. THE BOOK OF JOSHUA DESCRIBES THE 7 YEARS OF CONQUEST AND 7 YEARS OF SETTLEMENT OF THE LAND OF ISRAEL. AFTER THE LAND IS CONQUERED IT IS DIVIDED INTO SEPARATE TRIBAL PORTIONS VIA A DIVINELY GUIDED LOTTERY. THE BOOK OF JOSHUA ALSO DESCRIBES THE BIBLICAL BOUNDARIES OF THE LAND OF ISRAEL. AT THIS TIME THE SO-CALLED PROMISED LAND IS BOUNDED BY THE EGYPTIAN EMPIRE TO THE SOUTH AND THE MESOPOTAMIA TO THE NORTH. BUT IT ISN´T RULED BY EITHER OF THEM. IN FACT, THERE IS NO POWER RULING THIS SECTION OF LAND, RATHER IT´S SETTLED BY 7 CANAANITE TRIBES WHO INHABIT 31 FORTIFIED CITY-STATES SCATTERED ALL OVER THE MAP, EACH RULED BY ITS OWN “KING”. BEFORE THEY ENTER THE LAND, THE JEWISH PEOPLE SEND AN ENVOY TO THE CANAANITES WITH THE MESSAGE, “GOD, THE CREATOR OF THE UNIVERSE HAS PROMISED THE LAND TO OUR FOREFATHERS. WE´RE NOW HERE TO CLAIM OUR INHERITANCE, AND WE ASK YOU TO LEAVE PEACEFULLY”. ONLY 1 TRIBE TOOK THE OFFER AND LEFT. MEANWHILE, JOSHUA HAS CLEAR INSTRUCTIONS FROM GOD THAT IF THE CANAANITES DON´T GET OUT, THE JEWS MUST WIPE THEM OUT, BECAUSE IF THEY REMAIN IN THE LAND THEY´RE GOING TO CORRUPT THE JEWS. THE CANAANITES ARE EXTREMELY IMMORAL AND IDOLATROUS PEOPLE AND THE JEWS CAN´T LIVE WITH THEM AS NEIGHBORS. SOME ARCHEOLOGISTS HAVE SUGGESTED THAT THE EASY CONQUEST OF THE FORTIFIED CITY OF JERICHO WAS MADE POSSIBLE BY A WELL-TIMED EARTHQUAKE. SO NOT ONLY THE WATERS OF THE JORDAN MIRACULOUSLY STOP FLOWING AND THEY CROSS ON DRY LAND, AND THEN THE JORDAN REFILLS WITH WATER BUT THE CITY WALLS CRUMBLE BEFORE THEIR EYES” (JOSHUA AND THE CONQUEST OF THE PROMISED LAND-SIMPLE TO REMEMBER).

3. ”HOSEA, SON OF BEERI, WAS AN 8TH CENTURY BC PROPHET IN ISRAEL WHO AUTHORED THE BOOK OF PROPHECIES BEARING HIS NAME. HE´S ONE OF THE 12 PROPHETS OF THE JEWISH HEBREW BIBLE, ALSO KNOWN AS THE MINOR PROPHETS OF THE CHRISTIAN OLD TESTAMENT. HOSEA IS OFTEN SEEN AS A “PROPHET OF DOOM”, BUT UNDERNEATH HIS MESSAGE OF DESTRUCTION IS A PROMISE OF RESTORATION. THE TALMUD (PESACHIM 87 A) CLAIMS THAT HE WAS THE GREATEST PROPHET OF HIS GENERATION. THE PERIOD OF HOSEA´S MINISTRY EXTENDED TO SOME 60 YEARS AND HE WAS THE ONLY PROPHET OF ISRAEL OF HIS TIME WHO LEFT ANY WRITTEN PROPHECY. THE TERMS “MINOR PROPHETS” AND “TWELVE PROPHETS” CAN ALSO REFER TO THE TWELVE TRADITIONAL AUTHORS OF THESE WORKS. THE TERM “MINOR” RELATES TO THE LENGTH OF EACH BOOK. THE FIRST EXTRA-BIBLICAL EVIDENCE WE HAVE FOR THE 12 AS A COLLECTION IS C. 190 BCE IN THE WRITINGS OF JESUS BEN SIRACH, AND EVIDENCE FROM THE DEAD SEA SCROLLS SUGGESTS THAT THE MODERN ORDER WAS ESTABLISHED BY 150 BCE. IT´S BELIEVED THAT INITIALLY THE FIRST SIX WERE COLLECTED, AND LATER THE SECOND SIX WERE ADDED” (HOSEA – WIKIPEDIA,THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA).

4. AMOS (8TH CENTURY BC) WAS BORN NEAR BETHLEHEM, ISRAEL. IN HIS YOUTH AMOS WAS A SHEPHERD. AS A YOUNG MAN HE TELLS OF HAVING RECEIVED A DIVINE COMMANDMENT  TO GO TO THE ISRAELITE SHRINE AT BETHEL. ONCE THERE, HE PROCEEDED TO FULMINATE AGAINST THE POPULAR ERRORS OF HIS DAY AND WAS OUSTED BY THE HEAD PRIEST, AMAZIAH. APPARENTLY, AMOS WAS A PROPHET FOR ONLY A SHORT TIME, AND HE DID NOT WRITE DOWN HIS PROPHETIC MESSAGES AND UTTERANCES. AT THAT TIME, ORACLES SUCH AS THOSE OF AMOS WERE PRESERVED IN AN ORAL TRADITION; THAT IS, THEY WERE TRANSMITTED BY SPOKEN WORD AMONG TEMPLE CIRCLES AT JERUSALEM. AMOS´ PROPHECIES WERE PROBABLY WRITTEN DOWN BEFORE THE KINGDOM OF ISRAEL WAS CONQUERED BY THE ASSYRIANS IN 721 BC” (AMOS FACTS).  “HE WAS A JUDEAN WHO BELIEVED HE WAS COMMISSIONED BY YAHWEH TO ADDRESS HIS WORDS TO ISRAEL. HIS ORACLES TOGETHER WITH HOSEAS´ ONES ARE INCLUDED IN THE BIBLICAL COLLECTION “THE MINOR PROPHETS”, A REFERENCE TO THE LENGTH RATHER THAN THE IMPORTANCE OF THEIR UTTERANCES. LIKE HIS PREDECESSORS, HE STOOD IN JUDGEMENT OF MORAL AND ETHICAL EVIL. HIS ROLE AS LONE INTERCESSOR FOR THE PEOPLE IS SIMILAR TO THAT OF ABRAHAM IN THE J. ACCOUNT (THE J TEXT=THE YAHWIST TEST (597 BCE) WHERE THEY REFER TO GOD AS YAHWEH) OF THE DESTRUCTION OF SODOM AND GOMORRAH (GEN. 18:22 FF.). AMOS´ RELIGIOUS CONCEPTS EMBRACED ETHICS AND MORALS” (CHAPTER 17 – AMOS AND HOSEA).

5. JOSIAH, KING OF JUDAH (639 B.C – 608 B.C) INTRODUCED REFORMS. DURING HIS REIGN THE DEUTERONOMY´S INFORMATION WAS GATHERED, AND ALL UNDER THE PROPHET JEREMIAH´S COMMAND” ( JOSÍASWIKIPEDIA ). “KING JOSIAH CHANGED THE RELIGION OF ISRAEL IN 623 BC. ACCORDING TO THE OLD TESTAMENT ACCOUNT IN 2 KINGS 23 HE REMOVED ALL MANNERS OF IDOLATROUS ITEMS FROM THE TEMPLE AND PURIFIED HIS KINGDOM OF CANAANITE PRACTICES. AN OLD LAW BOOK HAD BEEN DESCOVERED IN THE TEMPLE, AND THIS HAD PROMPTED THE KING TO BRING THE RELIGION OF HIS KINGDOM INTO LINE WITH THE REQUIREMENTS OF THAT BOOK. THE LAW BOOK IS EASILY RECOGNIZABLE AS DEUTERONOMY AND SO KING JOSIAH´S PURGE IS USUALLY KNOWN AS THE DEUTERONOMIC REFORM OF THE TEMPLE. 25 YEARS AFTER THE WORK OF JOSIAH, JERUSALEM WAS ATTACKED BY THE BABYLONIANS UNDER KING NEBUCHADNEZZAR, AND 11 YEARS AFTER THE FIRST ATTACK THEY RETURNED TO DESTROY THE TOWN AND THE TEMPLE. REFUGEES FLED SOUTH TO EGYPT, AND WE READ IN THE BOOK OF JEREMIAH HOW THEY WOULD NOT ACCEPT THE PROPHET´S INTERPRETATION OF THE DISASTER. HE INSISTED THAT JERUSALEM HAD FALLEN BECAUSE OF THE SINS OF HER PEOPLE, BUT THE REFUGEES SAID IT HAD FALLEN BECAUSE OF JOSIAH” (THE DEUTERONOMISTS AND THE SUPPRESSION OF ANCIENT TRUTHS / THE MILENNIAL STAR ). LET´S IMAGINE THAT THOSE REFUGEES WHO BLAMED THE DISASTER ON KING JOSIAH WERE SINNERS AND LIERS, AND SAID LIES ABOUT KING JOSIAH IN ORDER TO JUSTIFY THEIR PAST AND FUTURE SINNING. LET´S IMAGINE KING JOSIAH WAS A REALLY GOOD KING AND PERSON WHO WAS REALLY MOVED BY THE BOOK OF LAW. LET´S IMAGINE THE MOMENT HE KNEW OF THE VIOLATION OF ISRAEL´S COVENANT WITH GOD HE DECIDED TO RENEW IT BETWEEN JUDAH AND GOD, FOLLOWING THE BOOK OF LAW (= THE BOOK OF DEUTERONOMY).

6. HESEKIAH WAS ACCORDING TO THE HEBREW BIBLE, THE SON OF AHAZ AND THE 13TH KING OF JUDAH. ARCHAELOGIST EDWIN THIELE HAS CONCLUDED THAT HIS REIGN WAS BETWEEN C. 715 AND 686 BC. HE´S ALSO ONE OF THE MOST PROMINENT KINGS OF JUDAH MENTIONED IN THE GENEALOGY OF JESUS IN THE GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. ACCORDING TO THE HEBREW BIBLE, HEZEKIAH WITNESSED THE DESTRUCTION OF THE NORTHERN KINGDOM OF ISRAEL BY SARGON´S ASSYRIANS IN C. 720 BC, AND WAS KING OF JUDAH DURING THE INVASION AND SIEGE OF JERUSALEM BY SENNACHERIB IN 701 BC. HEZEKIAH ENACTED SWEEPING RELIGIOUS REFORMS, INCLUDING A STRICT MANDATE FOR THE SOLE WORSHIP OF YAHWEH AND A PROHIBITION ON VENERATING OTHER DEITIES WITHIN THE TEMPLE IN JERUSALEM. ISAIAH AND MICAH PROPHESIED DURING HIS REIGN (HEZEKIAH –WIKIPEDIA ). 

7. ”HILKIAH (7TH CENTURY BC) IS THE PRIEST WHO FOUND A BOOK OF THE LAW OF THE LORD GIVEN TO MOSES, AND TOLD SHAPHAN THE SCRIBE ABOUT IT. HILKIAK DELIVERED IT TO SHAPHAN AND SHAPHAN CARRIED IT TO THE KING, AND BROUGHT THE KING THE WORD BACK AGAIN SAYING: “ALL THAT WAS COMMITTED TO THY SERVANTS, THEY DO IT. AND THEY´VE GATHERED TOGETHER THE MONEY THAT WAS FOUND IN THE HOUSE OF THE LORD, AND WE HAVE DELIVERED IT INTO THE HAND OF THE OVERSEERS AND TO THE HAND OF WORKMEN. SHAPHAN READ IT BEFORE THE KING. AND IT CAME TO PASS, WHEN THE KING HAD HEARD THE WORDS OF THE LAW, THAT HE RENT HIS CLOTHES. IF HILKIAK HAD NOT BEEN BUSY IN SETTING WRONG THINGS RIGHT, HE WOULD NOT HAVE FOUND THE BOOK IN ITS DARK HIDING-PLACE. WHAT THE WORLD CALLS ACCIDENTAL COINCIDENCE DEEPER WISDOM DISCERNS TO BE THE TOUCH OF GOD´S HANDS” (JOSIAH AND THE NEWLY FOUND LAW- BIBLE HUB).

8. “JEREMIAH WAS PRIMARIY A PREACHING PROPHET (626 BC -587 BC), GOING WHERE THE LORD DIRECTED HIM TO PREACH ORACLES THROUGHOUT ISRAEL. HE CONDEMNED IDOLATRY, THE GREED OF PRIESTS, AND FALSE PROPHETS. MANY YEARS LATER, GOD INSTRUCTED JEREMIAH TO WRITE DOWN THESE EARLY ORACLES AND OTHER MESSAGES” (JERMIAH-WIKIPEDIA).

9. “THE MACCABEES LED THE MACCABEAN REVOLT (167 BC – 160 BC) AGAINST THE SELEUCID EMPIRE AND THE HELLENISTIC INFLUENCE ON JEWISH LIFE. IN THE NARRATIVE OF I MACCABEES AFTER ANTIOCHUS ISSUED HIS DECREES FORBIDDING JEWISH RELIGIOUS PRACTICE, A RURAL JEWISH PRIEST FROM MODIIN, MATTATHIAS THE HASMONEAN, SPARKED THE REVOLT AGAINST THE SELEUCID EMPIRE BY REFUSING TO WORSHIP THE GREEK GODS. MATTATHIAS KILLED A HELLENISTIC JEW WHO STEPPED FORWARD TO OFFER A SACRIFICE TO AN IDOL IN MATTATHIAS´ PLACE. THE REVOLT ITSELF INVOLVED MANY BATTLES, IN WHICH THE LIGHT, QUICK AND MOBILE MACCABEAN FORCES GAINED NOTORIETY AMONG THE SLOW AND BULKY SELEUCID ARMY, AND ALSO FOR THEIR USE OF GUERRILLA TACTICS. AFTER THE VICTORY, THE MACCABEES ENTERED JERUSALEM IN TRIUMPH AND RITUALLY CLEANSED THE TEMPLE, REESTABLISHING TRADITIONAL JEWISH WORSHIP THERE AND INSTALLING JONATHAN MACCABEE AS HIGH PRIEST. A LARGE SELEUCID ARMY WAS SENT TO QUASH THE REVOLT, BUT RETURNED TO SYRIA ON THE DEATH OF ANTIOCHUS IV. ITS COMMANDER LYSIAS, PREOCCUPIED WITH INTERNAL SELEUCID AFFAIRS, AGREED TO A POLITICAL COMPROMISE THAT RESTORED RELIGIOUS FREEDOM” (MACCABEAN REVOLT – WIKIPEDIA). 

10. “THE SCHOOL OF ESSENCES (2ND CENTURY BC- 1ST CENTURY AD), SOME OF WHOM AUTHORED THE DEAD SEA SCROLLS. “WHEN THE CHRISTIAN ERA STARTED THERE WAS AN OFFICIAL JUDAISM: THE SANHEDRIN OF JERUSALEM; AND A MARGINAL OR PERIPHERAL ONE FORMED BY OTHER SECTS: AMID THEM, THE ESSENES. ACCORDING TO JOSEPHUS, THE ESSENES SET UP COLONIES AND QUMRAN COULD BE ONE OF THEM, ON THE SHORE OF THE DEAD SEA. QUMRAN MANUSCRIPTS AND BUILDINGS ARE THEIR WORKS, BEING ESSENES ONE OF THE CHIEF PARTIES OF THE EPOCH. ELEVEN GROTTOES WERE DISCOVERED BRINGING TO LIGHT MANUSCRIPTS OF THE MOST ANTIQUE BIBLICAL WORKS. IN THE FIRST CAVE THERE WERE COPIES OF THE BOOK OF ISAIAH; A COMMENTARY OF THE BOOK OF HABACUC AND 4 MANUSCRIPTS CALLED: APOCRYPHAL GENESIS; DISCIPLINE MANUAL; REGULATION OF THE WAR BETWEEN THE SONS OF LIGHT AND THE SONS OF DARKNESS; HYMS. THERE ARE 3 WORKS THAT DID NOT FORM PART OF THE BIBLE, WRITTEN IN GREEK LANGUAGE FOR THE JEWS OF THE DIASPORA. THE CATHOLIC CHURCH ADOPTED THEM THROUGH THE NAME OF: DEUTEROCANONICAL. THEY ARE: TOBI, ECCLESIASTICUS AND THE LETTER OF JEREMIAH. THERE WERE ALSO FOUND SOME ANTIQUE WORKS OF THE OLD TESTAMENT, WHICH PROTESTANT NAMED PSEUDEPIGRAPHAL AND CATHOLICS, APOCRYPHAL. THOSE ARE: JUBILEES, THE BOOKS OF ENOCH; ONE TESTAMENT OF LEVI AND ONE OF NAPHTALE; GENESIS APOCRYPHAL; PSALMS OF JOSHUA AND PRAYER OF NABONIDUS. AMID BIBLICAL MANUSCRIPTS ARE TESTIMONIES OF THE 3 TRADITIONS: SAMARITAN, ALEXANDRINA AND MASORETIC. THERE IS A LOT OF SIMILITUDE BETWEEN WHAT IS REVEALED IN THE MANUSCRIPTS AND THE TEACHING OF JESUS. R. P. DANIÉLOU QUOTES THAT BEFORE BEING CONVERTED, JOHN THE BAPTIST BELONGED TO THE QUMRAN COMMUNITY IN 70 AC. R.P. DANIÉLOU COMMENTS THAT JESUS FOLLOWED THE CALENDAR OF QUMRAN; WAS IN CONTACT WITH JOHN THE BAPTIST; AND THAT HIS FIRST DISCIPLES WERE RECRUITED IN A LOCATION NEAR QUMRAN. THE ESSENES ARE THE LOST NEXUS, NOW RECOVERED, BETWEEN THE CONVULSED HISTORY OF ISRAEL AND THE PRIMITIVE GROUPS OF CHRISTIAN JEWS” (DEAD SEA SCROLLS – EDMOND JABÉS).

11. “ST. JAMES THE JUST (UNKNOWN – 69 AD) WAS AN IMPORTANT FIGURE OF THE APOSTOLIC AGE. EUSEBIUS RECORDS THAT CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA RELATED, “THIS JAMES, WHOM THE PEOPLE OF OLD CALLED THE JUST BECAUSE OF HIS OUTSTANDING VIRTUE, WAS THE FIRST, AS THE RECORD TELLS US, TO BE ELECTED TO THE EPISCOPAL THRONE OF THE JERUSALEM CHURCH. OTHER EPITHETS ARE “JAMES THE BROTHER OF THE LORD, SURNAMED THE JUST”, AND “JAMES THE RIGHTEOUS,” AND “JAMES OF JERUSALEM””. A “JAMES” IS MENTIONED IN PAUL´S FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS, AS ONE TO WHOM JESUS APPEARED AFTER HIS RESURRECTION“FOR I DELIVERED TO YOU AS OF FIRST IMPORTANCE WHAT I ALSO RECEIVED: THAT CHRIST DIED FOR OUR SINS IN ACCORDANCE WITH THE SCRIPTURES, THAT HE WAS BURIED, THAT HE WAS RAISED ON THE THIRD DAY IN ACCORDANCE WITH THE SCRIPTURES, AND THAT HE APPEARED TO CEPHAS, THEN TO THE TWELVE. THEN HE APPEARED TO MORE THAN 5 HUNDRED BROTHERS AT ONE TIME, MOST OF WHOM ARE STILL ALIVE, THOUGH SOME HAVE FALLEN ASLEEP. THEN HE APPEARED TO JAMES, THEN TO ALL THE APOSTLES. LAST OF ALL, AS TO ONE UNTIMELY BORN, HE APPEARED ALSO TO ME” (JAMES (BROTHER OF JESUS) – WIKIPEDIA, THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA).

12. ”HILLEL THE ELDER (BABYLON C. 110 BC – 10 AC IN JERUSALEM ) WAS A FAMOUS JEWISH RELIGIOUS LEADER, ONE OF THE MOST IMPORTANT FIGURES IN JEWISH HISTORY. HE IS ASSOCIATED WITH THE DEVELOPMENT OF THE MISHNAH (=WRITTEN REDACTION OF THE JEWISH ORAL TRADITIONS, THE “ORAL TORAH. C. 200 AC) AND THE TALMUD (= THE COLLECTION OF WRITINGS WHICH MAY REFER TO EITHER THE GEMARA (=ANALYSIS AND COMMENTARY ON THE MISHNAH) OR THE GEMARA AND THE MISHNAH TOGETHER. THE TALMUD – WHICH CONSISTS OF 63 TRACTATES AND IT´S OVER 6,200 PAGES LONG – CONTAINS THE TEACHINGS AND OPINIONS OF THOUSANDS OF RABBIES BEFORE CHRIST ON A VARIETY OF SUBJECTS, INCLUDING JEWISH ETHICS, PHILOSOPHY, HISTORY AND MANY OTHER TOPICS. HILLEL IS POPULARLY KNOWN AS THE AUTHOR OF 4 SAYINGS:

1.”IF I AM NOT FOR MYSELF WHO IS FOR ME? AND BEING FOR MY OWN SELF, WHAT AM I? AND IF NOT NOW, WHEN?

2.THE EXPRESSION OF THE ETHIC OF RECIPROCITY, OR GOLDEN RULE: “THAT WHICH IS HATEFUL TO YOU, DO NOT DO TO YOUR FELLOW. THAT IS THE WHOLE TORAH; THE REST IS THE EXPLANATION; GO AND LEARN”.

3.”DON NOT JUDGE YOUR FELLOW UNTIL YOU ARE IN HIS PLACE”.

4.”WHOSOEVER DESTROYS A SOUL IT IS CONSIDERED AS IF HE DESTROYED AN ENTIRE WORLD. AND WHOSOEVER THAT SAVES A SOUL IT´S CONSIDERED AS IF HE SAVED AN ENTIRE WORLD”.

HILLEL LIVED IN JERUSALEM DURING THE TIME OF KING HEROD AND THE ROMAN EMPEROR AUGUSTUS. BOTH MOSES AND HILLEL LIVED 120 YEARS AND AT THE AGE OF 40 HILLEL WENT TO THE BAND OF ISRAEL; 40 YEARS HE SPENT IN STUDY; AND THE LAST THIRD OF HIS LIFE HE WAS THE SPIRITUAL HEAD OF THE JEWISH PEOPLE” (HILLEL THE ELDER – WIKIPEDIA,THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA). 

13. ”ST. IRENAEUS (EARLY 2ND CENTURY AD – C. AD 202), WAS BISHOP OF LUGDUNUM IN GAUL, THEN A PART OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE (NOW LYON, FRANCE). HE WAS AN EARLY CHURCH FATHER AND APOLOGIST, AND HIS WRITINGS WERE FORMATIVE IN THE EARLY DEVELOPMENT OF CHRISTIAN THEOLOGY. HE IS THE EARLIEST WITNESS TO RECOGNITION OF THE CANONICAL CHARACTER OF ALL FOUR GOSPELS. HE IS RECOGNIZED AS A SAINT IN BOTH CATHOLICISM AND EASTERN ORTHODOXY (IRENAEUS – WIKIPEDIA).

14. ”POPE SAINT GREGORY I (C. AD 530 – C. AD 604), COMMONLY KNOWN AS SAINT GREGORY THE GREAT, WAS POPE OF THE CATHOLIC CHURCH FROM 590 TO 604” (POPE GREGORY I – WIKIPEDIA). “GREGORY GAVE MUCH OF HIS TIME TO LECTURING ON THE HOLY SCRIPTURE AND IS RECORDED TO HAVE EXPOUNDED TO HIS MONKS THE HEPTATEUCH (THE FIRST 7 BOOKS OF THE HEBREW BIBLE: GENESIS, EXODUS, LEVITICUS, NUMBERS, DEUTERONOMY, JOSHUA AND JUDGES), BOOKS OF KINGS, THE PROPHETS, THE BOOK OF PROVERBS, AND THE CANTICLE OF CANTICLES. NOTES OF THESE LECTURES WERE TAKEN AT THE TIME BY A YOUNG STUDENT NAMED CLAUDIUS, BUT WHEN TRANSCRIBED WERE FOUND BY GREGORY TO CONTAIN SO MANY ERRORS THAT HE INSISTED ON THEIR BEING GIVEN TO HIM FOR CORRECTION AND REVISION. APPARENTLY THIS WAS NEVER DONE, FOR THE EXISTING FRAGMENTS OF SUCH WORKS ATTRIBUTED TO GREGORY ARE ALMOST CERTAINLY SPURIOUS” (CATHOLIC ENCYCLOPEDIA: ST.GREGORY THE GREAT).

15. ”JOHN NELSON DARBY (1800-1882) WAS AN ANGLO-IRISH BIBLE TEACHER AND IS CONSIDERED TO BE THE FATHER OF MODERN DISPENSATIONALISM AND FUTURISM. DARBY WAS EDUCATED AT WESTMINSTER SCHOOL AND TRINITY COLLEGE, DUBLIN, WHERE HE GRADUATED CLASSICAL GOLD MEDALLIST IN 1819. DARBY EMBRACED CHRISTIANITY DURING HIS STUDIES, ALTHOUGH THERE´S NO EVIDENCE THAT HE FORMALLY STUDIED THEOLOGY. HE JOINED AN INN OF COURT, BUT FELT THAT BEING A LAWYER WAS INCONSISTENT WITH HIS RELIGIOUS BELIEF. HE THEREFORE CHOSE ORDINATION AS AN ANGLICAN CLERGYMAN IN IRELAND, “LEST HE SHOULD SELL HIS TALENTS TO DEFEAT JUSTICE”. IN 1825, DARBY WAS ORDAINED DEACON OF THE ESTABLISHED CHURCH OF IRELAND AND THE FOLLOWING YEAR AS PRIEST. FOR ABOUT 40 YEARS WILLIAM KELLY (1821-1906) WAS HIS CHIEF INTERPRETER IN HIS WORK. JOHN NELSON DARBY AS I KNEW HIM STATED THAT “A SAINT MORE TRUE TO CHRIST´S NAME AND WORD I NEVER KNEW OR HEARD OF”. HE WAS THE DOMINANT FORCE IN THE EARLY BRETHREN MOVEMENT (A CONSERVATIVE NONCONFORMIST EVANGELICAL MOVEMENT IN THE LATE 182OS). IN 1834, A DISPUTE AROSE OVER HIS FRIEND, FRANCIS WILLIAM NEWMAN, WHO STARTED TO HOLD HERETICAL BELIEFS IN REGARD TO THE DIVINITY OF CHRIST” (JOHN NELSON DARBY – WIKIPEDIA). DISPENSATIONALISM IS A RELIGIOUS INTERPRETIVE SYSTEM FOR THE BIBLE. IT CONSIDERS BIBLICAL HISTORY AS DIVIDED DELIBERATELY BY GOD INTO DEFINED PERIODS TO WHICH GOD HAS ALLOTTED DISTINCTIVE ADMINISTRATIVE PRINCIPLES. DISPENSATION MEANS AN ADMINISTRATION OF AFFAIRS, A MODE OF DEALING. EACH AGE OF THE PLAN OF GOD IS THUS ADMINISTERED IN A CERTAIN WAY, AND HUMANITY IS HELD RESPONSIBLE AS A STEWARD DURING THAT TIME. EACH DISPENSATION IS MARKED BY A CYCLE. GOD REVEALS HIMSELF AND HIS TRUTH TO HUMANITY IN A NEW WAY. HUMANITY IS HELD RESPONSIBLE TO CONFORM TO THAT REVELATION. HUMANITY REBELS AND FAILS THE TEST. GOD JUDGES HUMANITY AND INTRODUCES A NEW PERIOD OF PROBATION UNDER A NEW ADMINISTRATION” (DISPENSATIONALISM – WIKIPEDIA).

16. “ABRAHAM ISAAC KOOK (1865-1935) WAS THE FIRST ASHKENAZI CHIEF RABBI OF THE BRITISH MANDATORY PALESTINE, JEWISH THINKER AND A RENOWNED TORAH SCHOLAR. WHILE HE IS EXALTED AS ONE OF THE MOST IMPORTANT THINKERS IN MAINSTREAM RELIGIOUS ZIONISM, THERE ARE SEVERAL PROMINENT QUOTES IN WHICH RAV KOOK IS QUITE CRITICAL OF THE MORE MODERN-ORTHODOX RELIGIOUS ZIONISTS, WHOM HE SAW IN TRADITIONAL JUDAISM WITH A MODERN AND LARGELY SECULAR IDEOLOGY. UNLIKE OTHER  ZIONIST  LEADERS,  HOWEVER,  KOOK´S MOTIVATIONS WERE PURELY BASED ON JEWISH LAW AND BIBLICAL PROPHECY. IN 1928, RAV KOOK WROTE A LETTER TO RAV YOSEF MESSAS (CHIEF RABBI IN ALGERIA), ADDRESSING CERTAIN MISQUOTES WHICH WERE ERRONEOUSLY BEING REPEATED IN HIS NAME REGARDING A SPEECH HE GAVE AT THE INAUGURATION OF HEBREW UNIVERSITY. THE FOLLOWING ARE TRANSLATED EXCERPTS FROM THE LETTER R. KOOK WROTE TO RAV MESSAS: 1.“…FROM THE TIME THAT I CAME TO THE HOLY LAND, IT HAS BEEN MY GOAL TO THE BEST OF MY ABILITY TO DRAW ALL THOSE WHO ARE ESTRANGED AND SPEAK TO THEIR HEART, SO THAT THEY COME CLOSE TO TORAH…”.

2.”…THEY MUST GUARD THE HOLINESS OF ISRAEL, TEACHERS AND STUDENTS ALIKE, AND NOT FOLLOW FOREIGN IDEAS NOR TURN ASIDE FROM THE TORAH…”.

3.”…THESE WORDS ARE EXPLICIT IN MY SPEECH THAT I SPOKE AT THAT TIME BEFORE THE PEOPLE, BEFORE ALL THE IMPORTANT OFFICIALS WHO CAME TO THE CELEBRATION, AND TO THE ENTIRE GREAT CROWD OF THOUSANDS WHO CAME FROM THE FAR ENDS OF THE HOLY LAND AND FROM THE LANDS OF THE DIASPORA. SO, HOW CAN MALICIOUS PEOPLE COME TO DISTORT THE WORDS OF THE LIVING GOD IN A WAY THAT IS SO FILLED WITH WICKEDNESS AND FOLLY?” ( ABRAHAM ISAAC KOOK-WIKIPEDIA).

AMONG THESE  MANY MALICIOUS FELLOWS WHO CONTRIBUTED TO THE DISTORTION OF THE BIBLE HERE ARE SOME EXAMPLES BELOW:

1. CORRUPT PRIESTS AND KINGS AND OTHER CONSPIRATORS. THE BOOK OF THE LAW OF THE LORD HAD BEEN LOST BEFORE IT WAS FOUND BY HILKIAH. WE DON´T KNOW FOR HOW LONG IT WAS LOST BUT THE FACT THAT IT HAD BEEN CARELESSLY KEPT IS ELOQUENT OF THE INDIFFERENCE OF PRIESTS AND KINGS, ITS APPOINTED GUARDIANS.

2. THE PHARISEES´ EVIL MANEUVERS TO UNDERMINE JESUS CHRIST´S DIVINE POWERS TO CURE PEOPLE. THE FACT THAT PHARISEES DENIED THE WORK OF THE SPIRIT OF GOD WHEN JESUS PERFORMED HIS MIRACLES HAS SURELY DONE A LOT OF HARM TO ALL THE GENERATIONS AFTER THEM, AND WE´RE INCLUDED TOO, AS VICTIMS OF THEIR DECEIVING PRACTICES. SOME GIFTED ONES – WHO WERE GIVEN THE CHANCE TO GET MESSAGES FROM GOD – PASSED ON TO US THAT THERE IS ONLY ONE THING GOD IS NEVER GOING TO FORGIVE AND IT IS EXACTLY THAT ONE WE´VE ALREADY MENTIONED REGARDING THE PHARISEES. THE PHARISEES WERE KNOWN FOR THEIR OSTENTATIOUS PIETY, NOT BY THE COMPASSION AND HUMBLENESS THAT JESUS CHRIST SPREAD.

3. THE GENTILES. “GENTILE IS AN ETHNONYM THAT COMMONLY MEANS NON-JEW. OTHER GROUPS THAT CLAIM ISRAELITE HERITAGE SOMETIMES USE THE TERM TO DESCRIBE OUTSIDERS. THE TORAH EXHIBITS A PASSIONATE INTOLERANCE OF THE GENTILE NATIONS, ALLEGING THE GENTILES PRACTICED “IDOLATRY” AND OTHER THINGS IT HOLDS TO BE IMMORAL. THE TORAH ALLEGES THAT THE GENTILES´ BARBARISM WOULD “CONTAMINATE” THE HEBREWS. PAUL COPAN ARGUES THAT JOSHUA FULFILLED THIS COMMAND”. (GENTILE – WIKIPEDIA). 

4. THE GNOSTICS. “ THEY WEREN´T A SINGLE GROUP BUT A WIDE ARRAY OF SECTS. SOME GROUPS WERE INDEED LIBERTINE BECAUSE THEY CONSIDERED BODILY EXISTENCE MEANINGLESS”. (ERENAEUS – WIKIPEDIA). “ONE OF THE MOST CONFUSING VOICES COMES FROM THE DISCIPLINE OF POLITICAL SCIENCE. WE´RE TALKING ABOUT ERIC VOEGELIN WHO BECAME A PROPHET OF A NEW THEORY OF HISTORY, IN WHICH GNOSTICISM PLAYED A MOST NEFARIOUS ROLE. SINCE GNOSTICS DID NOT ACCEPT THE CONVENTIONAL CHRISTIAN ESCHATON OF HEAVEN AND HELL, VOEGELIN CONCLUDED THAT THEY MUST BE ENGAGED IN A MILLENARIAN REVOLUTIONIZING OF EARTHLY EXISTENCE. AT THE SAME TIME, VOEGELIN WAS BOUND TO ADMIT THAT THE GNOSTICS REGARDED THE EARTHLY REALM AS GENERALLY HOPELESS AND UNREDEEMABLE. IN MOLNAR´S VIEW, GNOSTICS WEREN´T ONLY RESPONSIBLE FOR ALL MODERN UTOPIANISM, BUT ALAS FOR THE INORDINATE ATTACHMENT OF MODERN PEOPLE TO SCIENCE AND TECHNOLOGY. THE SCIENTIFIC WORLD VIEW, SAID THIS FOLK, IS IN FACT A GNOSTIC WORLD VIEW, AND IT´S RESPONSIBLE FOR TREATING HUMANS AS MACHINES AND FOR MAKING SOCIETIES INTO MACHINELIKE COLLECTIVES” (WHAT IS A GNOSTIC? – THE GNOSIS ARCHIVE).

5. LET´S IMAGINE SOME DEUTERONOMISTS WERE CORRUPT AND SOME OF THEIR EVIL MANEUVERS CONSISTED OF DISTORTING KEY BELIEFS AND DESTROYING HOLY PLACES. LET´S IMAGINE SOME DEUTERONOMISTS CENSORED SOME OF GOD´S MESSAGES. “DEUTERONOMISTS WOULD HAVE REGARDED A PROPHET LIKE LEHI – WHO CLAIMED TO HAVE SEEN THE DIVINE COUNCIL AND RECEIVED THE MYSTERIES (SEE 1 NEPHI 1:8-14) – AS A FALSE PROPHET. THUS LAMAN AND LEMUEL CALLING THEIR FATHER A “VISIONARY MAN” WOULD BE A DIRECT RESULT OF THEIR ACCEPTANCE OF THE DEUTERONOMISTIC INTERPRETATION OF WHAT A PROPER PROPHET SHOULD BE. THEY WERE DECLARING THAT THEIR FATHER, BY DEFINITION OF SEEING VISIONS, SHOULD NOT BE ACCEPTED AS A TRUE PROPHET. IN THE DEUTERONOMIST HISTORY, JOSIAH “IS DEPICTED AS A SECOND DAVID” AND “TOUTED AS THE IDEAL DAVIDIC KING”. LAMAN AND LEMUEL, “LIKE UNTO THE JEWS WHO WERE AT JERUSALEM,” DID NOT BELIEVE THAT THEIR FATHER´S PROPHECY ABOUT THE DESTRUCTION OF JERUSALEM COULD EVER HAPPEN. AS NEPHI TRIES TO PERSUADE THEM TO REJOIN THEIR FATHER AT HIS CAMP, HE REITERATES THE PROPHECIES OF DESTRUCTION AND ADDS TO THEM HIS OWN PROPHETIC PRONOUNCEMENT, “NOW BEHOLD, I SAY UNTO YOU THAT IF YE WILL RETURN UNTO JERUSALEM YE SHALL ALSO PERISH WITH THEM, “ WORDS WHICH NEPHI INSISTS WERE GIVEN TO HIM BY “THE SPIRIT OF THE LORD” (1 NEPHI 7:15, SEE VV.13-15). NOW NEPHI, LIKE LEHI, WAS IN THEIR MINDS A “VISIONARY MIND,” THAT IS, A FALSE PROPHET. GRANT HARDY EXPLAINS THAT “LAMAN AND LEMUEL WOULD HAVE BEEN AWARE THAT THE SCRIPTURAL PENALTY FOR FALSE PROPHETS WAS DEATH (DEUT. 18:20;CF. 13:1-11). …THE BROTHERS MIGHT WELL HAVE RECALLED THAT THE DEUTERONOMIC JUDGMENT ON FALSE PROPHETS REQUIRED A SUMMARY EXECUTION, EVEN FOR “THY BROTHER, THE SON OF THY MOTHER” (DEUT. 13:6). THIS COULD ALSO EXPLAIN THEIR LATER ATTEMPTS TO KILL BOTH NEPHI AND LEHI. LEHI USED DEUTERONOMY ONLY AS A PARALLEL SINCE HE HAD EXPERIENCED THE SAME KIND OF VISIONS AND REVELATIONS THAT MOSES HAD RECEIVED. HE KNEW THAT HIS REBELLIOUS OLDER SONS SPECIFICALLY REJECTED HIS VISIONS, CALLING HIM A VISIONARY MAN (1 NEPHI 2:11), AND HE THEREFORE TOOK ADVANTAGE OF MOSES AS SUPPORT. LEHI KNEW THAT LAMAN AND LEMUEL HELD MOSES IN HIGH REGARD, AND THUS SOUGHT TO USE HIM AS AN ARCHETYPE FOR HIS OWN CALLING. HENCE, THE ABOVE SUGGESTIONS THAT NEPHI MAY HAVE USED THE LAW TO APPEAL TO LAMAN´S AND LEMUEL´S DEUTERONOMIST SENSIBILITIES, WHILE TRYING TO POINT THEM TO SOMETHING GREATER, MAY LIKEWISE APPLY HERE: LEHI DRAWS ON THE FIGURE OF MOSES BECAUSE HE KNOWS IT WILL APPEAL TO LAMAN AND LEMUEL. BUT AT THE SAME TIME HE IS USING THE MOSES TYPE TO SUGGEST THAT HE HIMSELF WAS A TRUE AND LEGITIMATE PROPHET” (THE DEUTERONOMIST REFORMS AND LEHI´S FAMILY DYNAMICS/BOOK OF MORMON ARCHAEOLOGICAL FORUM). LET´S IMAGINE THAT INDEED LEHI WAS A TRUE AND LEGITIMATE PROPHET AND THAT MANY CORRUPT DEUTERONOMISTS WERE AGAINST VISIONARY ONES LIKE LEHI, SO THAT THEIR VICIOUS CIRCLE OF ADULTERY AND IDOLATRY COULD GO ON AS IT WAS.

6. “HISTORICALLY, KABBALAH EMERGED, AFTER EARLIER FORMS OF JEWISH MYSTICISM, IN 12TH TO 13TH CENTURY SOUTHERN FRANCE AND SPAIN, BECOMING REINTERPRETED IN THE JEWISH MYSTICAL RENAISSANCE OF 16TH CENTURY OTTOMAN PALESTINE” (KABBALAH – WIKIPEDIA). LET´S IMAGINE SOME CABALISTS WERE SO EVIL THEY DECIDED TO DISTORT THE BIBLE AND CONFUSE PEOPLE AS MUCH AS THEY COULD, STRIPING THE BIBLE OF THE DEEPEST PARTS, AND ADDING MORBID NOTES TO IT. LET´S IMAGINE THE CABALISTS REESTABLISHED THE MYTHIC ELEMENT OF THE OLD ISRAELI TRADITION, WHOSE “BIBLE WAS EL ZOHAR WHICH GAVE SHAPE TO A II CENTURY NOVEL CALLED EIN SOF (INFINITY), GOD´S MOST INTIMATE ESSENCE, WHICH HAD APPEARED FROM HIS HIDDEN PLACE, LIKE A BIG TREE WHOSE BRANCHES AND LEAVES HAD GROWN RAPIDLY. DIVINE LIFE SPREAD TO OTHER HIGH CIRCLES UNTIL THE GOOD NEWS SPREAD ALL OVER, WHILE EIN SOF REMAINED HIDDEN. THIS WAS THE ROOT OF THE TREE, SOURCE OF STABILITY AND VITALITY BUT INVISIBLE. GOD´S ATTRIBUTES – HIS POWER, WISDOM, BEAUTY AND INTELLIGENCE – WERE TRANSFORMED BY CABALISTS IN 10 DYNAMIC POWERS WHICH THEY CALLED SEFIROTH (“ENUMERACIONES”), THE INSIDE DIMENSIONS OF THE HUMAN PSIQUE. THERE WAS ALWAYS A STRONG SEXUAL ELEMENT IN THE CABALA. BINAH (HEBR) MEANS INTELLIGENCE; 3ª SEFIRAH IN THE CABALISTIC MYTH OF CREATION AND REDEMPTION WAS ALSO KNOWN AS THE SUPREME MOTHER, WHOSE UTERUS, ONCE IT WAS PULLED IN BY THE PRIMARY END, GAVE BIRTH TO THE INFERIOR SEFIROTH. SEFIROTH REFLECTED DIVINE ASPECTS WHICH WERE MORE ACCESSIBLE TO HUMAN BEINGS (FIRST CHAPTER OF GENESIS), AND WHICH WERE SYMBOLIZED BY THE 7 DAYS OF CREATION. IN THE ZOHAR THE TORAH IS COMPARED TO A BEAUTIFUL WOMAN, ISOLATED IN A PALACE, WHO HAD A SECRET LOVER. ACCORDING TO CABALISTS, MYSTICS HAD TO STRIP THE BIBLE OF ITS SUPERFICIAL MEANING, THAT IS, ITS NARRATIVES, LAWS AND GENEALOGIES – LIKE A LOVER UNDRESSES HIS LOVER AND LEARNS ABOUT HER BODY AND ALSO ABOUT HER SOUL. CABALISTS HAD TO LIVE TOGETHER IN A COMMUNITY, FIGHTING EGOISM AND EGOTISM, SINCE WRATH CAME IN THEIR PSIQUE LIKE AN EVIL SPIRIT AND ENDED WITH THE DIVINE HARMONY OF THEIR SOULS. CABALISTS THOUGHT THE TORAH WAS FAULTY, INCOMPLETE, AND THAT IT CONTAINED A RELATIVE TRUTH, NOT AN ABSOLUTE ONE. SOME THOUGHT THERE WERE 2 BOOKS MISSING FROM THE TORAH, AND THAT THE LANGUAGE HAD BEEN DISTORTED. THE KABBALAH STARTED AS A SMALL ESOTERIC MOVEMENT, BUT IT WOULD BECOME A MASS MOVEMENT IN JUDAISM AND ITS MYTHOLOGY WOULD INFLUENCE EVEN THE ONES WHO DIDN´T HAVE ANY MYSTICAL TALENTS. AS THE KABBALAH´S STORY BECAME MORE TRAGIC, JEWS FOUND THEIR DYNAMIC GOD MORE UNDERSTANDING THAN THE DISTANT ONE OF PHILOSOPHERS, AND SO THEY FELT THE MEANING OF THE HOLY SCRIPTURES WAS INSATISFACTORY AND THAT NEEDED THE KABBALAH” (HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG). “MANY CHRISTIANS WHO ARE AGAINST DARWINISM ARE CALVINISTS, BUT JOHN CALVIN SAID THAT THE BIBLE WAS NOT A SCIENTIFIC DOCUMENT AND THAT THOSE WHO WANTED TO LEARN ASTRONOMY OR COSMOLOGY SHOULD LOOK IN SOME OTHER PLACES. THERE´S A LOT OF VIOLENCE IN THE BIBLE, MUCH MORE THAN IN THE CORAN. THROUGHOUT HISTORY PEOPLE HAVE USED THE BIBLE TO JUSTIFY THEIR ATROCITIES. JUST LIKE CANTWELL SMITH SAID, THE BIBLE AND ITS INTERPRETATIONS MUST BE CONSIDERED INSIDE ITS HISTORICAL CONTEXT. THE WORLD HAS ALWAYS BEEN A VIOLENT PLACE, AND THE HOLY SCRIPTURES AND THEIR INTERPRETATION HAVE OFTEN BEEN VICTIMS OF CONTEMPORARY AGRESSION. DEUTERONOMISTS INTRODUCED JOSUAH FIGHTING AS A CRUEL ASIRIAN GENERAL. THE CRUSADES IGNORED JESUS´ PEACEFUL TEACHINGS AND ENLISTED IN A MILITARY EXPEDITION TO THE HOLY LAND, SINCE THEY WERE SOLDIERS, WANTED A MILITARY RELIGION AND APPLIED THEIR FEUDAL SPIRIT TO THE BIBLE” (CALVINISTS – WIKIPEDIA).

WE´RE ALL VICTIMS OF THE DEFORMING INTERPRETATIONS, DUE TO MANY ANCIENT PEOPLE´S IGNORANCE AND TO CORRUPT PRIESTS AND PROPHETS. THE DESCENDANTS OF ALL THOSE AGAINST GOD THROUGHOUT MANY CENTURIES HAVE PLANTED THEIR EVIL SEEDS IN HUMANKIND TELLING PEOPLE AS MANY LIES AS THEY´VE BEEN ABLE TO. WE MUST NOT REPEAT THE MISTAKES OTHERS BEFORE US MADE, LIKE WHEN BABYLONIAN KING NABUCODONOSOR INVADED JERUSALEM AND KEPT MOST ISRAELITES CAPTIVE – EZEKIEL INCLUDED -, AND WE SEE THAT IT WAS THE ISRAELI GOVERNMENT WHO LED THEIR PEOPLE TO AN STATE OF LACK OF FAITH IN GOD. THAT STATE OF LACK OF FAITH AND MORAL VIRTUES CLEARED THE GROUND FOR GOD´S COMPETITION TODAY TO CALL THE SHOTS.

TO THE ONES WHO ARE TRYING TO MOCK THE BIBLE´S MESSAGE, UNDERESTIMATING THE POWER ITS TEACHINGS HAVE, SINCE THEY ARE KEY TO SALVATION, WE TELL THEM THE FOLLOWING: DESPITE THE MANY DISTORTIONS THE BIBLE HAS BEEN A VICTIM OF, IS THE ONLY GUIDANCE MESSAGE FOR OUR MORAL UPRIGHT AND SALVATION. THIS DIVINE MESSAGE IS COMPASSION WHICH LEADS US TO CHARITY. THE BIBLE IS FULL OF COMPASSIONATE ALLEGORIES TO LEAD US INTO BECOMING COMPASSIONATE BEINGS WHO END UP DOING SOMETHING ACCORDINGLY, LIKE BEING CHARITABLE AND HUMBLE.

BEING AWARE NOW AS WE ARE OF THE MANY PEOPLE WHO HAVE BEEN INVOLVED IN THE INTERPRETATION OF THE BIBLE WE MUST SAY, THAT WHEN READING THE BIBLE, WE ARE TO PAY ATTENTION TO THESE 3 ASPECTS: 1. THE LITERAL MEANING OF THE TEXT, 2. THE ALLEGORIA AND 3. THE MORAL INTERPRETATION. IN ORDER TO UNDERSTAND A BIBLICAL TEXT WE ARE TO TAKE INTO CONSIDERATION THOSE 3 CONCEPTS, BESIDES TALKING TO GOD AND ASKING HIM TO GUIDE US IN THE UNDERSTANDING OF THE MESSAGE HE WANTS US TO MAKE OURS.

IF WE HAD TO SAY WHAT CIRO – PERSIAN KING – MEANT FOR US IS THAT BEING POWERFUL AND A GOOD PERSON IS POSSIBLE, AND KEEPING OUR WORD – LIKE HE DID WITH THE EXILES IN BABYLON – IS AS IMPORTANT AS BEING GOOD. ACTUALLY IT MEANS BEING GOOD. “THE HEBREW BIBLE REFERS TO CYRUS THE GREAT, KING OF PERSIA, AS A MESSIAH FOR HIS DECREE TO REBUILD THE JERUSALEM TEMPLE (MESSIAH – WIKIPEDIA).

THE 3 EXAMPLES BELOW SHOW US HOW OUR FAITH IS TESTED THROUGH REALLY COMPLICATED TESTS DURING OUR STAY HERE:

1.DANIEL 13 (OLD TESTAMENT): JOAKIM´S WIFE – SUSAN – WAS SAVED BY THE PROPHET DANIEL, FROM TWO CORRUPT ELDERS AND JUDGES WHO HAD ACCUSED HER OF HAVING SLEPT WITH A YOUNG BOY AND CONDEMNED HER TO DEATH. DANIEL ASKED THE PEOPLE THERE TO SEPARATE THE 2 CORRUPT ELDERS AND JUDGES, AND ASKED THEM SEPARATELY UNDER WHAT TREE THEY SAW SUSAN AND THE BOY TOGETHER. ONE OF THEM ANSWERED “UNDER A MASTIC TREE”, AND THE OTHER SAID “UNDER AN OAK”, AND THIS WISE WAY DANIEL MANAGED TO CONVICT THE ELDERS AND JUDGES OF BEARING FALSE WITNESS AND WERE PUT TO DEATH.

2.DANIEL 14 (OLD TESTAMENT): DANIEL ALSO UNMASKS THE IDOL BEL WHOM THE PERSIAN KING CIRO WORSHIPPED, BECAUSE CIRO THOUGHT THAT IT WAS BEL WHO ATE ALL THE FOOD AND DRINKS THAT EVERY DAY CIRO LEFT AROUND HIM. DANIEL UNMASKED THE CORRUPT PRIESTS WHO HAD SET UP A SECRET ALLEY UNDER THE TABLE WHERE THE STATUE OF BEL WAS SO THAT AT NIGHT THE PRIESTS´ FAMILY WOULD ENTER THE ROOM AND EAT AND DRINK EVERYTHING, TO MAKE KING CIRO THINK BEL WAS A LIVING GOD. THE KING DECIDED TO SEAL THE ROOM AND SEE WHAT HAPPENED TO THE FOOD AND DRINK THE FOLLOWING DAY, AND OF COURSE IT WAS GONE BUT DANIEL SHOWED CIRO THERE WERE FOOTPRINTS ON THE FLOOR, AND THEN HE SHOWED HIM HOW THOSE FOOTPRINTS TOOK THEM TO THE ALLEY UNDER THE TABLE. FINALLY CIRO ASKED DANIEL TO BURN BEL AND THE PRIESTS WERE SENTENCED TO DEATH.

3.DANIEL 14 (OLD TESTAMENT): WE ALSO SEE HERE THAT DANIEL UNMASKED THE DRAGON WHOM BABYLONIANS AND CIRO WORSHIPPED. DANIEL BOILED SOME FISH, GREASE AND HAIR, AND WITH ALL THAT HE MADE SOME BALLS AND PUT THEM INSIDE THE DRAGON´S MOUTH, AND THE DRAGON FINALLY BURST. BABYLONIANS GOT ANGRY WITH CIRO, SAYING THAT HE HAD BECOME JEW AND THAT HE LET BEL BE DESTROYED, THE DRAGON KILLED, AND HAD THE PRIESTS EXECUTED. SO THE BABYLONIANS SCARED CIRO GIVING HIM AN ULTIMATUM: “YOU EITHER GIVE US DANIEL OR WE´LL KILL YOU AND YOUR FAMILY”, AND AS CIRO DIDN´T HAVE THE AUTHORITY NOR THE GUTS HE SHOULD HAVE HAD CIRO GAVE DANIEL TO THEM AND THEY PUT HIM IN A DITCH WITH LIONS. GOD SENT THIS MESSAGE TO THE PROPHET HABACUC: “GO TO BABYLON WHERE DANIEL IS AND TAKE THAT FOOD YOU HAVE THERE TO HIM”, AND GOD TOOK HABACUC WHERE DANIEL WAS SO THAT HE WOULDN´T STARVE FOR THE 7 DAYS HE WAS THERE. CIRO WENT TO SEE DANIEL AFTER 7 DAYS TO SEE IF IT WAS TRUE THAT DANIEL´S GOD HAD SAVED HIM, AND HE REALIZED IT WAS TRUE. THEREFORE, CIRO ORDERED HIS ARMY TO PUT THE ONES WHO WANTED TO KILL DANIEL IN THE DITCH WITH THE LIONS, AND THEY WERE INSTANTLY DEVOURED BY THE LIONS.

DANIEL SHOW US THAT WE´VE GOT TO DEFEND WHOEVER IS INNOCENT. THERE´S NO JOY SUCH AS THAT. SAVING AN INNOCENT LIFE IS JOY ITSELF. SUSAN HAD NOT SURVIVED THE COMPLOT IF IT HADN´T BEEN FOR  DANIEL´S GUTS, COMING FORWARD AND DEFENDING HER EVEN THOUGH SHE WAS NOT A RELATIVE NOR A FRIEND OF HIS. IN THE OLD TESTAMENT JEREMIAH ATTACKS JEHOIAHIM (C. 635-598 BCE), KING OF JUDAH (608-598 BCE), WHO HAD PUT HIS HEART INTO ABUSING PEOPLE, SPILLING INNOCENT BLOOD, OPPRESSING AND INTO USING VIOLENCE. JEREMIAH IS ANOTHER GOOD EXAMPLE TO HELP US REALIZE WE ARE TO GO AGAINST ABUSERS. THAT WAY WE´LL BE DEFENDING THE RIGHTEOUS

LET´S FOLLOW THERESE NEUMANN´S EXAMPLE, OPPOSING EVIL FORCES. LET´S NOT FOLLOW FALSE GODS LIKE MONEY AND FAME. LET´S NOT FOLLOW ISRAEL´S EXAMPLE, WHEN BACK THEN ISRAELIES IGNORED GOD AND WORSHIPPED FALSE ONES. LET´S RESOLVE TO STOP BEING GREEDY AND LET´S BE HUMAN BEINGS OF LIGHT, THAT IS, OF TRUTH, FAITHFULNESS, KINDNESS AND OF JUSTICE. IN DOING SO WE´LL BE SETTING AN EXAMPLE FOR THE ONES WHO DON´T KNOW WHAT TO DO AND SO THE MORE BROTHERS OF LIGHT WE ARE THE HAPPIER OUR LORD WILL BE.

THE MORE WE LIVE THE MORE WE REALIZE THAT OUR DAYS HERE ARE NOT TO DO EVERYTHING WE WANT TO BUT EVERYTHING WE ARE SUPPOSED TO. WHAT IS THAT? WELL, ONCE WE KNOW GOD WE START DOING WHAT IS RIGHT, NOT WHAT WE WANT; ONCE WE REALLY FOLLOW OUR LORD´S COMMANDMENTS WE ENJOY HELPING THE HELPLESS AND WE SEE THAT WE´VE BEEN REALLY LUCKY TO HAVE BEEN TOUCHED BY THE HOLY SPIRIT TO HAVE THE OPPORTUNITY TO GET TO KNOW OUR LORD LITTLE BY LITTLE ON A DAILY BASIS, AND WE FEEL THE URGE TO CONVERT OTHERS, THE URGE TO HELP OTHERS KNOW GOD THROUGH OUR ACTS AND WAYS.

WHENEVER WE SEE TODAY SO MUCH FANATICISM, IDOLATRY AS TO FOOTBALL PLAYERS, FOOTBALL TEAMS, SPORTS PEOPLE, ETC., IT SEEMS AS IF OUR LIVES´ FUTURE DEPENDED ON THEIR SCORES, OR ON HOW MUCH WE KNOW ABOUT WELL-KNOWN CELEBRITIES. WE´VE GOT TO UNDERSTAND OR ACCEPT, IF WE DON´T UNDERSTAND IT, THAT GOD DOES NOT WANT US TO WORSHIP ANYBODY EXCEPT HIM. WE CAN ENJOY WATCHING RUSSIAN FIGURE SKATER, EVGENI PLUSHENKO, ARITZ ADURIZ PLAYING FOOTBALL, RAFA NADAL PLAYING TENNIS, LEBRON JAMES PLAYING BASKETBALL…, BUT WE MUST NOT GO THAT FAR AS TO IDOLIZE THEM SINCE THAT IS NOT RIGHT. IDOLS ARE FALSE GODS AND WE DON´T WANT ANY OF THAT, TAKING INTO ACCOUNT THE EXPERIENCE CIRO HAD BURNING BEL, ONCE HE REALIZED IT WAS A PAGAN GOD. CIRO AND MANY OTHERS EXAMPLES ARE AN EXCUSE TO TELL US THAT WE NEED GOD NO MATTER HOW POWERFUL FINANTIALLY SPEAKING WE ARE. THE SAME AS CIRO, WE DO NEED GOD TO PROTECT US, TO GUIDE US THROUGH DIFFERENT KINDS OF HARD CIRCUMSTANCES LIFE FACES US WITH. CIRO IS AN EXCUSE TO MAKE THE POINT THAT WE NEED GOD SO THAT WE CAN SEE WHAT´S RIGHT AND WHAT IS NOT, TO SEE THAT IF SOMEONE IS INNOCENT, NO MATTER WHAT ULTIMATUM WE ARE GIVEN, WE MUST DEFEND THE INNOCENT ONE. THE MORE YEARS WE LIVE THE MORE WE REALIZE HOW MUCH INJUSTICE THERE IS IN THE WORLD. MANY UNJUST CASES WALK BY OUR EYES EVERY SINGLE DAY, LIKE PEOPLE WHO ARE SANE AND ARE DIAGNOSED INSANE BECAUSE THEIR RELATIVES ARE AFTER THEIR MONEY, AND THEY DO THE IMPOSSIBLE LIKE PRESENTING FALSE DOCUMENTS IN EVIDENCE TO BACK THEMSELVES UP. THEY DARE GO AGAINST GOD. IT TAKES GUTS TO GO AGAINST ABUSERS AND DEFEND THE INNOCENT ONES, AND HAVING GUTS TAKES BEING PROTECTED BY GOD. BEING PROTECTED BY GOD TAKES FAITH, AND HAVING FAITH TAKES BEING HUMBLE AND OPENED TO SOMEONE BETTER AND BIGGER THAN US. IT TAKES ACCEPTANCE OF OUR MINUSCLE UNDERSTANDING OF WHAT´S GOING ON AND OF WHAT GOD´S PLANS ARE, EXCEPT THAT HE LOVES US AND WANTS US TO FOLLOW HIS RULES BEING GOOD BEINGS.

IF MOSES WAS CHOSEN BY GOD WAS BECAUSE MOSES HAD REACHED A LEVEL OF UNION WITH GOD, PRAYING FERVENTLY, DOING AS MUCH AS IT WAS IN HIS POWER DURING HIS LIFE AND CULTIVATING A RECEPTIVE ATTITUDE TOWARDS GOD. WHEN MOSES EXISTED THE BIBLE WAS NOT YET CREATED. HOWEVER, MOSES MANAGED TO TALK TO GOD IN A WAY WHICH GOD LIKED AND APPRECIATED, TO SUCH AN EXTENT OF BEING CHOSEN TO RECEIVE THE STONE TABLETS. WE NEED GOD TO UNEARTH ALL THE TROYAN HORSES  THAT COME OUR WAY, AND TO PROTECT US HELPING US SEE THAT WE´RE SUPPOSED TO SAY “NO” TO THOSE WHO TRY TO MISLEAD US. THE 10 LAWS GIVEN BY GOD TO MOSES AND TO US ARE STILL HERE TO HELP US. LET´S REVIEW THEM NOW:

 YOU SHALL HAVE NO OTHER GODS BEFORE ME.

YOU SHALL NOT MAKE FOR YOURSELF A CARVED IMAGE—ANY LIKENESS OF ANYTHING THAT IS IN HEAVEN ABOVE, OR THAT EARTH BENEATH, OR THAT IS IN THE WATER UNDER THE EARTH.

YOU SHALL NOT MISUSE THE NAME OF THE LORD YOUR GOD IN VAIN.

REMEMBER THE SABBATH DAY, TO KEEP IT HOLY.

HONOR YOUR FATHER AND YOUR MOTHER.

YOU SHALL NOT MURDER.

YOU SHALL NOT COMMIT ADULTERY.

YOU SHALL NOT STEAL.

YOU SHALL NOT BEAR FALSE WITNESS AGAINST YOUR NEIGHBOR.

YOU SHALL NOT COVET YOUR NEIGHBOR´S HOUSE; YOU SHALL NOT COVET YOUR NEIGHBOUR´S WIFE, NOR HIS MALE SERVANT, FEMALE SERVANT, NOR HIS OX,NOR HIS DONKEY,NOR ANYTHING THAT IS YOUR NEIGHBOR´S.

NEPHI WAS ANOTHER PERSON CHOSEN BY GOD. “JESUS CHRIST DID SHOW HIMSELF UNTO THE PEOPLE OF NEPHI, AS THE MULTITUDE WERE GATHERED IN THE LAND BOUNTIFUL, AND DID MINISTER UNTO THEM; AND ON THIS WISE DID HE SHOW HIMSELF UNTO THEM”. “AND IT CAME TO PASS THAT WHILE THEY WERE CONVERSING ONE WITH ANOTHER, THEY HEARD A VOICE AS IF IT CAME OUT OF HEAVEN;… AND IT CAME TO PASS THAT AGAIN THEY HEARD THE VOICE, AND THEY UNDERSTOOD IT NOT. AND BEHOLD, THE 3RD TIME THEY DID UNDERSTAND THE VOICE WHICH THEY HEARD, AND IT SAID UNTO THEM:

“BEHOLD MY BELOVED SON, IN WHOM I AM WELL PLEASED, IN WHOM I HAVE GLORIFIED MY NAME – HERA YE HIM”. AND IT CAME TO PASS, AS THEY UNDERSTOOD THEY CAST THEIR EYES UP AGAIN TOWARDS HEAVEN; AND BEHOLD, THEY SAW A MAN DESCENDING OUT OF HEAVEN; AND HE WAS CLOTHED IN A WHITE ROBE; AND HE CAME DOWN AND STOOD IN THE MIDST OF THEM; AND THE EYES OF THE WHOLE MULTITUDE WERE TURNED UPON HIM, AND THEY DURST NOT OPEN THEIR MOUTHS, EVEN ONE TO ANOTHER, AND WIST NOT WHAT IT MEANT, FOR THEY THOUGHT IT WAS AN ANGEL THAT HAD APPEARED UNTO THEM. AND IT CAME TO PASS THAT HE STRETCHED FORTH HIS HAND AND SPOKE UNTO THE PEOPLE, SAYING:

“ BEHOLD, I AM JESUS CHRIST, WHOM THE PROPHETS TESTIFIED SHALL COME INTO THE WORLD. AND BEHOLD, I´M THE LIGHT AND THE LIFE OF THE WORLD; AND I HAVE DRUNK OUT OF THAT BITTER CUP WHICH THE FATHER HATH GIVEN ME, AND HAVE GLORIFIED THE FATHER IN TAKING UPON ME THE SINS OF THE WORLD, IN WHICH I´VE SUFFERED THE WILL OF THE FATHER IN ALL THINGS FROM THE BEGINNING.” AND IT CAME TO PASS THAT WHEN JESUS HAD SPOKEN THESE WORDS THE WHOLE MULTITUDE FELL TO THE EARTH; FOR THEY REMEMBERED THAT IT HAD BEEN PROPHESIED AMONG THEM THAT CHRIST SHOULD SHOW HIMSELF UNTO THEM AFTER HIS ASCENSION INTO HEAVEN. AND THE LORD SAID UNTO NEPHI: “I GIVE UNTO YOU POWER THAT YE SHALL BAPTIZE THESE PEOPLE WHEN I AM AGAIN ASCENDED INTO HEAVEN.” AND AGAIN THE LORD CALLED OTHERS, AND SAID UNTO THEM LIKEWISE; AND HE GAVE UNTO THEM POWER TO BAPTIZE…”(THIRD NEPHI. THE BOOK OF NEPHI 11:8-10).

DESPITE ALL THE DISTORTED INFORMATION IN THE BIBLE WE CAN SAY THAT STUDYING AND MEDITATING ON IT, WITH THE HELP OF PRAYERS IS A FINE WAY TO REACH A DIVINE UNION WITH GOD, OUR FATHER. BEFORE WE START READING THE BIBLE, FOR EXAMPLE IT´S A GOOD IDEA TO SAY “IN THE NAME OF THE FATHER, THE SON AND THE HOLY SPIRIT”. AFTER READING SOME BIBLICAL TEXTS WE CAN END UP SAYING “AMEN, THANK YOU, LORD.” WE CAN ADD MANY MORE PRAYERS AS WE WANT TO. PRAYERS ARE KEY WHEN READING THE BIBLE SINCE THEY HELP US TUNE IN TO GOD, SO THAT GOD CAN PROVIDE US WITH THE MESSAGE WE NEED MORE EFFICIENTLY. “REPEATING WORDS OR SENTENCES SAID BY GOD OR BY JESUS CHRIST, AND MEDITATING ON LITTLE DETAILS ABOUT GOD´S LAWS ARE OTHER WAYS OF COMMUNION WITH THE DIVINE” (HISTORIA DE LA BIBLIA BY KAREN ARMSTRONG). JESUS CHRIST GAVE ALL OF US THE LORD´S PRAYER – THE ONE HE TAUGHT TO HIS DISCIPLES – TO RECITE IT EVERY DAY. LET´S DO IT NOW:

 

OUR FATHER, WHO IS IN HEAVEN,

HOLY IS YOUR NAME;

YOUR KINGDOM COME,

YOUR WILL BE DONE,

ON EARTH AS IT IS IN HEAVEN.

GIVE US THIS DAY OUR DAILY BREAD,

AND FORGIVE US OUR SINS,

AS WE FORGIVE THOSE WHO SIN AGAINST US;

AND LEAD US NOT INTO TEMPTATION,

BUT DELIVER US FROM EVIL. AMEN.

 

SAYING THIS PRAYER – JESUS CHRIST GAVE US – MEANING EVERY WORD WE SAY AND ON A DAILY BASIS MEANS THAT WE FOLLOW GOD´S RULES, AND THAT WE ARE PROTECTED. EVIL IS WATHING OUR STEPS AND TEMPTATIONS ARE AROUND THE CORNER. ONE OF THE MANY TEMPTATIONS OUT THERE IS ABUSING THE HELPLESS, LIKE HUNTERS DO AND LIKE ST. HUBERT USED TO DO KILLING BEAUTIFUL ANIMALS, BEFORE HE REALIZED THE WRONG AND THE EVIL IN HUNTING. “ST. HUBERT OR SAINT HUBERTUS (C. 656-C. 727 BRUSSELS, BELGIUM) CALLED THE “APOSTLE OF THE ARDENNES” WAS THE FIRST BISHOP OF LIÈGE. AS A YOUTH, HE WAS SENT TO THE NEUSTRIAN COURT OF THEUDERIC III AT PARIS, WHERE HIS CHARM AND AGREEABLE ADDRESS LED TO HIS INVESTMENT WITH THE DIGNITY OF “COUNT OF THE PALACE”. LIKE ALL NOBLES OF THE TIME, HE LOVED THE PLEASURES OF “THE CHASE” I.E. HUNTING. HURBERT MARRIED FLORIBANNE, DAUGHTER OF DAGOBERT, COUNT OF LEUVEN, BUT HIS WIFE DIED GIVING BIRTH TO THEIR SON AND HE RETREATED FROM THE COURT, WITHDREW INTO THE FORESTED ARDENNES, AND GAVE HIMSELF UP ENTIRELY TO HUNTING. BUT A GREAT SPIRITUAL REVOLUTION WAS IMMINENT. ON GOOD FRIDAY MORNING, WHEN THE FAITHFUL WERE CROWDING THE CHURCHES, HUBERT SALLIED FORTH TO THE CHASE. AS HE WAS PURSUING A MAGNIFICENT STAG OR HART, THE ANIMAL TURNED AND, AS THE STORY NARRATES, HE WAS ASTOUNDED AT PERCEIVING A CRUCIFIX STANDING BETWEEN ITS ANTLERS WHILE HE HEARD A VOICE SAYING: “HUBERT, UNLESS THOU TURNEST TO THE LORD, AND LEADEST AN HOLY LIFE, THOU SHALT QUICKLY GO DOWN INTO HELL.” HUBERT DISMOUNTED, PROSTRATED HIMSELF AND SAID, “LORD, WHAT WOULDST THOU HAVE ME DO?” HE RECEIVED THE ANSWER, “GO AND SEEK LAMBERT, AND HE WILL INSTRUCT YOU”. HUBERT SET OUT IMMEDIATELY FOR MANSTRICHT, FOR THERE LAMBERT WAS BISHOP. ST. LAMBERT RECEIVED HIM KINDLY AND BECAME HIS SPIRITUAL DIRECTOR. HUBERT NOW RENOUNCED ALL HIS VERY CONSIDERABLE HONOURS, GAVE UP HIS BIRTHRIGHT TO AQUITAINE TO HIS YOUNGER BROTHER ODO, WHOM HE MADE GUARDIAN OF HIS INFANT SON, FLORIBERT, DISTRIBUTED ALL HIS PERSONAL WEALTH AMONG THE POOR, STUDIED FOR THE PRIESTHOOD AND WAS SOON ORDAINED” (ST. EUSTACE AND T. HUBERT: THE PATRON SAINTS OF HUNTING – ROMAN CHRISTENDOM). HUBERT´S TESTIMONY IS MORE THAN RELIABLE. ST. HUBERT´S TESTIMONY AND THE 2 MIRACLES BELOW SHOULD MAKE EVERY SINGLE HUMAN BEING ON EARTH REALIZE GOD EXISTS, IS OMNIPOTENT, OMNIPRESENT AND THEREFORE CAN PERFORM WONDERS AS HE DID WHEN 1. GOD BROUGHT JESUS CHRIST TO LIFE, AND 2. WHEN FEEDING THE MULTITUDE. “THE FIRST MIRACLE” THE FEEDING OF THE 5,000”, IS THE ONLY MIRACLE RECORDED IN ALL 4 CANONICAL GOSPELS: MATTHEW 14: 13-21, MARK 6:31-44, LUKE 9:10-17, AND JOHN 6:5:15. THE FEEDING OF THE 5,000 IS ALSO KNOWN AS THE “MIRACLE OF THE 5 LOAVES AND 2 FISH; BECAUSE THE GOSPEL OF JOHN REPORTS THAT FIVE BARLEY LOAVES AND 2 SMALL FISH SUPPLIED BY A BOY WERE USED BY JESUS TO FEED A MULTITUDE. ACCORDING TO MATTHEW´S GOSPEL, WHEN JESUS HEARD JOHN THE BAPTIST HAD BEEN KILLED, HE WITHDREW BY BOAT PRIVATELY TO A SOLITARY PLACE NEAR BETHSAIDA. THE CROWDS FOLLOWED JESUS ON FOOT FROM THE TOWN. WHEN JESUS LANDED AND SAW A LARGE CROWD, HE HAD COMPASSION ON THEM AND HEALED THEIR SICK. AS EVENING APPROACHED, THE DISCIPLES CAME TO HIM AND SAID, “THIS IS A REMOTE PLACE AND IT´S GETTING LATE. SEND THE CROWDS AWAY, SO THEY CAN GO TO THE VILLAGES AND BUY THEMSELVES SOME FOOD”. JESUS SAID THEY DID NOT NEED TO GO AWAY, AND THEREFORE THE DISCIPLES WERE TO GIVE THEM SOMETHING TO EAT. THEY SAID THEY ONLY HAD 5 LOAVES OF BREAD AND 2 FISH, WHICH JESUS ASKED BE BROUGHT TO HIM. JESUS DIRECTED THE PEOPLE TO SIT DOWN IN GROUPS OF 50 ON THE GRASS, IMPLYING THAT THERE WERE 100 SUCH GROUPS, ACCORDING TO LUKE´S GOSPEL. TAKING THE 5 LOAVES AND THE 2 FISH AND LOOKING UP TO HEAVEN, HE GAVE THANKS AND BROKE THE LOAVES. THEN HE GAVE THEM TO THE DISCIPLES, AND THE DISCIPLES GAVE THEM TO THE PEOPLE. THEY ALL ATE AND WERE SATISFIED, AND THE DISCIPLES PICKED UP 12 BASKETS FULL OF BROKEN PIECES THAT WERE LEFT OVER” (FEEDING THE MULTITUDE –WIKIPEDIA, THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA). 

FAITH IS THE ONLY KEY TO GOD´S HEART. IF WE WIN GOD OVER THROUGH FAITH HE´LL CHOOSE US GIVING US A CALL THROUGH THE HOLY SPIRIT, WHICH WILL WORK WONDERS IN US IF WE ARE HUMBLE, COMPASSIONATE, PATIENT AND LOVING BEINGS. OUR FATHER DESERVES BETTER FROM US. WE ALSO DESERVE BETTER, BUT IT´S US WHO HAVE TO MAKE IT BETTER. THIS WORLD NEEDS GOD´S PEOPLE. WE CAN BE GOD´S EYES. GOD IS WAITING FOR US TO DECODE THE BIBLE, DESPITE ITS DISTORTIONS. GOD IS WAITING FOR US TO DO SOMETHING GOOD EVERY DAY, AND IF POSSIBLE MAKE THE MOST OF ANY CHANCE WE HAVE TO GROW INTO BETTER HUMAN BEINGS. WE CAN FEEL THE JOY WE LOOK FORWARD TO ONCE WE START FOLLOWING GOD´S RULES. THE FOLLOWING LYRICS BY CALLE 13 AND SUNG BY SILVIO RODRIGUEZ TALK ABOUT A BEAUTIFUL SOUL WHO MAKES PEOPLE BE HAPPY SHOWING THEM HER WAY IN LIFE, AND MAKING THEM REALIZE HOW WRONG IT IS TO BE HAPPY AT THE EXPENSE OF WASTE. IT´S A SPANISH SONG BUT I´LL TRANSLATE THE CHORUS FOR ALL OF YOU. HERE IT GOES:

THE MOON COMES FOR A WALK

FOLLOWING YOUR PUPILS,

THE NIGHT GLITTERS ORIGINAL

AFTER YOU LOOK AT IT.

NOBODY KNOWS HOW TO BE HAPPY

AT THE EXPENSE OF WASTE ANY MORE,

AND IT´S ALL THANKS TO YOU

AND TO YOUR EYES.

 

I WOULD ADD THE FOLLOWING 2 VERSES TO THIS CHORUS:

 

THANK YOU LORD FOR THOSE EYES,

FULL OF YOUR LOVE,

FULL OF YOUR LIGHT,

FULL OF YOUR COMPASSION

 

THANK YOU LORD FOR SUCH EYES

FOR THIS JOY

WE SHARE WITH OTHER EYES,

FOR OUR EYES ARE FULL OF LOVE LIGHT.

 

THERE ARE MANY EYES OUT THERE WHO THINK THEY ARE HAPPY AT THE EXPENSE OF WASTE, AT THE EXPENSE OF ABUSING OTHERS WITH TAXES, SLAUGHTERING ANIMALS, MISLEADING PEOPLE, REQUESTING PROSTITUTION, CONSCIOUSLY CONTAMINATING FOOD, HEALTH SUPPLEMENTS, CREAMS, ETC. THE HOLY SPIRIT WITHIN GOD´S FOLLOWERS AND THE GOOD ACTS FROM GOD´S SERVANTS ARE WAITING FOR MORE EYES TO SEE THROUGH THEIR EYES, TO SEE THE WORD, THE LIGHT AND THE LIFE. THAT´S 3 IN 1. THE BIBLE GIVES US GUIDANCE AND ITS ESSENCE IS OBSERVING THE 10 COMMANDMENTS, BEING FAITHFUL, DOING ONTO OTHERS AS WE WANT THEM TO DO ONTO US, PRAYING TO GOD FERVENTLY CONCENTRATING ON CLEAR, PURE THOUGHTS OF GOD, BEING HUMBLE, COMPASSIONATE, GENEROUS, HONEST, HARD WORKING AND KIND. WE´VE GOT TO TRUST CHRIST, WE´VE GOT TO ACCEPT HIS LEGACY FOR PROTECTION REASONS. WE´VE GOT TO ABANDON OURSELVES TO GOD BELIEVING HIS COMMANDMENTS AND WHAT WE´VE BEEN ENTRUSTED WITH, GETTING OUR ACT TOGETHER. GOD IS TESTING US ON FAITH EVERY DAY. THE FIRST STEP IN ORDER TO BE GRANTED FAITH IS BEING HUMBLE TO ACCEPT OUR OMNIPOTENT AND OMNIPRESENT FATHER WHO LOVES US, GIVING OURSELVES FREELY TO HIM, BETTING ON OUR FATHER´S GOODNESS. FAITH IMPLIES BETTING ON SOMEONE UNKNOWN TO US, AND I AM BETTING ON ALL OF YOU RIGHT NOW, HOW COOL IS THAT?

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

DARE BE AN HHO!

THERE ARE SO MANY IMPORTANT THINGS THAT PASS UNNOTICED BEFORE OUR EYES THAT IT´S WORTH MENTIONING AT LEAST ONE, THE MOST RELEVANT ONE OF ALL. WE ARE TALKING ABOUT THE KEY FACT IN THE WORLD HISTORY: THE DEATH OF OUR LORD AND SAVIOR JESUS CHRIST.

WHEN WE ARE BORN WE´RE NEITHER SUPERIOR BEINGS NOR INFERIOR BEINGS. BECOMING A SUPERIOR BEING IMPLIES GETTING TO KNOW ONESELF AND BEING IN DAILY CONTACT WITH OUR LORD EVERY DAY THROUGH DEEP THOUGHTS, PRAYERS AND AS MANY GOOD ACTS ON OUR PART AS WE CAN. BEING AN INFERIOR BEING IMPLIES THAT THE PERSON HASN´T DEVELOPED ALL HIS POTENTIAL IN ORDER TO REACH HIS SOURCE OF SPIRITUAL ENERGY WHICH IS GOD, INSIDE HIMSELF AND WHOSE VOICE TELLS HIM TO BE HUMBLE, GENEROUS, LOYAL, HONEST, HARD-WORKING, PURE AND KIND TO AS MANY PEOPLE AS HE CAN. INFERIOR BEINGS DECIDE TO STAY IN THEIR CONFORT ZONE AND DON´T BOTHER TO GO ANY FURTHER THAN THEIR MATERIAL LIFE. THEY LIVE WITH WHAT THE MATERIAL WORLD OFFERS THEM AND AREN´T BRAVE ENOUGH, HUMBLE, NOR GENEROUS ENOUGH TO WANT TO GET TO KNOW AND HELP OUR GOD FATHER.

DURING THE HOLY WEEK IS WHEN WE REMINISCE JESUS CHRIST´S DEATH BUT MOST PEOPLE GO ON HOLIDAYS AND IGNORE THE RELEVANCE OF THIS VERY DAY. THEY IGNORE THAT EACH OF US IS SUPPOSED TO BE ACCOMPANYING JESUS CHRIST, SPECIALLY ON GOOD THURSDAY, GOOD FRIDAY AND SATURDAY UP TO NOON, WHEN WE REMINISCE OUR LORD´S RESURRECTION. WHAT JESUS CHRIST WANTS FROM EACH ONE OF US DURING THOSE THREE HOLY DAYS IS TO ACCOMPANY HIM AND OFFER JESUS CHRIST´S PAIN FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION AND THEREFORE FOR OUR OWN REDEMPTION. JESUS CHRIST DOESN´T WANT ANY OF US TO LISTEN TO MUSIC NOR DANCE DURING THESE HOLY DAYS SINCE IT WOULD BE AN OFFENSE, AND NONE OF US WANTS TO OFFEND OUR LORD. IT IS CLEAR THAT, ALTHOUGH THE FACT OF JESUS CHRIST BEING KILLED AND YET RESURRECTING ON THE THIRD DAY IS THE MOST IMPORTANT EVENT IN THE WORLD HISTORY, IT IS IGNORED BY MANY SINCE MANY DANCE AND LISTEN TO MUSIC DURING THOSE 3 DAYS AND DON´T EVEN ACCOMPANY OUR LORD, NOR SAY ANY PRAYERS TO OUR LORD FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION AND THEREFORE FOR THEIRS. IT´S HIGH TIME THAT WE START TO DO THE RIGHT THING, MY BROTHERS.

IN THE 2016 MOVIE 13 HOURS BY MICHAEL BAY WE SAW HOW A GROUP OF MEN ASSIGNED TO THE AMERICAN COMPOUND IN LIBYA ACTED AS HEROES WHO HAD THE GUTS TO DO WHAT OTHERS WOULDN´T HAVE DONE GIVEN THE HORRIBLE CIRCUMSTANCES THEY HAD TO FACE AND BEAR, DURING SEPTEMBER 11, 2012 BENGHAZI ATTACK. THIS SECURITY TEAM HAD SUCH MORAL GROUNDING THAT THEY WERE LOYAL TO ONE ANOTHER AND TO ALL THE GOOD PEOPLE AROUND THEM, BEING READY TO GIVE THEIR LIVES AS SOME CERTAINLY DID. THESE HEROES DIDN´T CHOOSE TO HAVE TO DEAL WITH SUCH A TERRIBLE SITUATION WHERE THEY COULDN´T TELL WHO WAS AN ENEMY OR NOT AND YET THEY GAVE IT ALL, BEARING THE ANGUISH IT IMPLIES WHEN A BAND OF ENEMIES WERE TRYING TO MAKE THEM BELIEVE THEY WERE FRIENDS TO GET THEM OUT OF THEIR CAR SO THAT THEY COULD KILL THEM. THESE HEROES DIDN´T TAKE THE BAIT AND INCREDIBLY MANAGED TO FLEE. THESE HEROES WERE READY TO DIE IN ORDER TO SAVE THE PEOPLE AROUND THEM, OUT OF DUTY, GENEROSITY, COMPASSION AND LOYALTY. THIS MORAL GROUNDING COMES FROM GOD. THESE HEROES DIDN´T TAKE THE BAIT OF FEAR AND SELFISHNESS. MANY PEOPLE ARE DECEIVED BY ARROGANCE AND GREED, AND THEREFORE IN DOING SO THEY START WORKING AGAINST GOD AND IT IS THEN WHEN THERE´S NO WAY THAT THINGS CAN GO RIGHT FOR THEM NOR FOR THEIR CHILDREN.

EACH ONE OF US IS LOST IN THE MIDDLE OF NOWHERE IF WE DON´T LOVE GOD. WHAT WE MEAN BY THAT IS THAT THE IMPOSSIBLE CAN BE POSSIBLE THANKS TO THE LOVE OF GOD. AND HOW DO WE GET THE LOVE OF GOD THEN? WELL, EACH ONE OF US CAN WIN GOD OVER BY BEING PURE AND GENEROUS BEINGS OFFERING OUR DAILY SUFFERING TO GOD FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION AND FOR OURS, NOT REJECTING IT. THIS IS THE KEY MYSTERY WE´VE GOT TO UNDERSTAND AND PUT INTO PRACTICE DAILY.

WE´VE HEARD THE WORD “REDEMPTION” MANY TIMES BUT NOONE REALLY EVER TOLD US WHAT IT IS ALL ABOUT. THE TRUTH OF THE MATTER IS THAT THERE IS SUFFERING IN THE WORLD AND IN EACH OF OUR LIVES. EACH ONE OF US BEARS ITS OWN PAIN. SO WHAT DO WE DO WITH IT? DO WE ENDURE IT AND THAT´S IT? WELL, WE´LL BE BETTER OFF IF WE DO SOMETHING ELSE WITH IT, EVEN THOUGH NONE OF US FINDS IT EASY TO DO WHEN PAIN IS ALREADY HERE. SINCE REDEMPTION IS SUFFERING THAT CAN PARTIALLY CUT THE PUNISHMENT EACH OF US HAS, FOR THE SINS OUR GENERATIONS BACK, OUR PARENTS AND OURSELVES COMMITTED AT SOME POINT IN PREVIOUS YEARS, THE SMART THING TO DO IS TO OFFER UP THAT PAIN, NO MATTER HOW UNFAIR IT MIGHT BE, TO OUR LORD, IN UNION WITH THE PASSION OF JESUS CHRIST. WHY? BECAUSE THAT´S THE WAY IT IS, THAT´S THE WAY GOD WANTED IT TO BE. THAT´S A MYSTERY FOR EACH ONE OF US TO UNDERSTAND AND WE´RE NOT ENTRUSTED TO UNDERSTAND IT BUT TO BELIEVE IT SINCE WE LOVE GOD WHO IS SUPREME LOVE. SAY RIGHT NOW WE´RE BEARING THE UNBEARABLE, WHICH WE DON´T DESERVE, LIKE IN MOST CASES – SINCE WE IGNORE WHAT OUR ANCESTORS DID OR DIDN´T DO – . WELL, THE FIRST THING WE SHOULD DO IS START PRAYING AND OFFER UP THAT TERRIBLE AFFLICTION WE FEEL TO JESUS CHRIST AT THE SAME TIME THAT WE VISUALIZE THE PAIN OF THE 5 WOUNDS OF JESUS CHRIST. THIS IS WHAT GOD WANTS US TO DO WITH WHATEVER SUFFERING WE BEAR, THAT IS, OFFER IT UP TO JESUS CHRIST, UNITED TO THAT OF OUR LORD´S PASSION. CERTAINLY, OUR LORD´S PASSION, THE CROSS, THE 5 WOUNDS OF JESUS IS THE ONLY WAY FOR US TO BE PARTIALLY FREED OF SOME OF OUR SINS, AND AT THE SAME TIME BE CLOSER TO OUR LORD SINCE WE ARE PUTTING OURSELVES IN JESUS CHRIST´S SHOES WHEN WE REMINISCE HIS PASSION AND WE FEEL THE AFFLICTION CLOSE TO OUR HEART. WHEN WE COMMIT A SIN, GO TO CONFESSION AND ASK FOR FORGIVENESS WE THINK EVERYTHING WILL GO ALL RIGHT AS LONG AS WE DON´T DO ANY HARM TO OTHERS ANY MORE. HOWEVER, THAT´S NOT QUITE RIGHT SINCE MOST OF US HERE ARE DEALING WITH RETRIBUTION, EVEN THOUGH WE DON´T KNOW ABOUT IT. SINCE RETRIBUTION IS A FACT WE CAN STATE THAT MOST OF US SUFFER DURING OUR LIVES AND SO WE NEED REDEMPTION IN ORDER TO REDUCE OUR PUNISHMENT AS MUCH AS WE CAN. WHETHER SUFFERING COMES AS STIGMATA, PSYCHOLOGICAL TORTURE OR ANY OTHER WAY WHAT IS KEY FOR US TO HELP OURSELVES EASE THAT PAIN IS TO SUFFER IN UNION WITH JESUS CHRIST FOR THE REDEMPTION OF HUMANITY, AND SO OTHER NOBLE CAUSES LIKE OURS AND OUR DEAR ONES´ WILL BE INCLUDED THERE ONCE WE DO IT AS WE ARE TOLD TO.

THERE ARE PEOPLE WHO HAVE THE 5 WOUNDS OF JESUS CHRIST – STIGMATICS – AND SO IT IS SAID THAT THEY HAVE BEEN GRANTED A GIFT. WHY IS IT CALLED A GIFT? BECAUSE ALTHOUGH THEY FEEL PAIN THEY OFFER THEIR PAIN TO JESUS CHRIST WHO THEY LOVE SO MUCH, AND AS A RESULT OF OFFERING IT TO JESUS CHRIST THEIR PAIN TURNS INTO PEACE AND JOY. THIS PEACE AND JOY IS THE CONSEQUENCE OF THE ENORMOUS LOVE THEY FEEL FOR OUR LORD. THE FACT THAT SOME SAINTS HAVE RECEIVED THE STIGMATA AND THE FACT THAT THEY ACCEPT THEIR SUFFERING HUMBLY SHOULD MAKE US REFLECT ON HOW MUCH SUFFERING EACH ONE OF US IS WILLING TO ENDURE OFFERING IT TO GOD FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION. WE´VE GOT TO BEAR IN MIND THAT NOONE OF US CAN ESCAPE SUFFERING. EVERYONE ON EARTH, EVEN THE ONES WHO OFTEN SMILE, MOST OF THE TIMES ENDURE SOME KIND OF SUFFERING. WHAT DIFFERENTIATE HAPPY HUMBLE ONES (HHOS) FROM MANY OTHERS IS THEIR APPROACH TO LIFE AND TO SUFFERING. HHOS ACCEPT SUFFERING AND KNOW THE KEY MYSTERY TO WIN GOD OVER IS TO OFFER THAT PAINFUL MOMENT, THAT HORRIBLE SITUATION, THE UNBEARABLE CIRCUMSTANCES THEY SOMETIMES FACE TO JESUS CHRIST FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION. THE BEST THING WE CAN DO IS DARE BE AN HHO, AND ALSO VISUALIZE JESUS CHRIST ON THE CROSS WITH THE 5 WOUNDS AT THE SAME TIME WE BEAR THE UNBEARABLE, AND AT THE SAME TIME THAT WE TRULY OFFER THAT TERRIBLE PAIN TO OUR LORD, TO OUR SAVIOR FOR THE HUMAN REDEMPTION. BY BEARING SOME OF CHRIST´S SUFFERING WE´LL BE REDUCING OUR PUNISHMENT, WHATEVER THAT MAY BE, AND THAT WILL MEAN FEELING MUCH BETTER WITHIN OURSELVES, RESULTING IN A RENEWAL AS TO THE WAY WE FACE SUFFERING AND PAIN. WE CAN´T EMPHASIZE ENOUGH THE IMPORTANCE OF PUTTING INTO PRACTICE THE CONTENT OF THOSE UNDERLINED LINES ABOVE FOR THE WELL-BEING OF EACH OF US.

REGARDING THE DAILY SUFFERING WE ´RE SUPPOSED TO OFFER GOD, SINCE WE´RE HIS SERVANTS, TAKING STIGMATICS INTO CONSIDERATION WILL HELP US FACE SUFFERING AS IT IS EXPECTED FROM US. BEFORE STARTING WITH THE STIGMATICS LET´S BE CLEAR AS TO THE DEFINITION OF STIGMATA. “STIGMATA IS A TERM USED BY MEMBERS OF THE CHRISTIAN FAITH TO DESCRIBE BODY MARKS, SORES OR SENSATIONS OF PAIN IN LOCATIONS CORRESPONDING TO THE CRUCIFIXION WOUNDS OF JESUS CHRIST, SUCH AS THE HANDS, WRISTS AND FEET. AN INDIVIDUAL BEARING THE WOUNDS OF STIGMATA IS REFERRED TO AS A STIGMATIST OR A STIGMATIC. THE TERM ORIGINATES FROM THE LINE AT THE END OF SAINT PAUL´S LETTER TO THE GALATIANS WHERE HE SAYS, I BEAR ON MY BODY THE MARKS OF JESUS”. REPORTED CASES OF STIGMATA TAKE VARIOUS FORMS. MANY SHOW SOME OR ALL OF FIVE HOLY WOUNDS THAT WERE, ACCORDING TO THE BIBLE, INFLICTED ON JESUS DURING HIS CRUCIFIXION: WOUNDS IN THE WRISTS AND FEET, FROM NAILS; AND IN THE SIDE, FROM A LANCE. SOME STIGMATICS DISPLAY WOUNDS TO THE FOREHEAD SIMILAR TO THOSE CAUSED BY THE CROWN OF THORNS.” (STIGMATA. WIKIPEDIA, THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA).

ONLY A DIVINE FORCE, A PERFECT BEING SUCH AS GOD IS ABLE TO SEE INSIDE EVERY SINGLE PERSON ON EARTH, AND YET, THOUGH PERFECT AND HIGH ABOVE US, HE´S OUR FATHER AND SEES ALL THE BABIES AND CHILDREN WHO ARE BEING ABUSED, ALL THE TEENAGERS WHO ARE BEING FOOLED AND PUSHED INTO SEX, DRUGS AND ALCOHOL, ALL THE GOOD, INNOCENT HUMAN BEINGS WHO ARE BEING KIDNAPPED, GIVEN SHOTS TO BE PUSHED INTO HUMAN TRAFFICKING, MADE PRISONERS AND KILLED, ALL THE TERROR ATTACKS CARRIED OUT BY THE CMTGS (CONTROL  MENTALITY TYPE GUYS) TO BRING DOWN GOD´S FOLLOWERS´ LIVES AS MUCH AS THEY CAN AND AS A RESULT OF IT, BRING DOWN AS MANY PEOPLE AS THEY CAN SO THAT THE CMTGS CALL THE SHOTS, REGARDLESS THE PAIN THEY TRIGGER TO GOD AND TO ALL THE GOOD PEOPLE WHO OBEY OUR LORD´S RULES. ONLY A DIVINE FORCE, A PERFECT BEING SUCH AS GOD CAN BEAR BILLIONS OF UNBEARABLE SITUATIONS WHERE INNOCENT BEINGS ARE BEING ABUSED, AND YET THIS DIVINE FORCE, WE CALL GOD, WEEPS AND BLEEDS FOR US, BECAUSE WE ARE HIS CHILDREN WHO IGNORE HIS FATHER, AND BECAUSE HE WANTS TO SEE US HAPPY, NOT SUFFERING AND ULTIMATELY CONDEMNED FOR ETERNITY. “IN COCHABAMBA, BOLIVIA, THERE´S A STATUE OF CHRIST THAT HAS WEPT AND CONTINUES TO BLEED” (BACKGROUND – LOVE AND MERCY.ORG). ”THE STATUE FORMS TEARS OF HUMAN BLOOD AT THE EYES THAT WEEP DOWN THE FACE, CAUGHT ON CAMERA IN THE VIDEO. THE BLOOD HAS BEEN TESTED AND FOUND TO BE HUMAN. A LABORATORY REPORT PUT TOGETHER IN APRIL 1995 OUTLINED THE FACT THAT THE LIQUID ANALYZED WAS HEMOGLOBIN, HETEROPROTEIN OF A RED COLOR THAT EXISTS IN HEMATOID, OR RED GLOBULES. THE BLOOD CONTAINED A PIECE OF THORN, IDENTIFIED AS A THORN FROM THE HAWTHORNE BUSH, BELIEVED TO HAVE BEEN THE TYPE OF THORN USED TO MAKE THE CROWN OF THORNS FOR JESUS OF NAZARETH (INTERESTINGLY, A THORN WAS ALSO FOUND IN THE STIGMATIC WOUNDS OF “FRANCIS”, A STIGMATIST IN THE NORTHERN UNITED STATES). THIS SORROWFUL IMAGE WEEPS AND BLEEDS, IN A WAY THAT SCIENCE CANNOT UNDERSTAND. THE IMAGE IS OF GOD IN THE FORM OF JESUS CHRIST, NOT PEACEFULLY ENTHRONED IN HIS GLORY AS THE LORD OF HEAVEN, BUT AS THE VICTIM THAT MAN REJECTED AND CRUCIFIED 2000 YEARS AGO. WE´RE LEFT TO REFLECT AND TO WONDER ABOUT THE TEARS THAT MYSTERIOUSLY CRY OUT FROM THE STONE CAST IN CHRIST´S IMAGE. COULD IT BE, AS THE THEOLOGIANS SUGGEST, AN EXPRESSION OF THE HEARTFELT SORROW OF OUR CREATOR WHO IS WOUNDED BY THIS WORLD´S REJECTION OF HIM TODAY? DURING THE MAKING OF THE DOCUMENTARY, ANNE MONTGOMERY OF GENTEST LABORATORY, THE SCIENTIST WHO HAD CARRIED OUT THE DNA TESTS OF THE “BLOOD” FROM THE STATUE, WAS ASKED “HOW CAN YOU EXPLAIN HUMAN BLOOD COMING FROM A PLASTER STATUE?” SHE SAID “I CAN´T. YOU´D BETTER ASK A THEOLOGIAN”. THE QUESTION WAS PUT TO A THEOLOGIAN WHO RESPONDED BY DRAWING OUR ATTENTION TO THE GOSPEL OF LUKE, CHAPTER 19, VERSE 35 FOR THE EXPLANATION: “SO THEY TOOK THE COLT TO JESUS AND, THROWING THEIR CLOAKS ON ITS BACK, THEY LIFTED JESUS ON TO IT. AS HE MOVED OFF, THEY SPREAD THEIR CLOAKS IN THE ROAD, AND NOW, AS HE WAS APPROACHING THE DOWNWARD SLOPE OF THE MOUNT OF OLIVES, THE WHOLE GROUP OF DISCIPLES JOYFULLY BEGAN TO PRAISE GOD AT THE TOP OF THEIR VOICES FOR ALL THE MIRACLES THEY HAD SEEN. THEY CRIED OUT: “BLESSED IS HE WHO IS COMING AS KING IN THE NAME OF THE LORD! PEACE IN HEAVEN AND GLORY IN THE HIGHEST HEAVENS! SOME PHARISEES IN THE CROWD SAID TO HIM “MASTER, REPROVE YOUR DISCIPLES”, BUT HE ANSWERED “I TELL YOU, IF THESE KEEP SILENCE, THE STONES WILL CRY OUT”. THE THEOLOGIAN WENT ON TO EXPLAIN THAT THE PHARISEES WANTED TO SILENCE THE VOICES THAT WERE PROCLAIMING GOD AND JESUS SAID THAT IF YOU DID NOT PERMIT THEM TO PRAISE GOD THEN THE STONES WOULD DO THIS. HE SAID THAT “I BELIEVE JESUS WAS PROPHESYING THAT THERE WOULD COME A TIME WHEN MAN WOULD NO LONGER PROCLAIM GOD AND THE STONES WOULD CRY OUT IN PROCLAMATION”. HE SAID “WE ARE LIVING IN THOSE TIMES AND THAT THE STATUES OF CHRIST AND THE VIRGIN MARY WEEPING AROUND THE WORLD ARE DOING THE JOB WE SHOULD BE DOING, PROCLAIMING GOD IN THE WORLD, THE REALITY OF GOD, THE SUPERNATURAL, AND WE´RE NOT DOING THAT” (STIGMATIST CATALINA KATYA RIVAS OF COCHABAMBA).

THE FOLLOWING 9 STIGMATICS ARE ONLY SOME OF THE MANY CASES.

1.“CERTAINLY A VERY RECENT AND PROBABLY ONE OF THE BEST DOCUMENTED CASES OF THE STIGMATA WOULD BE THAT OF THE ITALIAN ST. GEMMA GALGANI (1878-1903). GEMMA WAS AN EXTRAORDINARY SAINT WHO LOVED JESUS WITH ALL HER HEART AND SOUL. AT AN EARLY AGE SHE HAD A REMARKABLE PIETY, AND JESUS BEGAN GIVING HER INTERIOR LOCUTION AT AGE 7. AT AGE 20 SHE WAS MIRACULOUSLY CURED OF SPINAL MENINGITIS THROUGH THE HEAVENLY INTERCESSION OF ANOTHER SAINT – GABRIEL POSSENTI C.P.(WHO AT THAT TIME WAS DECLARED VENERABLE) WHO MIRACULOUSLY APPEARED TO GEMMA EACH NIGHT AND ENCOURAGED HER TO MAKE A NOVENA TO THE SACRED HEART OF JESUS. ONE YEAR LATER SHE WAS GIVEN THE STIGMATA BY JESUS IN THE PRESENCE OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN MARY AND HER GUARDIAN ANGEL. ONE DAY AFTER HOLY COMMUNION, SHORTLY AFTER HER MIRACULOUS CURE, JESUS SAID TO HER: “COURAGE GEMMA! I AWAIT YOU ON CALVARY ON THE MOUNT THAT I SHALL SHOW YOU”. THE SUFFERING THROUGH WHICH SHE HAD PASSED DURING HER ILLNESS HAD PURIFIED HER SOUL, AND THE HOUR WAS APPROACHING IN WHICH SHE WOULD REALIZE THE NATURE OF HER VOCATION. IT WAS JUNE 8TH, 1899, THE VIGIL OF THE FEAST OF THE SACRED HEART. THAT MORNING AFTER HOLY COMMUNION JESUS REVEALED TO HER THAT IN THE EVENING OF THAT DAY HE WOULD GIVE HER AN EXTRAORDINARY GRACE. SHE WENT AT ONCE TO TELL HER CONFESSOR, AND THEN CONFESSION TO RECEIVE ABSOLUTION, THAT SHE MIGHT BE PREPARED AS MUCH AS POSSIBLE FOR WHAT JESUS WAS TO DO NEXT. THEN, WITH HER SOUL FLOODED WITH A WONDERFUL SENSE OF PEACE AND JOY, SHE RETURNED HOME (MIRACLES OF THE SAINTS: THE STIGMATA). GEMMA HERSELF RELATED WHAT HAPPENED THAT NIGHT:”IT WAS THURSDAY EVENING, THE VIGIL OF THE FEAST OF THE SACRED HEART OF JESUS. SUDDENLY, MORE QUICKLY INDEED THAN USUAL, I FELT A PIERCING SORROW FOR MY SINS; BUT SO INTENSE THAT I´VE NEVER SINCE EXPERIENCED THE LIKE AGAIN. THE SORROW WAS SO GREAT THAT I THOUGHT I HAD TO DIE. AFTER THAT I FELT ALL THE POWERS OF MY SOUL IN RECOLLECTION. MY INTELLECT KNEW NOTHING EXCEPT MY SINS AND OFFENSES AGAINST GOD; MY MEMORY RECALLED EACH ONE, AND MADE ME SEE ALL THE TORMENTS JESUS HAD ENDURED TO SAVE ME. MY WILL MOVED ME TO DETEST THEM AND BE WILLING TO SUFFER ANYTHING IN EXPIATION. A WORLD OF THOUGHTS SURGED THROUGH MY MIND, THOUGHTS OF SORROW, LOVE, HOPE AND ENCOURAGEMENT. THIS WAS QUICKLY FOLLOWED BY A RAPTURE, AND I FOUND MYSELF IN THE PRESENCE OF MY HEAVENLY MOTHER WITH MY GUARDIAN ANGEL ON HER RIGHT. HE COMMANDED ME TO MAKE AN ACT OF CONTRITION, AND WHEN I HAD DONE SO MY MUM SAID TO ME: “DAUGHTER, IN THE NAME OF JESUS I FORGIVE YOU ALL YOUR SINS”, AND ADDED: “JESUS, MY SON LOVES YOU VERY MUCH, AND WISHES TO GIVE YOU A GRACE. WOULD YOU KNOW HOW TO BECOME WORTHY OF IT?”. IN MY MYSERY I KNEW NOT WHAT TO ANSWER. THEN SHE CONTINUED: “ I WILL BE A MOTHER TO YOU; WILL YOU SHOW YOURSELF A TRUE DAUGHTER?”, AND AFTER SAYING THIS SHE OPENED HER MANTLE AND COVERED ME WITH IT. AT THAT INSTANT JESUS APPEARED WITH ALL HIS WOUNDS OPEN; BUT BLOOD NO LONGER ISSUED FROM THESE WOUNDS, BUT FLAMES OF FIRE. IN AN INSTANT THOSE FLAMES CAME AND TOUCHED MY HANDS, FEET AND HEART. I FELT I WAS DYING AND SHOULD HAVE FALLEN HAD NOT MY MUM HELD ME UP, I REMAINING ALL THE WHILE COVERED WITH HER MANTLE, AND THUS I REMAINED FOR SEVERAL HOURS. AFTERWARDS MY MUM KISSED ME ON THE FOREHEAD, THEN EVERYTHING VANISHED AND I FOUND MYSELF KNEELING ON THE GROUND, BUT STILL FEELING INTENSE PAIN IN MY HANDS, FEET AND HEART. I GOT UP TO GO TO BED AND SAW BLOOD FLOWING FROM THOSE PLACES WHERE I FELT THE PAIN. I COVERED THEM UP AS BEST I COULD AND THEN, WITH THE HELP OF MY GUARDIAN ANGEL, GOT INTO BED” (AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF ST. GEMMA GALGANI). “FROM THAT DAY ON IT CONTINUED TO REPEAT ITSELF, FROM THURSDAY EVENING TOWARDS EIGHT O´CLOCK AND CONTINUED UNTIL THREE O´CLOCK ON FRIDAY AFTERNOON. AND WHAT ALWAYS PRECEDED THE ECSTASY WAS THE RECOLLECTION OF SPIRIT. THE DISAPPEARANCE OF THE WOUND WAS NO LESS REMARKABLE, FOR AS SOON AS THE ECSTASY ON FRIDAY WAS OVER THE FLOW OF BLOOD FROM ALL 5 WOUNDS CEASED, THE RAW FLESH HEALED, AND BY THE FOLLOWING DAY, OR AT LATEST BY SUNDAY, NOT A TRACE OF THOSE WOUNDS REMAINED. ONLY THE PLACES WHERE THE WOUNDS HAD BEEN SHOWED A WHITISH COLOR WHICH INDICATED WHERE THEY HAD BEEN THE DAY BEFORE” (VEN.FATHER GERMANO,C.P. LIFE OF ST. GEMMA GALGANI).

 2.SAINT FRANCIS OF ASSISI (1181-1226).

“IT WAS DURING THE APPARITION OF AN ANGEL IN A RELIGIOUS ECSTASY WHILE PRAYING ON MOUNT LA VERNA, SEPTEMBER 14, 1224 WHEN 5 BLEEDING STIGMATA APPEARED ON ST. FRANCIS OF ASSISI´S HANDS, FEET AND IN THE SIDE NEXT TO THE HEART. THIS STRANGE PHENOMENON WENT WITH HIM FOR THE REST OF HIS DAYS. WHEN ST. FRANCIS ASKED JESUS CHRIST WHY HE WAS GOING THROUGH ALL THAT SUFFERING OUR LORD ANSWERED HIM THIS: ”I HAVE GRANTED YOU WITH MY STIGMATA AS EMBLEMS OF MY PASSION; BE THEN THE REFLECTION OF MYSELF FOR EVERYONE”. WE KNOW ALL THIS ABOUT ST. ASSISI BECAUSE HIS FRIEND, FRIAR LEO, USED TO VISIT HIM TO SEE HOW HE WAS DOING. FRIAR LEO WAS WORRIED ABOUT ST. ASSISI´S LONELINESS AND FASTING AND WROTE ABOUT ALL THIS AND MORE. FRIAR LEO TELLS US THAT ONE DAY AN ANGEL APPEARED TO ST. ASSISI AND TOLD HIM: “I´M COMING TO CONFORT YOU AND INFORM YOU THAT IT´S IMPORTANT THAT YOU GET READY WITH HUMBLENESS AND PATIENCE, SINCE YOU´RE GOING TO BE GRANTED SOMETHING PRECIOUS WITH WHICH GOD WANTS YOU TO DO SOMETHING PRECIOUS AS WELL”. ANOTHER DAY, JUST BEFORE DAWN, ST. ASSISI WAS PRAYING AND TELLING JESUS CHRIST THESE WORDS: “MY LORD, I WISH I COULD FEEL THE PAIN YOU FELT AT TIME OF THE CRUCIFIXION AND ALSO THAT ENDLESS LOVE YOU FELT WHEN YOU OFFERED YOURSELF TO SUFFER FOR ALL OF US”. SUDDENLY, ST. ASSISI SAW A 6-WING SERAPHIN COMING DOWN FROM HEAVEN, AND OUT OF THE BLUE HE SAW HE WAS STARTING TO RECEIVE NAIL WOUNDS IN HIS HANDS AND FEET. THOSE WOUNDS RESEMBLED THE ONES INFLICTED BY JESUS CHRIST´S CROWN OF THORNS. SIMILARLY, A BLEEDING STIGMA APPEARED IN HIS SIDE, AND THIS ONE STAINED HIS ROBE WITH THE BLOOD. FRIAR LEO SAID THAT DAY, WHEN SUCH MYSTIC EVENT TOOK PLACE, SOME SUPERNATURAL PHENOMENA HAPPENED AS WELL WHICH SOME SHEPHERDS WITNESSED WHILE THEY WERE IN THE MOUNTAINS. THESE SHEPHERDS SAW GLEAMING FLAMES AND SPARKLES IN THE DARK. THEY SAID THAT THE MOUNTAINS WERE SO MUCH LIT UP IN THE MIDDLE OF THE NIGHT THAT THEY THOUGHT THE SUN HAD RISEN ALREADY AGAIN AND SO THEY DECIDED TO MOVE THE SHEEP TO NEW PASTURES. THE FOLLOWING MORNING WHEN FRIAR LEO WENT TO TAKE ST. ASSISI SOMETHING TO EAT HE FOUND ST. ASSISI WAS FEELING FRIGHTENED DUE TO WHAT HAD HAPPENED TO HIS HANDS, FEET AND SIDE. ST. FRANCIS OF ASSISI SHOWED FRIAR LEO HIS STIGMATA AND THIS WAY FRIAR LEO WAS ABLE TO CHECK THE VERACITY OF SUCH EVENTS. FROM THAT DAY ON FRIAR LEO BECAME ST. FRANCIS´ MALE NURSE UP TO THE DAY HE DIED, OCTOBER 3, 1226” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA). WE CAN SEE ST. FRANCIS OF ASSISI WITH THE 5 WOUNDS IN THE PAINTING RECEIVING THE STIGMATA BY EL GRECO, WHERE THE SAINT HAS THAT VISION OF JESUS´ PASSION, AND AT THE SAME TIME ST. ASSISI RECEIVES THE STIGMATA. JUSEPE DE RIBERA, STEFANO DI GIOVANNI, CARAVAGGIO, DOMENICO VENEZIANO AND JAN VAN EYCK PAINTED ST. FRANCIS OF ASSISI IN ECSTASY AS WELL.

 3.SAINT PAUL (C.5 – C. 67).

“ IN GL. 6,17 ST. PAUL LETS US KNOW THAT HE HIMSELF SUFFERED FORM THESE STIGMATA WHICH ST. FRANCIS OF ASSISI HAD TOO. NOT ALL THEOLOGISTS AGREE WITH THAT STATEMENT SINCE MANY THINK THEY WEREN´T STIGMATA BUT WOUNDS AND BLOWS AS A RESULT OF HIS APOSTOLIC MINISTRY. THE GREEK ROMAN SOCIETY USED TO SCAR THEIR SLAVES AS A SIGN OF BELONGING TO THEIR OWNER. SURE ENOUGH, ST. PAUL FELT HE WAS JESUS CHRIST´S SERVANT AT ALL TIMES” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA).

 4.BLESSED PADRE PIO OF PIETRELCINA (1887-1968).

“HE WAS A PRIEST WHOSE STIGMATA WERE SEEN BY THOUSANDS OF BELIEVERS DURING HIS CHURCH SERVICES AND STAYED IN HIS HANDS, FEET AND SIDE FOR 50 YEARS. DURING HIS CANONIZATION POPE JOHN PAUL II SAID ABOUT HIM THE FOLLOWING: “HIS STIGMATA WERE THE DIVINE MERCY´S SIGN WHICH REDEEMED THE WORLD THROUGH JESUS CHRIST BEING CRUCIFIED. THOSE WOUNDS, WHICH EVERYONE COULD SEE, TALKED ABOUT THE LOVE GOD FEELS FOR EACH ONE OF US. FATHER PIO NEVER WANTED TO SHOW HIS WOUNDS. SUFFERING FROM THEM UPSET HIM, BOTH PHYSICALLY AND PSYCHOLOGICALLY, AND ACCEPTED THEM HUMBLY AND WITH A LOT OF EMBARRASEMENT. WHEN PEOPLE MANAGED TO NOTICE THEM THEY WOULD SUGGEST THAT SUCH WOUNDS MUST HAVE BEEN THE RESULT OF EXCESSIVE CONCENTRATION DURING CHRIST´S PASSION. FATHER PIO ANSWERED THEM THIS WAY: “GO TO THE COUNTRY AND STARE AT A BULL. KEEP YOUR MIND CAREFULLY ON THAT BULL, AND WE´LL SEE WHETHER HORNS GROW ON YOU OR NOT”. FATHER PIO, DEFINITELY HAD A BAD TEMPER” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARIA VALLEJO-NÁGERA). “PADRE PIO´S DEEP WOUNDS, THAT REMAINED OPEN AND UNINFECTED FOR DECADES, HEALED OVER TO NEW PINK FLESH AFTER HE DIED!! IMPOSSIBLE TO EXPLAIN OTHER THAN BY GOD” (THE STIGMATISTS). “SIGNORA CONCETTA BELLARMINI OF S. VITO LANCIANO DECLARES THAT SHE WAS SUDDENLY STRICKEN WITH A BLOOD INFECTION FOLLOWED BY BRONCHIA/PNEUMONIA WITH A VERY HIGH FEVER. SHE WAS REDUCED TO SUCH A STATE THAT THE DOCTORS DESPAIRED OF EVER SAVING HER. THE FLESH HAD BECOME YELLOW FORM THE INFECTION WHICH HAD SPREAD THROUGHOUT HER BODY. A RELATIVE URGED HER TO DIRECT HER PRAYERS TO PADRE PIO. SHE PRAYED TO HIM WHOM SHE HAD NEVER SEEN, WHEN SUDDENLY IN FULL DAYLIGHT A STIGMATIZED MONK APPEARED TO HER AND SMILING BLESSED HER WITHOUT TOUCHING HER AS HE STOOD IN THE MIDDLE OF THE ROOM. THE WOMAN ASKED HIM IF HIS APPEARANCE SIGNIFIED THE GRACE FOR THE CONVERSION OF HER CHILDREN, OR ELSE THE GRACE FOR HER PHYSICAL CURE. THEN PADRE ANSWERED, “ SUNDADY MORNING YOU WILL BE CURED”, THEN HE VANISHED FROM THE ROOM, LEAVING AN ODOR OF PERFUME WHICH THE SERVANT GIRL ALSO SMELT. AFTER THIS VISIT HER FLESH TURNED NORMAL COLOR, THE FEVER CEASED AND IN A FEW DAYS HER HEALTH WAS COMPLETELY RESTORED. SHE WENT WITH HER BROTHER TO SAN GIOVANNI ROTONDO TO SEE IF PADRE PIO WAS THE ONE WHO APPEARED TO HER. WHEN SHE ARRIVED AT THE MONASTERY AND SAW PADRE PIO IN THE CHURCH SHE TURNED TO HER BROTHER AND SAID, “THERE HE IS, HE IS THE ONE”. ONE OF PADRE PIO´S QUOTES IS THE FOLLOWING: “LOVE JESUS, LOVE HIM VERY MUCH, BUT TO DO THIS, BE READY TO LOVE SACRIFICE MORE”(MIRACLES OF THE SAINTS: BILOCATION OF ST. PADRE PIO).

 5.ST. CATHERINE OF SIENA (1347-1380).

“SHE´S ANOTHER STIGMATIC WHOSE WOUNDS WEREN´T SEEN BY HUMAN BEINGS BUT SHE INDEED ENDURED THEM. SHE RECEIVED THE STIGMATA IN 1375” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA).

 6.SOR PATROCINIO (1811-1891).

“SHE´S THE TOP 19TH CENTURY STIGMATIC. SHE´S ALSO KNOWN AS “THE NUN OF THE WOUNDS”. SHE WAS REALLY BEAUTIFUL. SHE WAS BORN INTO A NOBLE FAMILY IN CUENCA (SPAIN), AT THE HEIGHT OF THE SPANISH WAR OF INDEPENDENCE. SHE WENT THROUGH A LOT DURING HER ENTIRE LIFE. HER MOTHER ABANDONED HER IN THE MIDDLE OF THE SNOW WHEN SHE WAS BORN. IT WAS HIS FATHER WHO FOUND HER, LIKE A MIRACLE, WHEN HE WAS GOING BACK HOME AFTER THE WAR OF INDEPENDENCE. HER MOTHER, SISTER AND MANY PEOPLE GAVE HER A HARD TIME, MAKING HER FEEL MISERABLE BEYOND WORDS. QUEEN ELIZABETH II AND HER HUSBAND KING FRANCIS DE ASÍS DE BORBÓN, BOTH ADORED SOR PATROCINIO AND TRIED TO PROTECT HER ALWAYS. SOME THEOLOGIANS CALLED HER “ST. FATHER PIO´S FORERUNNER” SINCE BOTH FOUGHT AGAINST THE DEVIL, WHO WOULD TORMENT BOTH OF THEM BEATING THEM UP, AND THIS WENT ON THROUGHOUT THEIR LIVES. IN 1868, REVOLUTION TOOK OVER MONARCHY, AND IT WAS THEN WHEN SOR PATROCINIO WAS PERSECUTED BY MOST EVERYBODY, AND SO SHE HAD TO FLEE TO SAVE HERSELF, AND CARDINAL CILIRIA HELPED HER IN DOING SO, SENDING HER TO FRANCE, WHERE SHE FOUNDED 19 CONVENTS. WITH THE 1874 RESTORATION KING ALFONSO XII TOOK OVER AND HE LET SOR PATROCINIO COME BACK TO SPAIN, WHERE SHE CONTINUED TO FOUND MORE CONVENTS UNTIL HER DEATH IN 1891. THE VIRGIN MARY AND THE ARCHANGEL MICHAEL GRANTED HER WITH A 20 CM-STATUE OF A YOUNG VIRGIN MARY HOLDING A BABY JESUS IN HER ARMS, BOTH DRESSED IN SMART CLOTHES AND BOTH WITH BEJEWELLED CROWNS ON THEIR HEADS, AND THE VIRGIN MARY´S FEET CONTROLLING A DRAGON WHO IS TIED UP TO A CHAIN. THIS STATUE REPRESENTS THE VIRGIN MARY, DEDICATED TO OUR LADY OF OBLIVION, TRIUMPH AND MERCY. THIS STATUE IS AT THE DOME ON TOP OF THE HIGH ALTAR IN THE ORDER OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION IN GUADALAJARA. WE´VE GOT TO SAY THAT THIS SAINT IS EXTRAORDINARILY POWERFUL WHEN WE ASK FOR THER INTERCESSION FROM HEAVEN. THE BEST WAY TO ADDRESS HER IS SHOWN DOWN BELOW: “I BEG YOU, SOR PATROCINIO, FOR A SPECIAL GRACE FROM HEAVEN TO KEEP ME, MY FAMILY, ETC. FROM THIS HARMFUL SITUATION. I ASK FOR YOUR INTERCESSION BEFORE THE VIRGIN OF OBLIVION, TRIUMPH AND MERCY” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA).

 7.THERESE NEUMANN (1898-1962).

“THIS GERMAN LAYPERSON WAS GRANTED THE STIGMATA IN HER HANDS, FEET, SIDE AND FOREHEAD FOR THE FIRST TIME IN 1926. HER CASE WAS THE FIRST ONE TO HAVE AN IMPACT ON WORLD PAPERS” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA). “SHE SAID THAT ON 5 MARCH 1926, THE FIRST FRIDAY OF LENT, A WOUND HAD APPEARED SLIGHTLY ABOVE HER HEART, BUT THAT SHE HAD KEPT THIS SECRET. HOWEVER, SHE DID REPORT A VISION OF JESUS AT MOUNT OLIVET WITH 3 APOSTLES. ON 12 MARCH, SHE SAID SHE HAD ANOTHER VISION OF CHRIST AT MT. OLIVET, ALONG WITH THE CROWNING OF THORNS. SHE ALSO CLAIMED THAT THE WOUND ABOVE HER HEART REAPPEARED ON THIS DAY, AND SHE SPOKE TO HER SISTER ABOUT IT. SHE CLAIMED THE WOUND ALSO REAPPEARED ON FRIDAY OF THE FOLLOWING WEEK. BY 26 MARCH, SHE WAS CLAIMING THE SAME WOUND ACCOMPANIED BY A VISION OF CHRIST BEARING THE CROSS AND A SIMILAR WOUND ON HER LEFT HAND. BLOOD WAS OBSERVED ON HER CLOTHING, AND SHE NO LONGER ATTEMPTED TO KEEP THE INFORMATION TO HERSELF. ON GOOD FRIDAY, THERESE NEUMANN, ACCORDING TO HER TESTIMONY WITNESSED THE ENTIRE PASSION OF CHRIST IN HER VISIONS. SHE DISPLAYED WOUNDS ON HER HANDS AND FEET ACCOMPANIED BY BLOOD APPARENTLY COMING FROM HER EYES. ON EASTERN SUNDAY, SHE CLAIMED A VISION OF THE RESURRECTION OF CHRIST. FOR SEVERAL CONSECUTIVE FRIDAYS AFTER THAT, SHE STATED SHE WAS EXPERIENCING THE PASSION OF CHRIST, APPARENTLY SUFFERING IN HER OWN BODY ALONG WITH ALL HIS HISTORIC AGONIES. SHE CLAIMED TO HAVE ESPECIALLY SUFFERED THE PASSION ON GOOD FRIDAY EACH YEAR. BY 5 NOVEMBER 1926, SHE DISPLAYED 9 WOUNDS ON HER HEAD AS WELL AS WOUNDS ON HER BACK AND SHOULDERS. ACCORDING TO SEVERAL SOURCES THESE WOUNDS NEVER HEALED OR BECAME INFECTED AND WERE FOUND ON HER BODY AT DEATH” (THERESE NEUMANN-WIKIPEDIA).”THIS HUMBLE WOMAN WAS GRANTED THE GIFT OF VISIONS AND ECSTASY AND WAS ABLE TO STAY IN FINE SHAPE DESPITE THE FACT THAT SHE SUSBSISTED ON THE DAILY EUCHARIST FOR ABOUT 39 YEARS. SHE DIDN´T EAT ANY FOOD NOR DRINK ANY WATER UNTIL HER DEATH” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARÍA VALLEJO-NÁGERA). “RESEARCHER IAN WILSON NOTED THAT “THERESE HAD A VIGOROUS, STOCKY BUILD THROUGHOUT MOST OF THIS TIME, AND ALL REASON TELLS US THAT IT WOULD BE IMPOSSIBLE TO SURVIVE SO LONG WITHOUT FOOD OR DRINK” (THERESE NEUMANN-WIKIPEDIA,THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA).

 8.CATALINA RIVAS.

“SHE´S FROM BOLIVIA AND BEARS STIGMATA ON HER HANDS, FEET, SIDE AND FOREHEAD TODAY. THIS LAYPERSON, WHO DIVORCED HER HUSBAND SOME YEARS AGO, HAD NEVER IMAGINED SOMETHING LIKE THIS COULD HAPPEN TO HER AND SHE TELLS US SO: “I´M A NORMAL WOMAN. I´M NOT A SAINT. I USED TO WORK AS A SECRETARY IN AN OFFICE. I´M A HOUSEWIFE AND A GRANDMOTHER WHO NEVER FINISHED MY HIGHER EDUCATION AND THAT NEVER STUDIED THEOLOGY”. ON THE OTHER HAND, ONE DAY THIS HUMBLE WOMAN BEGAN TO WRITE COMPULSIVELY LOTS OF THEOLOGICAL INFORMATION WHICH SURPASSED HER KNOWLEDGE ON SOME NOTEBOOKS. SHE HAD TURNED 48 THEN AND SINCE THAT TIME SHE HAS WRITTEN LOTS OF NOTEBOOKS, WHERE SHE ANALYZES ESCHATOLOGICAL DEEP TRUTHS, WHICH HAVE BEEN INVESTIGATED BY DOCTORS, THEOLOGISTS AND EXPERT PRIESTS. ON HER WRITINGS THERE ARE PASSAGES IN LATIN, GREEK, POLISH AND OTHER LANGUAGES SHE IGNORES AND WHICH SHE JUST TRANSLITERATES, STATING THIS: “IT´S JESUS WHO DICTATES ME ALL THIS”. WHEN ALL THESE MYSTICAL EVENTS HAPPENED SHE DIDN´T HAVE A STRONG FAITH. SINCE THEN HER FAITH HAS BECOME STRONGER AND STRONGER, AND NOWADAYS SHE PRAYS ON A DAILY BASIS AND WHAT SHE CURRENTLY DOES IS TAKING CARE OF HER FAMILY. THE OPENING OF HER STIGMATA HAS BEEN FILMED AND ANALYZED CLINICALLY. IN SUCH FILMING EVERYONE HAS BEEN ABLE TO SEE HOW IN A FEW MINUTES THE STIGMATA OPEN TO MAKE WAY FOR THE HOLES ON HER FEET AND HANDS TO DISAPPEAR THEN MYSTERIOUSLY. MANY HEMATOLOGISTS, RADIOLOGISTS, NEUROLOGISTS, CARDIOLOGISTS AND PSYCHIATRISTS HAVE SUBMITTED HER TO ALL TYPES OF CLINICAL HARSH THINGS NOT BEING ABLE TO FIND ANY INSANITY SIGNS NOR ANY CARDIOVASCULAR DISEASE. THIS WOMAN FROM COCHABAMBA IS A BIG MYSTERY. THE VIRGIN MARY TOLD CATALINA RIVAS THIS: “TELL HUMAN BEINGS THAT A MAN IS REALLY A MAN WHEN HE BENDS HIS KNEES BEFORE GOD” (CIELO E INFIERNO:VERDADES DE DIOS BY MARIA VALLEJO-NÁGERA).

 9.FRANCIS.

“FRANCIS AS A 6-YEAR-OLD BOY HAD AN ACCIDENT – FALLING FROM A HORSE – WHERE HE HAD BROKEN 3 RIBS, PUNCTURED HIS LUNG, AND WAS BLEEDING BADLY. THE FAMILY AT FIRST TOOK HIM FOR DEAD. AFTER THE DOCTOR EXAMINED HIM HE WAS AFRAID TO OPERATE BECAUSE OF FRANCIS´ WEAKENED CONDITION. FRANCIS´ FAMILY CALLED AN AUNT WHO WAS THE NUN, SR. SPECIOSA, TO ASK IF SHE WOULD PRAY FOR FRANCIS. ALL THE NUNS GOT UP AND PRAYED. “THE NEXT MORNING THE DOCTOR WAS AMAZED THAT THE RIBS WERE NO LONGER PUNCTURING THE LUNGS AND THE BLEEDING HAD STOPPED, AND ALL WAS BEGINNING TO MEND, WITHIN 12 HOURS. WITH A NEW X-RAY THEY COULDN´T SEE ANY PLACE WHERE THE LUNGS HAD BEEN PUNCTURED OR THE RIBS BROKEN. FRANCIS TOLD FR. FOX THAT ABOUT 4 AM THE NEXT MORNING HE REVIVED AND CALLED HIS MOTHER TO ASK WHO WAS THAT BEAUTIFUL MAN WHO STOOD OVER HIS CRIB WITH HIS HAND UPRAISED. HIS SUDDEN REVIVAL AND THE STORY OF THE BOY WAS RELATED TO THE BISHOP WHO COULD ONLY SAY “ IT MUST HAVE BEEN JESUS”. IT WAS EARLY IN LENT OF 1933 THAT FRANCIS RECEIVED AN INTERIOR LOCUTION WHICH WAS A FOREWARNING OF WHAT WAS IN STORE FOR HIM. THE MESSAGE OF OUR DIVINE LORD WAS AS FOLLOWS:

MY BELOVED SON, I´M ASKING YOU TO PREPARE YOURSELF, MY SON, TO RECEIVE MY HOLY WOUNDS. I´LL BE USING YOU IN A SPECIAL WAY, BUT I NEED YOU TO CONTINUE TO PRAY. PLACE YOUR COMPLETE TRUST IN ME AND DO NOT BE AFRAID OF THE FUTURE, FOR I´LL GIVE YOU THE NECESSARY GRACES TO ACCEPT THIS GIFT. YOU´LL BE PERSECUTED, AS I WAS PERSECUTED.I WANT YOU TO CONSECRATE YOURSELF TO MY MOTHER. THAT WAY YOU´LL BECOME CLOSER TO ME. FOR SHE WAS BLESSED ABOVE ALL CREATURES, BUT SHE WAS HIDDEN DURING HER LIFETIME BY THE HOLY SPIRIT. SHE´LL LOOK AFTER YOU AND PROTECT YOU. I´M SURROUNDING YOU WITH PEOPLE YOU CAN TRUST WHEN YOU HAVE YOUR DIFFICULTIES. GO TO THEM AND I´LL SPEAK TO YOU THROUGH THEM. YOU´LL KNOW THESE PEOPLE BY THE PEACE IN YOUR HEART. MY PEACE IS ALWAYS WITH YOU, MY SON. NOW GO AND PREPARE YOURSELF”. WITH THIS SURPRISE MESSAGE FROM OUR DIVINE LORD, FRANCIS WAS TO ENTER A LENT WHICH WOULD CONCLUDE WITH THE STIGMATA WHICH REMAINS TO THIS DAY WITH ALL ITS SUFFERINGS. IT WAS OUR DIVINE LORD HIMSELF WHO ALERTED HIM TO PREPARE HIMSELF SPIRITUALLY FOR WHAT LIED AHEAD. OUR LORD WANTED FRANCIS TO CONSECRATE HIMSELF TO HIS IMMACULATE MOTHER WHO WOULD SOON BE THE ONE TO BRING HIM THE INTERIOR LOCUTIONS. “HERE ARE THE MESSAGES FRANCIS RECEIVED FROM OUR BLESSED MOTHER:

1.ON MAY 2ND, 1993 AT 2:15 AM:

“MY DEAR SON, GO OUT AND TOUCH MY CHILDREN. YOUR HANDS ARE MY SON´S HANDS. CONTINUE TO EVANGELIZE. BRING BACK MANY TO THE SACRAMENT OF PENANCE AND TO CELEBRATE THE EUCHARIST. YOU´RE UNDER THE PROTECTION OF ME AND MY SON. LOOK AROUND. YOU´RE SURROUNDED BY LOVE, LOVE, LOVE. THANK YOU, MY SON”.

2.JUNE 8, 1993, 2:00 AM:

“MY BELOVED ON, I COME TO YOU TONIGHT TO TELL YOU HOW MUCH YOUR PRAYERS AND SUFFERING HAVE MEANT TO MY SON AND ME. YOUR SUFFERING HAS BEEN LONG MY CHILD. YOU´VE PLEASED MY SON AND ME. WE´LL BE CLOSE TO YOU. THE GRACES HAVE BEEN GIVEN TO YOU. SATAN IS TRYING TO CAUSE CONFUSION AMONG YOU. BUT I´LL TELL YOU, HE´LL NOT SUCCEED. PRAY, MY CHILD, MY CHILDREN ARE SURROUNDING YOU. THEY´LL BE WITH YOU IN YOUR DIFFICULTIES. TRUST THEM. I´LL SPEAK TO YOU THROUGH THEM. GO TO THEM, MY SON. YOU´RE TO PRAY, USE YOUR HANDS TO TOUCH MY CHILDREN. I AM YOUR MOTHER AND I´LL SHOW YOU THE WAY. JUST TRUST IN JESUS FOR HE´LL ALLOW NO HARM TO COME TO YOU. THIS IS A JOURNEY TO THE FATHER, WHO LOVES YOU. DON´T FALTER MY SON, FOR I´M WITH YOU. YOU BELONG TO MY SON, NOT TO THIS WORLD. I BLESS YOU TONIGHT AND ASK YOU TO SHARE THIS BLESSING WITH ALL MY CHILDREN THAT COME TO YOU. SHARE MY MESSAGE WITH THEM. TELL THEM OF THE LOVE AND MERCY OF MY SON. PRAY, ALL OF YOU, FOR THOSE WHO HAVE GONE ASTRAY. I LOVE YOU AND ALL MY CHILDREN. GO NOW, TAKE MY WORDS INTO YOUR HEART, FOR THEY ARE NOURISHMENT WHICH WILL HELP MY BEAUTIFUL ONES TO GROW. I PRAY WITH YOU AND FOR YOU. YOUR LOVING MOTHER”.

3.AUG.3, 1993 (EXCERPT):

“MY SON, I COME TO BE WITH YOU TONIGHT TO TAKE YOUR PRAYERS AND SUFFERING TO JESUS. IT´S HE WHO SENDS ME TO BE WITH YOU. MY SON, THERE ARE SO FEW THAT REACH OUT TO THE LOST CHILDREN. PLEASE ASK MY CHILDREN TO GO TO THEM AND BRING THEM BACK… I ASK YOU AGAIN TO REACH OUT TO YOUR BROTHERS AND SISTERS TO SPREAD MY MESSAGE WHICH IS SO IMPORTANT. MY DEAR SON, LISTEN TO YOUR HEART FOR I SPEAK TO YOU IN ITS DEPTHS. PRAY FOR YOUR PRIESTS, FOR I LOVE THEM DEARLY…”.

4.AUG. 18, 1993 (EXCERPT):

KEEP YOUR ROSARIES ALWAYS WITH YOU AND CONTINUE TO PRAY. TURN TO ME WHEN YOU´RE UNSURE FOR I´LL GIVE YOU THE HEP THAT YOU NEED…”.”

“FRANCIS SAID THAT THE SUFFERING OF THE PASSION HE ENDURES STARTS ABOUT 12:30 AM. IT LASTS ABOUT 35 MIN. OF INTENSE PAIN, DURING WHICH HE SEES TOO MANY HORRIBLE THINGS THAT ARE GOING ON RIGHT NOW SUCH AS THE CIVIL WARS, THE ABORTION, ALL THE HOMELESS, THE MURDERS, THE ABUSED CHILDREN, THE ABUSED WOMEN. THERE ARE MANY SINNERS, MOSTLY IN THE AGES FROM 25 TO 40 SINNING TERRIBLY, MANY YOUNG MEN AND WOMEN IN THEIR TWENTIES, ON THE BEACH, IN THE BARS, WALKING THE STREETS. WHEN ALL THAT IS IN FRONT OF HIM HE HAS JUST A POWER TO PRAY “PLEASE LORD, STOP ALL THIS SIN…”. FRANCIS EXPRESSED GREAT SORROW IN HIS HEART OVER THIS. THE MARKS ON FRANCIS´ HANDS APPEAR TO BE A CONSTANT MIRACLE IN THEMSELVES. AT LEAST NOONE CAN EXPLAIN THEM AND WHY THE OPEN WOUNDS DON´T BECOME INFECTED. THE WOUNDS ON THE PALMS ARE NORMALLY NOT COVERED EXCEPT ON FRIDAYS. THEY´RE EXPOSED TO ALL THE THINGS OTHER PEOPLE´S HANDS ARE IN THE COURSE OF A DAY. OF THE DOCTORS WHO EXAMINED THE WOUNDS THE FIRST ONE WASN´T CATHOLIC. WHEN HE SAW THE MARKS IN THE HANDS HE SAID IMMEDIATELY “I´M A GOOD PRESBYTERIAN”. WHILE FRANCIS HAD NOT USED THE WORD “STIGMATA” THE DOCTOR DID. HE ADDED: “I´M GOING TO READ MORE ON STIGMATA”, AND THEN ADDED, “IF YOU GET INFECTION, COME BACK”. FRANCIS NEVER HAD TO GO BACK. TWO OTHER DOCTORS WHO EXAMINED THE WOUNDS WERE SPECIALISTS IN THEIR FIELDS. THEIR SICK CHILDREN, BOTH WITH CHILDHOOD DIABETES, WERE LATER BROUGHT TO FRANCIS SO HE COULD PRAY OVER THEM. ONE DOCTOR WHO ISN´T A STRONG CATHOLIC HAD HIS WIFE SAY OF HER HUSBAND: “HE SHOULD BE A MUCH BETTER CHRISTIAN”. SHE WANTED FRANCIS´ PRAYERS FOR HIS CONVERSION. THE DOCTOR IN LOOKING AT THE WOUND SAID, “I´M A DOUBTING THOMAS IN THE CHURCH BUT I AM NOT ON THIS!”.”

“THERE IS A STIGMATIST IN DAMASCUS, A WOMAN, WHOSE HUSBAND IS ORTHODOX, BUT SHE IS CATHOLIC. THE STIGMATA COMES AND GOES AND THE SUFFERINGS ARE ONLY IN THE YEARS WHEN THE CATHOLIC AND ORTHODOX EASTER COINCIDES. HER MISSION IS THE CHRISTIAN UNITY. THE REASONS GIVEN AMONG THE ORTHODOX CHRISTIANS THEMSELVES WHY STIGMATISTS HAVE NOT BEEN KNOWN AMONG THEM IS THAT IN THEIR SPIRITUALITY AND THEOLOGY THEY EMPHASIZE THE RISEN, GLORIFIED CHRIST. THEY´RE CERTAINLY AWARE OF CHRIST´S DEATH ON THE CROSS AND REDEEMING ACTIONS, YET, THEY DO NOT LAY EMPHASIS ON CHRIST CRUCIFIED AND HIS SUFFERINGS, AS DOES THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. THEY LEARN OF STIGMATISTS IN THE WEST WITH AWE. BUT WHAT IS KNOWN AMONG THEM TO OCCUR ON OCCASION IS BI-LOCATION. THIS WOULD SEEMINGLY FOLLOW FROM THEIR EMPHASIS ON THE RESURRECTION AND THE GLORIFIED CHRIST.”

“WHAT KIND OF PERSON HAS THESE STIGMATA? THAT A PERSON IS HUMBLE, PATIENT, OBEDIENT, ETC, ARE ESSENTIAL CHARACTERISTICS IF THE SOURCE IS GENUINELY SUPERNATURAL. WITHOUT THEM ONE WOULD HAVE TO CONCLUDE THAT THEY´RE FROM OTHER POWERS OF THE WORLD BESIDES GOD. IT´S EVEN POSSIBLE THAT THE DEVIL CAN BE SPEAKING THROUGH A PERSON WHO MANIFESTS SIGNS THAT CAUSE WONDERMENT IN OTHERS. IF A WORK IS OF GOD AND IS PRODUCING GOOD FRUIT, GOOD EFFECTS, ONE CAN ALSO EXPECT SUFFERINGS AND ATTEMPTS TO DESTROY THE GOOD EFFECTS. THE DEVIL IS NEVER HAPPY WHEN SOULS ARE BEING CONVERTED AND COMING TO JESUS CHRIST THROUGH THE SACRAMENTS OF RECONCILIATION AND THE HOLY EUCHARIST.”

“HERE ARE SOME WISE LINES FROM FRANCIS: “AS IT IS MY EAGER EXPECTATION AND HOPE THAT I SHALL NOT BE AT ALL ASHAMED, BUT WITH FULL COURAGE NOW AS ALWAYS, CHRIST WILL BE HONORED IN MY BODY, WHETHER BY LIFE OR BY DEATH. FOR ME TO LIVE IS CHRIST; AND TO DIE IS GAIN: (PHIL 2:20, 21): “I HAVE BEEN CRUCIFIED WITH CHRIST; IT´S NO LONGER I WHO LIVE BUT CHRIST WHO LIVES IN ME : (GAL 2:20). ONE WHO WITNESSES THE SUFFERINGS OF FRANCIS CAN UNDERSTAND WHAT IT MEANS, “WITH CHRIST I AM NAILED TO THE CROSS” (ALL THE QUOTES ABOVE ABOUT FRANCIS ARE FROM FRANCIS BOOK).

NOW THAT WE KNOW ALL THIS SOMETHING IS EXPECTED FROM US AND IT IS THAT WE SHOULD REFLECT ON CHRIST BEING CRUCIFIED WHENEVER WE SUFFER, AND WE´LL BE COOPERATING IN HELPING THE ONE AND ONLY, OUR LORD, WHO LOVES US SO IMMENSELY THAT HE WEEPS AND BLEEDS BECAUSE HE SEES ALL THE BILLIONS AND BILLIONS OF PEOPLE WHO ARE ALREADY IN HELL AND HE SEES THAT SOME BILLIONS MORE WILL END UP THERE, AND THERE NOBODY HAS A RETURN TICKET HERE BECAUSE SUCH DOESN´T EXIST THERE. LET´S SEE ALL THESE SIGNS AS WAKE-UP CALLS TO DO WHAT WE ARE EXPECTED TO DO IN ORDER TO SAVE OURSELVES. ALL THESE SIGNS INTEND TO TELL US THAT WE SHOULD ALL BE NURTURING OUR SPIRITUALITY. LET´S PRAY OUR LORD THAT WE´LL HAVE THE STRENGTH TO BEAR WHATEVER THAT IS THAT JESUS CHRIST WANTS US TO TAKE. LET´S GET RID OF ANY SIGN OF ARROGANCE AND START BEING HUMBLE, PATIENT AND OBEDIENT TO GOD´S RULES, IF WE REALLY WANT TO FEEL HAPPY AND DO WHAT IS EXPECTED FROM US WHILE OUR TIME HERE ALLOWS. LET´S REMEMBER THAT OUR GOAL ON EARTH IS NOT TO GET RICH, FAMOUS NOR TO BE THE SMARTEST PERSON OUT THERE, BUT TO BECOME DEEP SPIRITUAL HUMAN BEINGS WHOSE SOULS ARE BRIGHT AND WHOSE HOLY SPIRIT IS ALIVE, NURTURED AND IN PEACE WITHIN US, ACCEPTING EVERYTHING THAT IS IN OUR LIFE, BEING GRATEFUL FOR ALL THE MANY THINGS GRANTED TO US BY GOD OUR FATHER. ONLY THEN WE´LL BE READY TO SPREAD GOD´S WORD TO TOUCH OTHER PEOPLE´S LIVES, TO HELP MANY PEOPLE, AND IN DOING SO FEEL REAL JOY WHICH MONEY, FAME NOR AWARDS CAN BUY. LET´S SAY “NO” TO OUR EGO WHENEVER OUR EGO WANTS TO RUN THE SHOW. WE´LL SUCCEED IN DOING SO IF WE PAY CLOSE ATTENTION TO OUR INSIDE, THAT IS, IF WE REALLY KNOW OURSELVES, IN ORDER TO PUT AN END TO WHATEVER NEGATIVE EMOTION – SAY ARROGANCE, SAY GREED…- THAT ANTAGONIZES WITH HUMBLENESS, GENEROSITY, PATIENCE AND ACCEPTANCE. MAKING THE APPROPIATE ADJUSTMENTS WE´LL BE MAKING OF OUR LIFE THE JOURNEY OF OUR LIVES, THAT IS, THE JOURNEY TO OUR FATHER. WE´RE ALL CONFRONTED WITH SUFFERING, WE´RE ALL GOD´S CHILDREN AND WE´RE ALL TO OBEY GOD FATHER. ONLY THEN WE´LL MANAGE TO DISPEL FEARS AND GO ON PRAYING AND REACHING OUT FOR THE LOST ONES. EACH ONE OF US IS ENTRUSTED WITH THE KEY MISSION OF PRAYING SO THAT PEOPLE´S EVIL PLANS, LIKE THE PAGAN EMPEROR MAXENTIUS´ ONES ,ARE DESTROYED. MAXENTIUS TRIED TO BUY OFF CATHERINE OF ALEXANDRIA (AD 287-AD 305), A CHRISTIAN SAINT AND VIRGIN, BORN IN ALEXANDRIA, EGYPT, MARTYRED AT HIS HANDS, BUT HE DID NOT SUCCEED IN BRIBING HER. CATHERINE WAS THE DAUGHTER OF CONSTUS, THE GOVERNOR OF ALEXANDRIAN EGYPT DURING THE REIGN OF THE EMPEROR MAXIMIAN (AD 305 – AD 313). FROM A YOUNG AGE SHE HAD DEVOTED HERSELF TO STUDY. A VISION OF THE MADONNA AND CHILD PERSUADED HER TO BECOME A CHRISTIAN. WHEN THE PERSECUTIONS BEGAN UNDER MAXENTIUS, SHE WENT TO THE EMPEROR AND REBUKED HIM FOR HIS CRUELTY. THE EMPEROR SUMMONED FIFTY OF THE BEST PAGAN PHILOSOPHERS AND ORATORS TO DISPUTE WITH HER, HOPING THAT THEY WOULD REFUTE HER PRO-CHRISTIAN ARGUMENTS, BUT CATHERINE WON THE DEBATE. SEVERAL OF HER ADVERSARIES, CONQUERED BY HER ELOQUENCE, DECLARED THEMSELVES CHRISTIANS AND WERE AT ONCE PUT TO DEATH. CATHERINE WAS THEN SCOURGED AND IMPRISONED, DURING WHICH TIME OVER 2OO PEOPLE CAME TO SEE HER, INCLUDING MAXENTIUS´ WIFE, VALERIA MAXIMILLA; ALL CONVERTED TO CHRISTIANITY AND WERE SUBSEQUENTLY MARTYRED. UPON THE FAILURE OF MAXENTIUS TO MAKE CATHERINE YIELD BY WAY OF TORTURE, HE TRIED TO WIN THE BEAUTIFUL AND WISE PRINCESS OVER BY PROPOSING MARRIAGE. THE SAINT REFUSED, DECLARING THAT HER SPOUSE WAS JESUS CHRIST, TO WHOM SHE HAD CONSECRATED HER VIRGINITY. THE FURIOUS EMPEROR CONDEMNED CATHERINE TO DEATH ON A SPIKED BREAKING WHEEL, BUT AT HER TOUCH IT SHATTERED. MAXENTIUS FINALLY HAD HER BEHEADED. A TRADITION DATING TO ABOUT 800 STATES THAT ANGELS CARRIED HER CORPSE TO MOUNT SINAI. HER BODY WAS DISCOVERED AROUND THE YEAR 800 AT MOUNT SINAI, WITH HAIR STILL GROWING AND A CONSTANT STREAM OF HEALING OIL ISSUING FROM HER BODY. IN THE 6TH CENTURY, THE EASTERN EMPEROR JUSTINIAN I (REIGNED 527 – 565) HAD ESTABLISHED WHAT IS NOW SAINT CATHERINE´S MONASTERY IN EGYPT ( WHICH IS IN FACT DEDICATED TO THE TRANSFIGURATION OF CHRIST). THERE ARE SEVERAL PILGRIMAGE NARRATIVES THAT CHRONICLE THE JOURNEY TO MOUNT SINAI, MOST NOTABLY THOSE OF JOHN MANDEVILLE AND FRIAR FABRI. HOWEVER, THE MONASTERY AT MOUNT SINAI WAS THE BEST-KNOWN SITE OF CATHERINE OF ALEXANDRIA´S PILGRIMAGE, BUT WAS ALSO THE MOST DIFFICULT TO REACH. THE MOST PROMINENT WESTERN SHRINE WAS THE MONASTERY IN ROVEN THAT CLAIMED TO HOUSE CATHERINE´S FINGERS. IT WASN´T ALONE IN THE WEST, HOWEVER, ACCOMPANIED BY MANY, SCATTERED SHRINES AND ALTAR DEDICATED TO CATHERINE WHICH EXISTED THROUGHOUT FRANCE AND ENGLAND. SOME WERE BETTER KNOWN SITES, SUCH AS CANTERBURY AND WESTMINSTER, WHICH CLAIMED A PHIAL OF HER OIL, BROUGHT BACK FROM MOUNT SINAI BY EDWARD THE CONFESSOR. CATHERINE´S POWER AS AN INTERCESSOR WAS RENOWED AND FIRMLY ESTABLISHED IN MOST VERSIONS OF HER HAGIOGRAPHY, IN WHICH SHE SPECIFICALLY ENTREATS CHRIST AT THE MOMENT OF HER DEATH TO ANSWER THE PRAYERS OF THOSE WHO REMEMBER HER MARTYRDOM AND INVOKE HER NAME” (CATHERINE OF ALEXANDRIA-WIKIPEDIA,THE FREE ENCYCLOPEDIA).

OUR LIFE CAN ONLY BE FULFILLED IF WE´RE SERVANTS OF GOD. BEING A SERVANT OF GOD IMPLIES HELPING HIM SPREAD THE WORD OF GOD. BEING AT HOME WATCHING TV IS NOT OF MUCH HELP TO GOD. WE´VE GOT TO REACH OUT TO AS MANY LOST SOULS AS WE CAN TELLING THEM TO WAKE UP TO OUR LORD, JESUS CHRIST, TELLING THEM IT´S TIME TO SAY “NO” TO PROSTITUTION, TO LUST, TO CHILD ABUSE, TO ABUSE OF POWER, TO LYING, TO ARROGANCE, TO GREED, ETC. IT´S TIME WE TAKE RESPONSIBILITY AS JESUS CHRIST DID IN ORDER TO DO OUR JOB HERE AS GOD´S SERVANTS. DIRECTOR KEVIN REYNOLDS HAS DONE ITS PART, SPECIALLY IN THE 2016 BIBLICAL MOVIE RISEN, WHERE WE SEE HOW CLAVIUS, A ROMAN TRIBUNE WHO HAS BEEN CHARGED TO SEARCH FOR JESUS´ BODY AFTER THE RESURRECTION, CANNOT MANAGE TO DO HIS JOB ONCE HE WITNESSES 2 MIRACLES: THE HEALING OF A LEPER, AND SEEING JESUS CHRIST ALIVE, TALKING TO THE APOSTLES AND THEN ASCENDING INTO HEAVEN. THIS AMAZING MOVIE NAILS IT WHEN AT THE END OF THE MOVIE IT HIGHLIGHTS THE STRUGGLE CLAVIUS HAS, ONCE HE´S BECOME A JESUS CHRIST´S FOLLOWER, TO RECONCILE THESE MIRACLES HE´S WITNESSED WITH THE WORLD HE KNOWS. IT´S NOT EASY TO DO WHAT KEVIN REYNOLDS HAS DONE AND YET HE´S DONE IT AND WONDERFULLY. THANK YOU VERY MUCH, KEVIN REYNOLDS, FOR SPREADING GOD´S WORD. YOU´VE SHOWN US NOT ONLY THAT YOU´RE SMART BUT WISE, WHICH IS MORE IMPORTANT AND OF MORE VALUE TO GOD AND TO US THAN ANYTHING ELSE. THE SAME AS CLAVIUS DID, QUITING HIS JOB, SINCE BEING A ROMAN TRIBUNE IMPLIED GOING AGAINST JESUS CHRIST WHO HE LOVED, EACH ONE OF US MUST DO WHERE APPLICABLE, THAT IS WHENEVER SOMEONE ASKS US TO DO SOMETHING AGAINST OUR LORD LIKE KISSING UP TO REPLICAS OF PONTIUS PILATE AND CAIAPHAS,  LIKE DECEPTIONS , LYING, ABUSING POWER, BEING GREEDY, LIKE BEING DISRESPECTFUL TOWARDS  OUR BROTHERS, ETC.,WE ARE SUPPOSED TO SAY “NO” TO THOSE OR EVEN QUIT OUR JOB IF APPROPRIATE. IF WE DON´T TAKE SUCH RESPONSIBILITY THE PRICE EACH OF US WILL PAY WILL BE FAR TOO HIGH, AND WE DON´T WANT THAT FOR ANY OF US NOR FOR ANY OF OUR BROTHERS. WE´VE GOT TO HAVE THE GUTS TO SAY “NO” TO OUR EGO AND TO ALL THE TRICKS EVIL IS PLAYING ON US THROUGH MONEY, SEX, CAREER, FAME, ETC. THIS IS THE GAME WE´RE TO GET REALLY GOOD AT, THE GAME OF UNMASKING EVIL PRACTICES, EVIL COMPANY, EVIL PLACES AND EVIL IDEAS SAYING A CLEAR “NO” AS MANY TIMES AS WE HAVE TO. GOD WILL BE WATCHING OUR HEART EVERY TIME WE STAND BY OUR FATHER AND HE´LL MEET US ALONG THE WAY SOMEHOW AND WILL PROVIDE EACH OF US WITH GIFTS ACCORDING TO HOW MUCH WE SPREAD THE WORD OF OUR LORD, OUR SAVIOUR. THE CLOSER WE GET TO GOD PUTTING INTO PRACTICE HIS RULES THE LESS BLINDED OUR UNDERSTANDING OF GOD´S TRUTH WILL BE AND THE HAPPIER WE´LL BE. IF WE DIDN´T KNOW JESUS CHRIST WE WOULD NOT GIVE ANY LOVE BECAUSE WE WOULD BE ALL GREEDY, BUT THANKS TO GOD WE GIVE LOVE, WE GIVE BACK PART OF WHAT WE´VE ACCOMPLISHED THROUGH GOD, SINCE JESUS CHRIST IS OUR REFERENCE POINT IN ORDER TO BECOME SPIRITUAL HUMAN BEINGS. JESUS CHRIST IS THE MODEL FOR A HUMBLE LIFE OF GIVING AND LOVING EACH OTHER. MANY PEOPLE PUT GOD TO ONE SIDE THINKING THEY´RE GOING TO BE HAPPIER WHEN THE TRUTH OF THE MATTER IS THAT BEING NEXT TO GOD IS HAPPINESS ITSELF.

ANOTHER WAY OF BEING NEXT TO GOD IS WRITING A POEM TO OUR LORD. HERE´S MINE:

 SPREAD GOD´S WORD

SPREAD GOD´S WORD,

PRAISE OUR LORD,

OBEY HIS WORD,

WE´LL FIND HEAVEN THEN

INSIDE THERE,

NEXT TO OUR GOD FATHER.

 

JESUS CHRIST GAVE IT ALL

FOR THE LOVE OF GOD,

FOR THE LOVE OF US.

 

 SPREAD GOD´S WORD,

PRAISE OUR LORD,

OBEY HIS WORD,

WE´LL FIND HEAVEN THEN

INSIDE THERE,

NEXT TO OUR GOD FATHER.

 

JESUS CHRIST STILL GIVES US LOVE

AND WANTS US TO LOVE,

ACCEPTING ALL.

 

SPREAD GOD´S WORD,

PRAISE OUR LORD,

OBEY HIS WORD,

WE´LL FIND HEAVEN THEN

INSIDE THERE,

NEXT TO OUR GOD FATHER.

 

 WHERE HIS SUFFERING IS

OURS IS

AND BOTH MEET AND LIVE.

 

NOWADAYS BESIDES STIGMATICS THERE ARE OTHER PEOPLE AND BEINGS ENDURING UNBEARABLE SITUATIONS EVERYWHERE. SYRIAN REFUGEES AND LOVELY ANIMALS ARE BEING IGNORED BY LEADERS. FEROCIOUS PREDATORS, WHO DON´T CARE ABOUT OUR WORLD AND WHO EVEN DARE DESTROY IT, ARE BEHIND ALL EVIL ACTS TODAY. IT´S HIGH TIME THAT POLITICIANS AND EVERYONE ASSUME RESPONSIBILITY FOR PROTECTING WAR REFUGEES AND OUR BELOVED ANIMALS AND NATURE. BEING REALLY AWARE OF THE RESPECT EACH ONE OF US HAS TO HAVE TOWARDS THE OTHER BEINGS, – HUMANS AND NON-HUMANS – REQUIRES THAT POLITICIANS WORK IN GOD´S FAVOUR. IF THEY FAIL TO DO SO THEY´LL FACE THE WORST OF SCENARIOS WHEN THEIR TIME COMES, AND IN A MATTER OF SECONDS THEY´LL REALIZE THE KIND OF SENSELESS LIVES THEY LED, SINCE THEY´LL SEE THEN THAT THEY ONLY PUT THEIR HEARTS ON THEIR CAREER, MONEY AND SEX, IGNORING GOD.

AS SERVANTS OF GOD WE ARE ENTRUSTED WITH THESE 6 TASKS DURING OUR STAY HERE:

1.LEARN TO KNOW OURSELVES.

2.LOVE OUR FELLOW BROTHERS.

3.LOVE AND PROTECT ANIMALS.

4.LOVE AND PROTECT NATURE.

5.LOVE AND PRAISE GOD, AND EVERYTHING RELATED TO HIM, GIVING OUR LORD HONOR ALWAYS.

6.SPREAD THE WORD OF THE LORD.

THIS ARTICLE, THIS POEM AND WHATEVER MORE WE CAN DO TO HELP SPREAD GOD´S WORD WE´LL DO. AND NOW THAT ALL OF YOU KNOW ALL THIS YOU MUST SPREAD GOD´S WORD TOO. OUR LORD KNOWS THAT YOU ALREADY KNOW ABOUT THE TRUTH OF LIFE AND SO OUR FATHER EXPECTS TO SEE ALL OF YOU WORKING FOR HIM. THERE´S NO POINT IN GETTING UP, GETTING READY, GOING TO WORK AND COMING BACK HOME IF WE DON´T DO ANYTHING FOR OUR LORD ON A DAILY BASIS. IT WOULD BE IDIOTIC, AND WE DEFINITELY DON´T WANT THAT. WHEN WE TALK TO GOD AND WE ASK HIM TO HELP US, THEN WE ARE LETTING GOD ENTER OUR LIVES SO THAT WE CAN LISTEN TO HIM. REMEMBER, LISTENING TO GOD ALWAYS WORKS BETTER WHEN WE ARE IN HUMBLE MODE. IT´S THEN, WHEN WE HUMBLE OURSELVES, THAT WE GET INSPIRED, THAT WE FEEL RELIEVED, WHEN WE SEE WHAT REALLY MATTERS AND WHEN WE REALIZE EACH ONE OF US IS A SOUL AND A SPIRIT WHO LONGS FOR HUMBLE ONES IN HUMBLE MODES. LET´S TURN THINGS AROUND SO THAT WE CAN TAKE HUMBLE ROUTES, WORK FOR JESUS CHRIST AND LEARN THE JOB. DO YOU DARE BE AN HHO? WELL THEN, GO FOR HUMBLE MODE!

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

BASQUE MYSTERY ROOTS!

 

BEING A BASQUE MYSELF LIKE I AM I CANNOT RESIST LOVING MY HOMELAND AND THE PEOPLE HERE. WHAT I ADMIRE IN BASQUE PEOPLE THE MOST IS THAT THEY ARE LOYAL AND NOBLE. BASQUES´ LOYALTY DATES CENTURIES BACK IN TIME, WHEN MONARCHS STARTED TO VALUE IT.

IN ORDER TO ACKNOWLEDGE ANY CLAIM LAID TO US WE HAVE TO SUPPLY IT WITH A HOLISTIC APPROACH. IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY´S CASE AS TO BASQUE PRISONERS´ FAMILIES´CLAIM TO GET THEM TRANSFERRED TO THE BASQUE COUNTRY IT IS SIMPLY JUST. THESE FAMILIES ARE HUMAN BEINGS WHOSE DEMANDS HAVE TO BE MET. THESE RELATIVES HAVE SUFFERED AND ARE STILL SUFFERING HAVING THEIR SONS AND DAUGHTERS FAR AWAY FROM THEM. THESE FAMILIES ARE FILLED WITH A SENSE OF GRIEVANCE, HAVING HAD THEIR PROPERTY CONFISCATED AND BEEN FORBIDDEN TO SPEAK THEIR LANGUAGE, AMONG MANY OTHER SETBACKS DURING THE DICTATORSHIP.

EVERYONE OF US HAS EQUAL RIGHTS . PRISONERS AS WELL ARE EQUAL UNDER THE LAW. HOWEVER, BASQUE PRISONERS ARE DISPERSED IN NON-BASQUE PRISONS ACROSS SPAIN. THAT IS WHY THOUSANDS OF PEOPLE DEMONSTRATED IN SUPPORT OF BRINGING IMPRISONED BASQUE INSURGENTS TO THE BASQUE COUNTRY, ON JANUARY 10TH 2015. WE NEED INTERNATIONAL HELP TO GUARANTEE ALL BASQUE PRISONERS ARE BROUGHT BACK TO THE BASQUE COUNTRY. THESE PEOPLE´S RELATIVES´ RIGHTS SHOULD BE DEFENDED.

DICTATORSHIPS ARE NOT GOOD AND THEY PROMPT RESISTANCE. IN THE BASQUE COUNTRY THE WIDESPREAD OPPRESSION TARGETED AGAINST BASQUES MEANT THE PROHIBITION OF THE USE OF THE BASQUE LANGUAGE, AND LED TO AN ARMED MOVEMENT. THIS MOVEMENT COULD NOT TOLERATE THE TYRANNY AGAINST OUR LANGUAGE, THE BASQUE LANGUAGE. A HUNDRED BASQUE PRISONERS FROM THE ARMED MOVEMENT WERE TORTURED BY THE DICTATORSHIP.

REALITY RULES, AND AS SUCH, THE BASQUE COUNTRY HAS ITS OWN PECULIAR CULTURE AND IDENTITY. BASQUE PEOPLE DEFEND THEIR HUMAN RIGHTS TAKING INTO ACCOUNT THE FACTORS WHICH EQUATE THEM TO AN INDEPENDENT REGION:

– A LANGUAGE OF ITS OWN, EUSKERA, WHICH IS NOT RELATED TO ANY KNOWN LANGUAGE IN THE WORLD.

– AN ANCIENT HISTORY, DATING BACK TO THE PALEOLITHIC PERIOD. AT THE BEGINNING OF THE SEVENTH CENTURY THE BASQUES STARTED TO ESTABLISH THEMSELVES AS THE DUCHY OF VASCONIA.

– HAVING GONE THROUGH THE BASQUE FUEROS EXPERIENCE OF RULING THEMSELVES SEPARATELY. THE FACT THAT BASQUES POSSESSED A BASQUE CONSTITUTION, MEANING BASQUE FUEROS, SET THE STAGE FOR AUTONOMOUS RULE. THE KINGS BACK THEN, HAD REASONS (LIKE ACKOWLEDGING LOYAL SUBJECTION AND DISTINCTIVE LEGAL TRADITIONS, AMONG SOME) FOR GRANTING THESE RIGHTS TO THE BASQUES. U.S. PRESIDENT JOHN ADAMS MENTIONED THE BISCAYAN FUEROS AND REFERRED TO THEM AS A PRECEDENT FOR THE U.S. CONSTITUTION.

– OUR ADAMANT ATTITUDE TO KEEP EUSKERA AND BASQUE CULTURE INTACT.

– HAVING BEEN REPRESENTED BY SABINO ARANA Y GOIRI, THE INFLUENTIAL LEADER WHO LET BASQUES REALIZE WHAT GOAL WE ALL SHOULD BE ACHIEVING.

– BEARING THE SPREADING OF LIES, SUCH AS SAYING BASQUE PEOPLE WERE LOWLIFES.

– MANY YEARS´ EXPERIENCE IN BEING SUCCESSFUL FIGHTING FOR OUR INDEPENDENCE AGAINST MANY INVADERS.

TWO BASQUE CULTURE SAMPLES I RECOMMEND YOU ALL ARE THE BAND KEN ZAZPI, AND THE 2014 BASQUE MOVIE LASA Y ZABALADIRECTED BY PABLO MALO.

NO FIGHT CAN LAST SO LONG IF THERE IS NO TRUTH BEHIND IT. OUR TRUTH IS OUR LANGUAGE, CULTURE, OUR LOYALTY, AND WORLDWIDE LOYALTY RECOGNITION OVER THE CENTURIES. LOOKING BACK AT HOW THE BASQUES FOUGHT AGAINST THE ROMANS, THE VIKINGS, THE GERMANIC TRIBES AND THE MUSLIMS, WE CAN STATE BASQUES HAVE ALWAYS LOVED INDEPENDENCE, AND HAVE GAINED RECOGNITION FROM THE WISE.  THE QUESTION TODAY IS: DO BASQUES REALLY LOVE INDEPENDENCE AS MUCH AS LONG BEFORE?